1 <?xml version='
1.0' encoding='UTF-
8'
?>
2 <?xml-stylesheet href=
"docbook-css-0.4/driver.css" type=
"text/css"?>
3 <!-- Converted to DocBook by Hans Schou 2004-03-29. Updated and improved
4 by Petter Reinholdtsen 2012 with input from Martin Borg. -->
9 <!DOCTYPE book PUBLIC
"-//OASIS//DTD DocBook XML V4.5//EN"
10 "http://www.oasis-open.org/docbook/xml/4.5/docbookx.dtd"
13 <!ENTITY translationblock
"">
15 <book id=
"index" lang=
"en">
17 <title>Free Culture
</title>
19 <abbrev>"freeculture"</abbrev>
21 <subtitle>HOW BIG MEDIA USES TECHNOLOGY AND THE LAW TO LOCK DOWN
22 CULTURE AND CONTROL CREATIVITY
</subtitle>
24 <pubdate>2004-
03-
25</pubdate>
26 <releaseinfo>Version
2004-
02-
10</releaseinfo>
30 <firstname>Lawrence
</firstname>
31 <surname>Lessig
</surname>
35 <!-- <subjectset> and cover <mediaobject> Based on example from
36 http://jfearn.fedorapeople.org/en-US/Publican/2.7/html/Users_Guide/chap-Users_Guide-Creating_a_document.html
38 <subjectset scheme=
"libraryofcongress">
40 <subjectterm>Intellectual property
—United States.
</subjectterm>
43 <subjectterm>Mass media
—United States.
</subjectterm>
46 <subjectterm>Technological innovations
—United States.
</subjectterm>
49 <subjectterm>Art
—United States.
</subjectterm>
55 <publishername>The Penguin Press
</publishername>
56 <address><city>New York
</city></address>
61 <holder>Lawrence Lessig
</holder>
67 <imagedata fileref=
"images/cc.png" contentdepth=
"3em" width=
"100%" align=
"center"/>
70 <imagedata fileref=
"images/cc.svg" contentdepth=
"3em" width=
"100%" align=
"center"/>
73 <phrase>Creative Commons, Some rights reserved
</phrase>
79 This version of
<citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle> is licensed under
80 a Creative Commons license. This license permits non-commercial use of
81 this work, so long as attribution is given. For more information
82 about the license, click the icon above, or visit
83 <ulink url=
"http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc/1.0/">http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc/
1.0/
</ulink>
88 <title>ABOUT THE AUTHOR
</title>
91 (
<ulink url=
"http://www.lessig.org">http://www.lessig.org
</ulink>),
92 professor of law and a John A. Wilson Distinguished Faculty Scholar
93 at Stanford Law School, is founder of the Stanford Center for Internet
94 and Society and is chairman of the Creative Commons
95 (
<ulink url=
"http://creativecommons.org">http://creativecommons.org
</ulink>).
96 The author of The Future of Ideas (Random House,
2001) and Code: And
97 Other Laws of Cyberspace (Basic Books,
1999), Lessig is a member of
98 the boards of the Public Library of Science, the Electronic Frontier
99 Foundation, and Public Knowledge. He was the winner of the Free
100 Software Foundation's Award for the Advancement of Free Software,
101 twice listed in BusinessWeek's
<quote>e.biz
25,
</quote> and named one of Scientific
102 American's
<quote>50 visionaries.
</quote> A graduate of the University of
103 Pennsylvania, Cambridge University, and Yale Law School, Lessig
104 clerked for Judge Richard Posner of the U.S. Seventh Circuit Court of
109 <!-- testing different ways to tag the cover page -->
110 <mediaobject role=
"cover">
111 <imageobject remap=
"lrg" role=
"front-large">
112 <imagedata fileref=
"images/cover.png" format=
"PNG" width=
"444" />
115 <imageobject remap="s" role="front">
116 <imagedata fileref="images/cover_thumbnail.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
118 <imageobject remap="xs" role="front-small">
119 <imagedata fileref="images/cover_thumbnail.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
121 <imageobject remap="cs" role="thumbnail">
122 <imagedata fileref="images/cover_thumbnail.png" format="PNG" width="444" />
127 <biblioid class=
"isbn">978-
82-
92812-XX-Y
</biblioid>
130 http://catalog.loc.gov/cgi-bin/Pwebrecon.cgi?v3=1&DB=local&CMD=010a+2003063276&CNT=10+records+per+page
132 <biblioid class=
"libraryofcongress">2003063276</biblioid>
135 <!-- PAGE BREAK 3 -->
136 <dedication id=
"alsobylessig">
139 ALSO BY LAWRENCE LESSIG
142 The Future of Ideas: The Fate of the Commons in a Connected World
145 Code: And Other Laws of Cyberspace
148 <!-- PAGE BREAK 4 -->
149 <!-- PAGE BREAK 5 -->
150 <!-- PAGE BREAK 6 -->
151 <!-- PAGE BREAK 7 -->
152 <dedication><title></title>
154 To Eric Eldred
— whose work first drew me to this cause, and for whom
162 <title>List of figures
</title>
169 1 CHAPTER ONE: Creators
170 1 CHAPTER TWO: "Mere Copyists"
171 1 CHAPTER THREE: Catalogs
172 1 CHAPTER FOUR: "Pirates"
177 1 CHAPTER FIVE: "Piracy"
181 1 CHAPTER SIX: Founders
182 1 CHAPTER SEVEN: Recorders
183 1 CHAPTER EIGHT: Transformers
184 1 CHAPTER NINE: Collectors
185 1 CHAPTER TEN: "Property"
186 2 Why Hollywood Is Right
190 2 Law and Architecture: Reach
191 2 Architecture and Law: Force
192 2 Market: Concentration
195 1 CHAPTER ELEVEN: Chimera
196 1 CHAPTER TWELVE: Harms
197 2 Constraining Creators
198 2 Constraining Innovators
199 2 Corrupting Citizens
201 1 CHAPTER THIRTEEN: Eldred
202 1 CHAPTER FOURTEEN: Eldred II
206 2 Rebuilding Freedoms Previously Presumed: Examples
207 2 Rebuilding Free Culture: One Idea
209 2 1. More Formalities
210 3 Registration and Renewal
213 2 3. Free Use Vs. Fair Use
214 2 4. Liberate the Music- -Again
215 2 5. Fire Lots of Lawyers 304
221 <!-- PAGE BREAK 11 -->
223 <preface id=
"preface">
224 <title>PREFACE
</title>
225 <indexterm id='idxpoguedavid' class='startofrange'
><primary>Pogue, David
</primary></indexterm>
227 <emphasis role=
"bold">At the end
</emphasis> of his review of my first
228 book,
<citetitle>Code: And Other Laws of Cyberspace
</citetitle>, David
229 Pogue, a brilliant writer and author of countless technical and
230 computer-related texts, wrote this:
234 Unlike actual law, Internet software has no capacity to punish. It
235 doesn't affect people who aren't online (and only a tiny minority
236 of the world population is). And if you don't like the Internet's
237 system, you can always flip off the modem.
<footnote id=
"preface01"><para>
238 David Pogue,
<quote>Don't Just Chat, Do Something,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
30 January
2000.
243 Pogue was skeptical of the core argument of the book
—that
244 software, or
<quote>code,
</quote> functioned as a kind of law
—and his review
245 suggested the happy thought that if life in cyberspace got bad, we
246 could always
<quote>drizzle, drazzle, druzzle, drome
</quote>-like simply flip a
247 switch and be back home. Turn off the modem, unplug the computer, and
248 any troubles that exist in
<emphasis>that
</emphasis> space wouldn't
249 <quote>affect
</quote> us anymore.
252 Pogue might have been right in
1999—I'm skeptical, but maybe.
253 But even if he was right then, the point is not right now:
254 <citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle> is about the troubles the Internet
255 causes even after the modem is turned
257 off. It is an argument about how the battles that now rage regarding life
258 on-line have fundamentally affected
<quote>people who aren't online.
</quote> There
259 is no switch that will insulate us from the Internet's effect.
261 <indexterm startref='idxpoguedavid' class='endofrange'
/>
263 But unlike
<citetitle>Code
</citetitle>, the argument here is not much
264 about the Internet itself. It is instead about the consequence of the
265 Internet to a part of our tradition that is much more fundamental,
266 and, as hard as this is for a geek-wanna-be to admit, much more
270 That tradition is the way our culture gets made. As I explain in the
271 pages that follow, we come from a tradition of
<quote>free culture
</quote>—not
272 <quote>free
</quote> as in
<quote>free beer
</quote> (to borrow a phrase from the founder of the
273 free software movement
<footnote>
275 Richard M. Stallman,
<citetitle>Free Software, Free Societies
</citetitle> 57 (Joshua Gay, ed.
2002).
276 </para></footnote>), but
<quote>free
</quote> as in
<quote>free speech,
</quote> <quote>free markets,
</quote>
277 <quote>free trade,
</quote> <quote>free enterprise,
</quote> <quote>free will,
</quote> and
<quote>free elections.
</quote> A
278 free culture supports and protects creators and innovators. It does
279 this directly by granting intellectual property rights. But it does so
280 indirectly by limiting the reach of those rights, to guarantee that
281 follow-on creators and innovators remain
<emphasis>as free as
282 possible
</emphasis> from the control of the past. A free culture is
283 not a culture without property, just as a free market is not a market
284 in which everything is free. The opposite of a free culture is a
285 <quote>permission culture
</quote>—a culture in which creators get to create
286 only with the permission of the powerful, or of creators from the
290 If we understood this change, I believe we would resist it. Not
<quote>we
</quote>
291 on the Left or
<quote>you
</quote> on the Right, but we who have no stake in the
292 particular industries of culture that defined the twentieth century.
293 Whether you are on the Left or the Right, if you are in this sense
294 disinterested, then the story I tell here will trouble you. For the
295 changes I describe affect values that both sides of our political
296 culture deem fundamental.
298 <indexterm id='idxpowerconcentrationof' class='startofrange'
><primary>power, concentration of
</primary></indexterm>
299 <indexterm><primary>CodePink Women in Peace
</primary></indexterm>
300 <indexterm><primary>Safire, William
</primary></indexterm>
301 <indexterm><primary>Stevens, Ted
</primary></indexterm>
303 We saw a glimpse of this bipartisan outrage in the early summer of
304 2003. As the FCC considered changes in media ownership rules that
305 would relax limits on media concentration, an extraordinary coalition
306 generated more than
700,
000 letters to the FCC opposing the change.
307 As William Safire described marching
<quote>uncomfortably alongside CodePink
308 Women for Peace and the National Rifle Association, between liberal
309 Olympia Snowe and conservative Ted Stevens,
</quote> he formulated perhaps
310 most simply just what was at stake: the concentration of power. And as
315 Does that sound unconservative? Not to me. The concentration of
316 power
—political, corporate, media, cultural
—should be anathema to
317 conservatives. The diffusion of power through local control, thereby
318 encouraging individual participation, is the essence of federalism and
319 the greatest expression of democracy.
<footnote><para> William Safire,
320 <quote>The Great Media Gulp,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
22 May
2003.
321 <indexterm><primary>Safire, William
</primary></indexterm>
326 This idea is an element of the argument of
<citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle>, though my
327 focus is not just on the concentration of power produced by
328 concentrations in ownership, but more importantly, if because less
329 visibly, on the concentration of power produced by a radical change in
330 the effective scope of the law. The law is changing; that change is
331 altering the way our culture gets made; that change should worry
332 you
—whether or not you care about the Internet, and whether you're on
333 Safire's left or on his right.
335 <indexterm startref='idxpowerconcentrationof' class='endofrange'
/>
337 <emphasis role=
"strong">The inspiration
</emphasis> for the title and for
338 much of the argument of this book comes from the work of Richard
339 Stallman and the Free Software Foundation. Indeed, as I reread
340 Stallman's own work, especially the essays in
<citetitle>Free Software, Free
341 Society
</citetitle>, I realize that all of the theoretical insights I develop here
342 are insights Stallman described decades ago. One could thus well argue
343 that this work is
<quote>merely
</quote> derivative.
346 I accept that criticism, if indeed it is a criticism. The work of a
347 lawyer is always derivative, and I mean to do nothing more in this
348 book than to remind a culture about a tradition that has always been
349 its own. Like Stallman, I defend that tradition on the basis of
350 values. Like Stallman, I believe those are the values of freedom. And
351 like Stallman, I believe those are values of our past that will need
352 to be defended in our future. A free culture has been our past, but it
353 will only be our future if we change the path we are on right now.
356 Like Stallman's arguments for free software, an argument for free
357 culture stumbles on a confusion that is hard to avoid, and even harder
358 to understand. A free culture is not a culture without property; it is not
359 a culture in which artists don't get paid. A culture without property, or
360 in which creators can't get paid, is anarchy, not freedom. Anarchy is not
364 Instead, the free culture that I defend in this book is a balance
365 between anarchy and control. A free culture, like a free market, is
366 filled with property. It is filled with rules of property and contract
367 that get enforced by the state. But just as a free market is perverted
368 if its property becomes feudal, so too can a free culture be queered
369 by extremism in the property rights that define it. That is what I
370 fear about our culture today. It is against that extremism that this
375 <!-- PAGE BREAK 15 -->
377 <!-- PAGE BREAK 16 -->
378 <chapter label=
"0" id=
"c-introduction">
379 <title>INTRODUCTION
</title>
380 <indexterm id='idxwrightbrothers' class='startofrange'
><primary>Wright brothers
</primary></indexterm>
382 <emphasis role=
"strong">On December
17</emphasis>,
1903, on a windy North Carolina beach for just
383 shy of one hundred seconds, the Wright brothers demonstrated that a
384 heavier-than-air, self-propelled vehicle could fly. The moment was electric
385 and its importance widely understood. Almost immediately, there
386 was an explosion of interest in this newfound technology of manned
387 flight, and a gaggle of innovators began to build upon it.
389 <indexterm id='idxairtrafficlandownershipvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>air traffic, land ownership vs.
</primary></indexterm>
390 <indexterm id='idxlandownershipairtrafficand' class='startofrange'
><primary>land ownership, air traffic and
</primary></indexterm>
391 <indexterm id='idxpropertyrightsairtrafficvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>property rights
</primary><secondary>air traffic vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
393 At the time the Wright brothers invented the airplane, American
394 law held that a property owner presumptively owned not just the surface
395 of his land, but all the land below, down to the center of the earth,
396 and all the space above, to
<quote>an indefinite extent, upwards.
</quote><footnote><para>
397 St. George Tucker,
<citetitle>Blackstone's Commentaries
</citetitle> 3 (South Hackensack, N.J.:
398 Rothman Reprints,
1969),
18.
401 years, scholars had puzzled about how best to interpret the idea that
402 rights in land ran to the heavens. Did that mean that you owned the
403 stars? Could you prosecute geese for their willful and regular trespass?
405 <indexterm startref='idxwrightbrothers' class='endofrange'
/>
407 Then came airplanes, and for the first time, this principle of American
408 law
—deep within the foundations of our tradition, and acknowledged
409 by the most important legal thinkers of our past
—mattered. If
410 my land reaches to the heavens, what happens when United flies over
411 my field? Do I have the right to banish it from my property? Am I allowed
412 to enter into an exclusive license with Delta Airlines? Could we
413 set up an auction to decide how much these rights are worth?
415 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
416 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
418 In
1945, these questions became a federal case. When North Carolina
419 farmers Thomas Lee and Tinie Causby started losing chickens
420 because of low-flying military aircraft (the terrified chickens apparently
421 flew into the barn walls and died), the Causbys filed a lawsuit saying
422 that the government was trespassing on their land. The airplanes,
423 of course, never touched the surface of the Causbys' land. But if, as
424 Blackstone, Kent, and Coke had said, their land reached to
<quote>an indefinite
425 extent, upwards,
</quote> then the government was trespassing on their
426 property, and the Causbys wanted it to stop.
428 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
429 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
430 <indexterm id='idxdouglaswilliamo' class='startofrange'
><primary>Douglas, William O.
</primary></indexterm>
431 <indexterm id='idxsupremecourtusonairspacevslandrights' class='startofrange'
><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on airspace vs. land rights
</secondary></indexterm>
433 The Supreme Court agreed to hear the Causbys' case. Congress had
434 declared the airways public, but if one's property really extended to the
435 heavens, then Congress's declaration could well have been an unconstitutional
436 <quote>taking
</quote> of property without compensation. The Court acknowledged
437 that
<quote>it is ancient doctrine that common law ownership of
438 the land extended to the periphery of the universe.
</quote> But Justice Douglas
439 had no patience for ancient doctrine. In a single paragraph, hundreds of
440 years of property law were erased. As he wrote for the Court,
444 [The] doctrine has no place in the modern world. The air is a
445 public highway, as Congress has declared. Were that not true,
446 every transcontinental flight would subject the operator to countless
447 trespass suits. Common sense revolts at the idea. To recognize
448 such private claims to the airspace would clog these highways,
449 seriously interfere with their control and development in the public
450 interest, and transfer into private ownership that to which only
451 the public has a just claim.
<footnote>
453 United States v. Causby, U.S.
328 (
1946):
256,
261. The Court did find
454 that there could be a
<quote>taking
</quote> if the government's use of its land
455 effectively destroyed the value of the Causbys' land. This example was
456 suggested to me by Keith Aoki's wonderful piece,
<quote>(Intellectual)
457 Property and Sovereignty: Notes Toward a Cultural Geography of
458 Authorship,
</quote> <citetitle>Stanford Law Review
</citetitle> 48 (
1996):
1293,
1333. See also Paul
459 Goldstein,
<citetitle>Real Property
</citetitle> (Mineola, N.Y.: Foundation Press,
1984),
461 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
462 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
467 <quote>Common sense revolts at the idea.
</quote>
469 <indexterm startref='idxdouglaswilliamo' class='endofrange'
/>
471 This is how the law usually works. Not often this abruptly or
472 impatiently, but eventually, this is how it works. It was Douglas's style not to
473 dither. Other justices would have blathered on for pages to reach the
475 conclusion that Douglas holds in a single line:
<quote>Common sense revolts
476 at the idea.
</quote> But whether it takes pages or a few words, it is the special
477 genius of a common law system, as ours is, that the law adjusts to the
478 technologies of the time. And as it adjusts, it changes. Ideas that were
479 as solid as rock in one age crumble in another.
481 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
482 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
483 <indexterm><primary>Wright brothers
</primary></indexterm>
485 Or at least, this is how things happen when there's no one powerful
486 on the other side of the change. The Causbys were just farmers. And
487 though there were no doubt many like them who were upset by the
488 growing traffic in the air (though one hopes not many chickens flew
489 themselves into walls), the Causbys of the world would find it very
490 hard to unite and stop the idea, and the technology, that the Wright
491 brothers had birthed. The Wright brothers spat airplanes into the
492 technological meme pool; the idea then spread like a virus in a chicken
493 coop; farmers like the Causbys found themselves surrounded by
<quote>what
494 seemed reasonable
</quote> given the technology that the Wrights had produced.
495 They could stand on their farms, dead chickens in hand, and
496 shake their fists at these newfangled technologies all they wanted.
497 They could call their representatives or even file a lawsuit. But in the
498 end, the force of what seems
<quote>obvious
</quote> to everyone else
—the power of
499 <quote>common sense
</quote>—would prevail. Their
<quote>private interest
</quote> would not be
500 allowed to defeat an obvious public gain.
502 <indexterm startref='idxairtrafficlandownershipvs' class='endofrange'
/>
503 <indexterm startref='idxlandownershipairtrafficand' class='endofrange'
/>
504 <indexterm startref='idxpropertyrightsairtrafficvs' class='endofrange'
/>
505 <indexterm startref='idxsupremecourtusonairspacevslandrights' class='endofrange'
/>
506 <indexterm id='idxarmstrongedwinhoward' class='startofrange'
><primary>Armstrong, Edwin Howard
</primary></indexterm>
507 <indexterm><primary>Bell, Alexander Graham
</primary></indexterm>
508 <indexterm><primary>Edison, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
509 <indexterm><primary>Faraday, Michael
</primary></indexterm>
510 <indexterm id='idxradiofmspectrumof' class='startofrange'
><primary>radio
</primary><secondary>FM spectrum of
</secondary></indexterm>
512 <emphasis role='strong'
>Edwin Howard Armstrong
</emphasis> is one of
513 America's forgotten inventor geniuses. He came to the great American
514 inventor scene just after the titans Thomas Edison and Alexander
515 Graham Bell. But his work in the area of radio technology was perhaps
516 the most important of any single inventor in the first fifty years of
517 radio. He was better educated than Michael Faraday, who as a
518 bookbinder's apprentice had discovered electric induction in
1831. But
519 he had the same intuition about how the world of radio worked, and on
520 at least three occasions, Armstrong invented profoundly important
521 technologies that advanced our understanding of radio.
522 <!-- PAGE BREAK 19 -->
525 On the day after Christmas,
1933, four patents were issued to Armstrong
526 for his most significant invention
—FM radio. Until then, consumer radio
527 had been amplitude-modulated (AM) radio. The theorists
528 of the day had said that frequency-modulated (FM) radio could never
529 work. They were right about FM radio in a narrow band of spectrum.
530 But Armstrong discovered that frequency-modulated radio in a wide
531 band of spectrum would deliver an astonishing fidelity of sound, with
532 much less transmitter power and static.
535 On November
5,
1935, he demonstrated the technology at a meeting of
536 the Institute of Radio Engineers at the Empire State Building in New
537 York City. He tuned his radio dial across a range of AM stations,
538 until the radio locked on a broadcast that he had arranged from
539 seventeen miles away. The radio fell totally silent, as if dead, and
540 then with a clarity no one else in that room had ever heard from an
541 electrical device, it produced the sound of an announcer's voice:
542 <quote>This is amateur station W2AG at Yonkers, New York, operating on
543 frequency modulation at two and a half meters.
</quote>
546 The audience was hearing something no one had thought possible:
550 A glass of water was poured before the microphone in Yonkers; it
551 sounded like a glass of water being poured.
… A paper was crumpled
552 and torn; it sounded like paper and not like a crackling forest
553 fire.
… Sousa marches were played from records and a piano solo
554 and guitar number were performed.
… The music was projected with a
555 live-ness rarely if ever heard before from a radio
<quote>music
556 box.
</quote><footnote><para>
557 Lawrence Lessing,
<citetitle>Man of High Fidelity: Edwin Howard Armstrong
</citetitle>
558 (Philadelphia: J. B. Lipincott Company,
1956),
209.
562 <indexterm id='idxrca' class='startofrange'
><primary>RCA
</primary></indexterm>
563 <indexterm id='idxmediaownershipconcentrationin' class='startofrange'
><primary>media
</primary><secondary>ownership concentration in
</secondary></indexterm>
565 As our own common sense tells us, Armstrong had discovered a vastly
566 superior radio technology. But at the time of his invention, Armstrong
567 was working for RCA. RCA was the dominant player in the then dominant
568 AM radio market. By
1935, there were a thousand radio stations across
569 the United States, but the stations in large cities were all owned by
570 a handful of networks.
573 <indexterm><primary>Sarnoff, David
</primary></indexterm>
575 RCA's president, David Sarnoff, a friend of Armstrong's, was eager
576 that Armstrong discover a way to remove static from AM radio. So
577 Sarnoff was quite excited when Armstrong told him he had a device
578 that removed static from
<quote>radio.
</quote> But when Armstrong demonstrated
579 his invention, Sarnoff was not pleased.
583 I thought Armstrong would invent some kind of a filter to remove
584 static from our AM radio. I didn't think he'd start a
585 revolution
— start up a whole damn new industry to compete with
586 RCA.
<footnote><para> See
<quote>Saints: The Heroes and Geniuses of the
587 Electronic Era,
</quote> First Electronic Church of America, at
588 www.webstationone.com/fecha, available at
590 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
1</ulink>.
594 <indexterm id='idxfmradio' class='startofrange'
><primary>FM radio
</primary></indexterm>
595 <indexterm><primary>Sarnoff, David
</primary></indexterm>
597 Armstrong's invention threatened RCA's AM empire, so the company
598 launched a campaign to smother FM radio. While FM may have been a
599 superior technology, Sarnoff was a superior tactician. As one author
602 <indexterm id='idxlessinglawrence' class='startofrange'
><primary>Lessing, Lawrence
</primary></indexterm>
605 The forces for FM, largely engineering, could not overcome the weight
606 of strategy devised by the sales, patent, and legal offices to subdue
607 this threat to corporate position. For FM, if allowed to develop
608 unrestrained, posed
… a complete reordering of radio power
609 … and the eventual overthrow of the carefully restricted AM system
610 on which RCA had grown to power.
<footnote><para>Lessing,
226.
614 <indexterm id='idxfcconfmradio' class='startofrange'
><primary>FCC
</primary><secondary>on FM radio
</secondary></indexterm>
616 RCA at first kept the technology in house, insisting that further
617 tests were needed. When, after two years of testing, Armstrong grew
618 impatient, RCA began to use its power with the government to stall
619 FM radio's deployment generally. In
1936, RCA hired the former head
620 of the FCC and assigned him the task of assuring that the FCC assign
621 spectrum in a way that would castrate FM
—principally by moving FM
622 radio to a different band of spectrum. At first, these efforts failed. But
623 when Armstrong and the nation were distracted by World War II,
624 RCA's work began to be more successful. Soon after the war ended, the
625 FCC announced a set of policies that would have one clear effect: FM
626 radio would be crippled. As Lawrence Lessing described it,
628 <!-- PAGE BREAK 21 -->
631 The series of body blows that FM radio received right after the
632 war, in a series of rulings manipulated through the FCC by the
633 big radio interests, were almost incredible in their force and
634 deviousness.
<footnote><para>
639 <indexterm startref='idxlessinglawrence' class='endofrange'
/>
640 <indexterm><primary>AT
&T
</primary></indexterm>
642 To make room in the spectrum for RCA's latest gamble, television,
643 FM radio users were to be moved to a totally new spectrum band. The
644 power of FM radio stations was also cut, meaning FM could no longer
645 be used to beam programs from one part of the country to another.
646 (This change was strongly supported by AT
&T, because the loss of
647 FM relaying stations would mean radio stations would have to buy
648 wired links from AT
&T.) The spread of FM radio was thus choked, at
651 <indexterm startref='idxradiofmspectrumof' class='endofrange'
/>
652 <indexterm startref='idxfcconfmradio' class='endofrange'
/>
654 Armstrong resisted RCA's efforts. In response, RCA resisted
655 Armstrong's patents. After incorporating FM technology into the
656 emerging standard for television, RCA declared the patents
657 invalid
—baselessly, and almost fifteen years after they were
658 issued. It thus refused to pay him royalties. For six years, Armstrong
659 fought an expensive war of litigation to defend the patents. Finally,
660 just as the patents expired, RCA offered a settlement so low that it
661 would not even cover Armstrong's lawyers' fees. Defeated, broken, and
662 now broke, in
1954 Armstrong wrote a short note to his wife and then
663 stepped out of a thirteenth-story window to his death.
665 <indexterm startref='idxfmradio' class='endofrange'
/>
666 <indexterm startref='idxarmstrongedwinhoward' class='endofrange'
/>
667 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
668 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
670 This is how the law sometimes works. Not often this tragically, and
671 rarely with heroic drama, but sometimes, this is how it works. From
672 the beginning, government and government agencies have been subject to
673 capture. They are more likely captured when a powerful interest is
674 threatened by either a legal or technical change. That powerful
675 interest too often exerts its influence within the government to get
676 the government to protect it. The rhetoric of this protection is of
677 course always public spirited; the reality is something
678 different. Ideas that were as solid as rock in one age, but that, left
679 to themselves, would crumble in
681 another, are sustained through this subtle corruption of our political
682 process. RCA had what the Causbys did not: the power to stifle the
683 effect of technological change.
685 <indexterm startref='idxrca' class='endofrange'
/>
686 <indexterm startref='idxmediaownershipconcentrationin' class='endofrange'
/>
687 <indexterm id='idxinternetdevelopmentof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>development of
</secondary></indexterm>
689 <emphasis role=
"strong">There's no
</emphasis> single inventor of the Internet. Nor is there any good date
690 upon which to mark its birth. Yet in a very short time, the Internet
691 has become part of ordinary American life. According to the Pew
692 Internet and American Life Project,
58 percent of Americans had access
693 to the Internet in
2002, up from
49 percent two years
694 before.
<footnote><para>
695 Amanda Lenhart,
<quote>The Ever-Shifting Internet Population: A New Look at
696 Internet Access and the Digital Divide,
</quote> Pew Internet and American
697 Life Project,
15 April
2003:
6, available at
698 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
2</ulink>.
700 That number could well exceed two thirds of the nation by the end
704 As the Internet has been integrated into ordinary life, it has
705 changed things. Some of these changes are technical
—the Internet has
706 made communication faster, it has lowered the cost of gathering data,
707 and so on. These technical changes are not the focus of this book. They
708 are important. They are not well understood. But they are the sort of
709 thing that would simply go away if we all just switched the Internet off.
710 They don't affect people who don't use the Internet, or at least they
711 don't affect them directly. They are the proper subject of a book about
712 the Internet. But this is not a book about the Internet.
715 Instead, this book is about an effect of the Internet beyond the
716 Internet itself: an effect upon how culture is made. My claim is that
717 the Internet has induced an important and unrecognized change in that
718 process. That change will radically transform a tradition that is as
719 old as the Republic itself. Most, if they recognized this change,
720 would reject it. Yet most don't even see the change that the Internet
723 <indexterm startref='idxinternetdevelopmentof' class='endofrange'
/>
724 <indexterm><primary>Barlow, Joel
</primary></indexterm>
725 <indexterm id='idxculturecommercialvsnoncommercial' class='startofrange'
><primary>culture
</primary><secondary>commercial vs. noncommercial
</secondary></indexterm>
726 <indexterm><primary>Webster, Noah
</primary></indexterm>
728 We can glimpse a sense of this change by distinguishing between
729 commercial and noncommercial culture, and by mapping the law's
730 regulation of each. By
<quote>commercial culture
</quote> I mean that part of our
731 culture that is produced and sold or produced to be sold. By
732 <quote>noncommercial culture
</quote> I mean all the rest. When old men sat around
734 <!-- PAGE BREAK 23 -->
735 street corners telling stories that kids and others consumed, that was
736 noncommercial culture. When Noah Webster published his
<quote>Reader,
</quote> or
737 Joel Barlow his poetry, that was commercial culture.
740 At the beginning of our history, and for just about the whole of our
741 tradition, noncommercial culture was essentially unregulated. Of
742 course, if your stories were lewd, or if your song disturbed the
743 peace, then the law might intervene. But the law was never directly
744 concerned with the creation or spread of this form of culture, and it
745 left this culture
<quote>free.
</quote> The ordinary ways in which ordinary
746 individuals shared and transformed their culture
—telling
747 stories, reenacting scenes from plays or TV, participating in fan
748 clubs, sharing music, making tapes
—were left alone by the law.
750 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitscommercialcreativityasprimarypurposeof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>commercial creativity as primary purpose of
</secondary></indexterm>
752 The focus of the law was on commercial creativity. At first slightly,
753 then quite extensively, the law protected the incentives of creators by
754 granting them exclusive rights to their creative work, so that they could
755 sell those exclusive rights in a commercial
756 marketplace.
<footnote>
758 This is not the only purpose of copyright, though it is the overwhelmingly
759 primary purpose of the copyright established in the federal constitution.
760 State copyright law historically protected not just the commercial interest in
761 publication, but also a privacy interest. By granting authors the exclusive
762 right to first publication, state copyright law gave authors the power to
763 control the spread of facts about them. See Samuel D. Warren and Louis
764 D. Brandeis,
<quote>The Right to Privacy,
</quote> Harvard Law Review
4 (
1890):
193,
766 <indexterm><primary>Brandeis, Louis D.
</primary></indexterm>
768 This is also, of course, an important part of creativity and culture,
769 and it has become an increasingly important part in America. But in no
770 sense was it dominant within our tradition. It was instead just one
771 part, a controlled part, balanced with the free.
773 <indexterm><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary> permission culture vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
774 <indexterm><primary>permission culture
</primary><secondary> free culture vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
776 This rough divide between the free and the controlled has now
777 been erased.
<footnote><para>
778 See Jessica Litman,
<citetitle>Digital Copyright
</citetitle> (New York: Prometheus Books,
780 <indexterm><primary>Litman, Jessica
</primary></indexterm>
782 The Internet has set the stage for this erasure and, pushed by big
783 media, the law has now affected it. For the first time in our
784 tradition, the ordinary ways in which individuals create and share
785 culture fall within the reach of the regulation of the law, which has
786 expanded to draw within its control a vast amount of culture and
787 creativity that it never reached before. The technology that preserved
788 the balance of our history
—between uses of our culture that were
789 free and uses of our culture that were only upon permission
—has
790 been undone. The consequence is that we are less and less a free
791 culture, more and more a permission culture.
793 <!-- PAGE BREAK 24 -->
794 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
795 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
796 <indexterm><primary>protection of artists vs. business interests
</primary></indexterm>
798 This change gets justified as necessary to protect commercial
799 creativity. And indeed, protectionism is precisely its
800 motivation. But the protectionism that justifies the changes that I
801 will describe below is not the limited and balanced sort that has
802 defined the law in the past. This is not a protectionism to protect
803 artists. It is instead a protectionism to protect certain forms of
804 business. Corporations threatened by the potential of the Internet to
805 change the way both commercial and noncommercial culture are made and
806 shared have united to induce lawmakers to use the law to protect
807 them. It is the story of RCA and Armstrong; it is the dream of the
810 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitscommercialcreativityasprimarypurposeof' class='endofrange'
/>
812 For the Internet has unleashed an extraordinary possibility for many
813 to participate in the process of building and cultivating a culture
814 that reaches far beyond local boundaries. That power has changed the
815 marketplace for making and cultivating culture generally, and that
816 change in turn threatens established content industries. The Internet
817 is thus to the industries that built and distributed content in the
818 twentieth century what FM radio was to AM radio, or what the truck was
819 to the railroad industry of the nineteenth century: the beginning of
820 the end, or at least a substantial transformation. Digital
821 technologies, tied to the Internet, could produce a vastly more
822 competitive and vibrant market for building and cultivating culture;
823 that market could include a much wider and more diverse range of
824 creators; those creators could produce and distribute a much more
825 vibrant range of creativity; and depending upon a few important
826 factors, those creators could earn more on average from this system
827 than creators do today
—all so long as the RCAs of our day don't
828 use the law to protect themselves against this competition.
831 Yet, as I argue in the pages that follow, that is precisely what is
832 happening in our culture today. These modern-day equivalents of the
833 early twentieth-century radio or nineteenth-century railroads are
834 using their power to get the law to protect them against this new,
835 more efficient, more vibrant technology for building culture. They are
836 succeeding in their plan to remake the Internet before the Internet
839 <indexterm startref='idxculturecommercialvsnoncommercial' class='endofrange'
/>
840 <indexterm><primary>Valenti, Jack
</primary><secondary> on creative property rights
</secondary></indexterm>
842 It doesn't seem this way to many. The battles over copyright and the
843 <!-- PAGE BREAK 25 -->
844 Internet seem remote to most. To the few who follow them, they seem
845 mainly about a much simpler brace of questions
—whether
<quote>piracy
</quote> will
846 be permitted, and whether
<quote>property
</quote> will be protected. The
<quote>war
</quote> that
847 has been waged against the technologies of the Internet
—what
848 Motion Picture Association of America (MPAA) president Jack Valenti
849 calls his
<quote>own terrorist war
</quote><footnote><para>
850 Amy Harmon,
<quote>Black Hawk Download: Moving Beyond Music, Pirates
851 Use New Tools to Turn the Net into an Illicit Video Club,
</quote> <citetitle>New York
852 Times
</citetitle>,
17 January
2002.
853 </para></footnote>—has been framed as a battle about the
854 rule of law and respect for property. To know which side to take in this
855 war, most think that we need only decide whether we're for property or
859 If those really were the choices, then I would be with Jack Valenti
860 and the content industry. I, too, am a believer in property, and
861 especially in the importance of what Mr. Valenti nicely calls
862 <quote>creative property.
</quote> I believe that
<quote>piracy
</quote> is wrong, and that the
863 law, properly tuned, should punish
<quote>piracy,
</quote> whether on or off the
867 But those simple beliefs mask a much more fundamental question
868 and a much more dramatic change. My fear is that unless we come to see
869 this change, the war to rid the world of Internet
<quote>pirates
</quote> will also rid our
870 culture of values that have been integral to our tradition from the start.
872 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>First Amendment to
</secondary></indexterm>
873 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>as protection of creators
</secondary></indexterm>
874 <indexterm><primary>First Amendment
</primary></indexterm>
875 <indexterm><primary>Netanel, Neil Weinstock
</primary></indexterm>
877 These values built a tradition that, for at least the first
180 years of
878 our Republic, guaranteed creators the right to build freely upon their
879 past, and protected creators and innovators from either state or private
880 control. The First Amendment protected creators against state control.
881 And as Professor Neil Netanel powerfully argues,
<footnote>
883 Neil W. Netanel,
<quote>Copyright and a Democratic Civil Society,
</quote> <citetitle>Yale Law
884 Journal
</citetitle> 106 (
1996):
283.
885 <indexterm><primary>Netanel, Neil Weinstock
</primary></indexterm>
887 copyright law, properly balanced, protected creators against private
888 control. Our tradition was thus neither Soviet nor the tradition of
889 patrons. It instead carved out a wide berth within which creators
890 could cultivate and extend our culture.
893 Yet the law's response to the Internet, when tied to changes in the
894 technology of the Internet itself, has massively increased the
895 effective regulation of creativity in America. To build upon or
896 critique the culture around us one must ask, Oliver Twist
–like,
897 for permission first. Permission is, of course, often
898 granted
—but it is not often granted to the critical or the
899 independent. We have built a kind of cultural nobility; those within
900 the noble class live easily; those outside it don't. But it is
901 nobility of any form that is alien to our tradition.
903 <!-- PAGE BREAK 26. FIXME: Should "Is it" be "It is" ? -->
905 The story that follows is about this war. Is it not about the
906 <quote>centrality of technology
</quote> to ordinary life. I don't believe in gods,
907 digital or otherwise. Nor is it an effort to demonize any individual
908 or group, for neither do I believe in a devil, corporate or
909 otherwise. It is not a morality tale. Nor is it a call to jihad
913 It is instead an effort to understand a hopelessly destructive war
914 inspired by the technologies of the Internet but reaching far beyond
915 its code. And by understanding this battle, it is an effort to map
916 peace. There is no good reason for the current struggle around
917 Internet technologies to continue. There will be great harm to our
918 tradition and culture if it is allowed to continue unchecked. We must
919 come to understand the source of this war. We must resolve it soon.
921 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
922 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
923 <indexterm id='idxintellectualpropertyrights' class='startofrange'
><primary>intellectual property rights
</primary></indexterm>
925 <emphasis role=
"strong">Like the Causbys'
</emphasis> battle, this war is, in part, about
<quote>property.
</quote> The
926 property of this war is not as tangible as the Causbys', and no
927 innocent chicken has yet to lose its life. Yet the ideas surrounding
928 this
<quote>property
</quote> are as obvious to most as the Causbys' claim about the
929 sacredness of their farm was to them. We are the Causbys. Most of us
930 take for granted the extraordinarily powerful claims that the owners
931 of
<quote>intellectual property
</quote> now assert. Most of us, like the Causbys,
932 treat these claims as obvious. And hence we, like the Causbys, object
933 when a new technology interferes with this property. It is as plain to
934 us as it was to them that the new technologies of the Internet are
935 <quote>trespassing
</quote> upon legitimate claims of
<quote>property.
</quote> It is as plain to
936 us as it was to them that the law should intervene to stop this
939 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
940 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
941 <indexterm><primary>Wright brothers
</primary></indexterm>
943 And thus, when geeks and technologists defend their Armstrong or
944 Wright brothers technology, most of us are simply unsympathetic.
945 Common sense does not revolt. Unlike in the case of the unlucky
946 Causbys, common sense is on the side of the property owners in this
949 the lucky Wright brothers, the Internet has not inspired a revolution
952 <indexterm><primary>power, concentration of
</primary></indexterm>
954 My hope is to push this common sense along. I have become increasingly
955 amazed by the power of this idea of intellectual property and, more
956 importantly, its power to disable critical thought by policy makers
957 and citizens. There has never been a time in our history when more of
958 our
<quote>culture
</quote> was as
<quote>owned
</quote> as it is now. And yet there has never
959 been a time when the concentration of power to control the
960 <emphasis>uses
</emphasis> of culture has been as unquestioningly
961 accepted as it is now.
964 The puzzle is, Why? Is it because we have come to understand a truth
965 about the value and importance of absolute property over ideas and
966 culture? Is it because we have discovered that our tradition of
967 rejecting such an absolute claim was wrong?
970 Or is it because the idea of absolute property over ideas and culture
971 benefits the RCAs of our time and fits our own unreflective intuitions?
974 Is the radical shift away from our tradition of free culture an instance
975 of America correcting a mistake from its past, as we did after a bloody
976 war with slavery, and as we are slowly doing with inequality? Or is the
977 radical shift away from our tradition of free culture yet another example
978 of a political system captured by a few powerful special interests?
981 Does common sense lead to the extremes on this question because common
982 sense actually believes in these extremes? Or does common sense stand
983 silent in the face of these extremes because, as with Armstrong versus
984 RCA, the more powerful side has ensured that it has the more powerful
987 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
988 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
990 I don't mean to be mysterious. My own views are resolved. I believe it
991 was right for common sense to revolt against the extremism of the
992 Causbys. I believe it would be right for common sense to revolt
993 against the extreme claims made today on behalf of
<quote>intellectual
994 property.
</quote> What the law demands today is increasingly as silly as a
995 sheriff arresting an airplane for trespass. But the consequences of
996 this silliness will be much more profound.
997 <!-- PAGE BREAK 28 -->
999 <indexterm startref='idxintellectualpropertyrights' class='endofrange'
/>
1001 <emphasis role=
"strong">The struggle
</emphasis> that rages just now centers on two ideas:
<quote>piracy
</quote> and
1002 <quote>property.
</quote> My aim in this book's next two parts is to explore these two
1006 My method is not the usual method of an academic. I don't want to
1007 plunge you into a complex argument, buttressed with references to
1008 obscure French theorists
—however natural that is for the weird
1009 sort we academics have become. Instead I begin in each part with a
1010 collection of stories that set a context within which these apparently
1011 simple ideas can be more fully understood.
1014 The two sections set up the core claim of this book: that while the
1015 Internet has indeed produced something fantastic and new, our
1016 government, pushed by big media to respond to this
<quote>something new,
</quote> is
1017 destroying something very old. Rather than understanding the changes
1018 the Internet might permit, and rather than taking time to let
<quote>common
1019 sense
</quote> resolve how best to respond, we are allowing those most
1020 threatened by the changes to use their power to change the
1021 law
—and more importantly, to use their power to change something
1022 fundamental about who we have always been.
1025 We allow this, I believe, not because it is right, and not because
1026 most of us really believe in these changes. We allow it because the
1027 interests most threatened are among the most powerful players in our
1028 depressingly compromised process of making law. This book is the story
1029 of one more consequence of this form of corruption
—a consequence
1030 to which most of us remain oblivious.
1033 <!-- PAGE BREAK 29 -->
1034 <part id=
"c-piracy">
1035 <title><quote>PIRACY
</quote></title>
1037 <!-- PAGE BREAK 30 -->
1038 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>English
</secondary></indexterm>
1039 <indexterm id='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord' class='startofrange'
><primary>Mansfield, William Murray, Lord
</primary></indexterm>
1040 <indexterm><primary>music publishing
</primary></indexterm>
1041 <indexterm><primary>sheet music
</primary></indexterm>
1043 <emphasis role=
"strong">Since the inception
</emphasis> of the law regulating creative property, there has
1044 been a war against
<quote>piracy.
</quote> The precise contours of this concept,
1045 <quote>piracy,
</quote> are hard to sketch, but the animating injustice is easy to
1046 capture. As Lord Mansfield wrote in a case that extended the reach of
1047 English copyright law to include sheet music,
1051 A person may use the copy by playing it, but he has no right to
1052 rob the author of the profit, by multiplying copies and disposing
1053 of them for his own use.
<footnote><para>
1055 <citetitle>Bach
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Longman
</citetitle>,
98 Eng. Rep.
1274 (
1777) (Mansfield).
1058 <indexterm startref='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord' class='endofrange'
/>
1060 <indexterm><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary> efficient content distribution on
</secondary></indexterm>
1061 <indexterm id='idxpeertopeerppfilesharingefficiencyof' class='startofrange'
><primary>peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing
</primary><secondary>efficiency of
</secondary></indexterm>
1063 Today we are in the middle of another
<quote>war
</quote> against
<quote>piracy.
</quote> The
1064 Internet has provoked this war. The Internet makes possible the
1065 efficient spread of content. Peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing is among
1066 the most efficient of the efficient technologies the Internet
1067 enables. Using distributed intelligence, p2p systems facilitate the
1068 easy spread of content in a way unimagined a generation ago.
1069 <!-- PAGE BREAK 31 -->
1072 This efficiency does not respect the traditional lines of copyright.
1073 The network doesn't discriminate between the sharing of copyrighted
1074 and uncopyrighted content. Thus has there been a vast amount of
1075 sharing of copyrighted content. That sharing in turn has excited the
1076 war, as copyright owners fear the sharing will
<quote>rob the author of the
1079 <indexterm startref='idxpeertopeerppfilesharingefficiencyof' class='endofrange'
/>
1081 The warriors have turned to the courts, to the legislatures, and
1082 increasingly to technology to defend their
<quote>property
</quote> against this
1083 <quote>piracy.
</quote> A generation of Americans, the warriors warn, is being
1084 raised to believe that
<quote>property
</quote> should be
<quote>free.
</quote> Forget tattoos,
1085 never mind body piercing
—our kids are becoming
1086 <emphasis>thieves
</emphasis>!
1089 There's no doubt that
<quote>piracy
</quote> is wrong, and that pirates should be
1090 punished. But before we summon the executioners, we should put this
1091 notion of
<quote>piracy
</quote> in some context. For as the concept is increasingly
1092 used, at its core is an extraordinary idea that is almost certainly wrong.
1095 The idea goes something like this:
1099 Creative work has value; whenever I use, or take, or build upon
1100 the creative work of others, I am taking from them something of
1101 value. Whenever I take something of value from someone else, I
1102 should have their permission. The taking of something of value
1103 from someone else without permission is wrong. It is a form of
1107 <indexterm><primary>ASCAP
</primary></indexterm>
1108 <indexterm><primary>Dreyfuss, Rochelle
</primary></indexterm>
1109 <indexterm><primary>Girl Scouts
</primary></indexterm>
1110 <indexterm id='idxcreativepropertyifvaluethenrighttheoryof' class='startofrange'
><primary>creative property
</primary><secondary><quote>if value, then right
</quote> theory of
</secondary></indexterm>
1111 <indexterm id='idxifvaluethenrighttheory' class='startofrange'
><primary><quote>if value, then right
</quote> theory
</primary></indexterm>
1113 This view runs deep within the current debates. It is what NYU law
1114 professor Rochelle Dreyfuss criticizes as the
<quote>if value, then right
</quote>
1115 theory of creative property
<footnote><para>
1117 See Rochelle Dreyfuss,
<quote>Expressive Genericity: Trademarks as Language
1118 in the Pepsi Generation,
</quote> <citetitle>Notre Dame Law Review
</citetitle> 65 (
1990):
397.
1120 —if there is value, then someone must have a
1121 right to that value. It is the perspective that led a composers' rights
1122 organization, ASCAP, to sue the Girl Scouts for failing to pay for the
1123 songs that girls sang around Girl Scout campfires.
<footnote><para>
1125 Lisa Bannon,
<quote>The Birds May Sing, but Campers Can't Unless They Pay
1126 Up,
</quote> <citetitle>Wall Street Journal
</citetitle>,
21 August
1996, available at
1127 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
3</ulink>; Jonathan
1128 Zittrain,
<quote>Calling Off the Copyright War: In Battle of Property vs. Free
1129 Speech, No One Wins,
</quote> <citetitle>Boston Globe
</citetitle>,
24 November
2002.
1130 <indexterm><primary>Zittrain, Jonathan
</primary></indexterm>
1132 There was
<quote>value
</quote> (the songs) so there must have been a
1133 <quote>right
</quote>—even against the Girl Scouts.
1135 <indexterm startref='idxcreativepropertyifvaluethenrighttheoryof' class='endofrange'
/>
1137 This idea is certainly a possible understanding of how creative
1138 property should work. It might well be a possible design for a system
1139 <!-- PAGE BREAK 32 -->
1140 of law protecting creative property. But the
<quote>if value, then right
</quote>
1141 theory of creative property has never been America's theory of
1142 creative property. It has never taken hold within our law.
1144 <indexterm startref='idxifvaluethenrighttheory' class='endofrange'
/>
1145 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work
</secondary></indexterm>
1146 <indexterm id='idxcreativitylegalrestrictionson' class='startofrange'
><primary>creativity
</primary><secondary>legal restrictions on
</secondary></indexterm>
1148 Instead, in our tradition, intellectual property is an instrument. It
1149 sets the groundwork for a richly creative society but remains
1150 subservient to the value of creativity. The current debate has this
1151 turned around. We have become so concerned with protecting the
1152 instrument that we are losing sight of the value.
1155 The source of this confusion is a distinction that the law no longer
1156 takes care to draw
—the distinction between republishing someone's
1157 work on the one hand and building upon or transforming that work on
1158 the other. Copyright law at its birth had only publishing as its concern;
1159 copyright law today regulates both.
1161 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork' class='endofrange'
/>
1163 Before the technologies of the Internet, this conflation didn't matter
1164 all that much. The technologies of publishing were expensive; that
1165 meant the vast majority of publishing was commercial. Commercial
1166 entities could bear the burden of the law
—even the burden of the
1167 Byzantine complexity that copyright law has become. It was just one
1168 more expense of doing business.
1170 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>creativity impeded by
</secondary></indexterm>
1171 <indexterm><primary>Florida, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
1172 <indexterm><primary>Rise of the Creative Class, The (Florida)
</primary></indexterm>
1174 But with the birth of the Internet, this natural limit to the reach of
1175 the law has disappeared. The law controls not just the creativity of
1176 commercial creators but effectively that of anyone. Although that
1177 expansion would not matter much if copyright law regulated only
1178 <quote>copying,
</quote> when the law regulates as broadly and obscurely as it does,
1179 the extension matters a lot. The burden of this law now vastly
1180 outweighs any original benefit
—certainly as it affects
1181 noncommercial creativity, and increasingly as it affects commercial
1182 creativity as well. Thus, as we'll see more clearly in the chapters
1183 below, the law's role is less and less to support creativity, and more
1184 and more to protect certain industries against competition. Just at
1185 the time digital technology could unleash an extraordinary range of
1186 commercial and noncommercial creativity, the law burdens this
1187 creativity with insanely complex and vague rules and with the threat
1188 of obscenely severe penalties. We may
1189 <!-- PAGE BREAK 33 -->
1190 be seeing, as Richard Florida writes, the
<quote>Rise of the Creative
1191 Class.
</quote><footnote>
1194 In
<citetitle>The Rise of the Creative Class
</citetitle> (New York:
1195 Basic Books,
2002), Richard Florida documents a shift in the nature of
1196 labor toward a labor of creativity. His work, however, doesn't
1197 directly address the legal conditions under which that creativity is
1198 enabled or stifled. I certainly agree with him about the importance
1199 and significance of this change, but I also believe the conditions
1200 under which it will be enabled are much more tenuous.
1202 <indexterm><primary>Florida, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
1203 <indexterm><primary>Rise of the Creative Class, The (Florida)
</primary></indexterm>
1205 Unfortunately, we are also seeing an extraordinary rise of regulation of
1206 this creative class.
1208 <indexterm startref='idxcreativitylegalrestrictionson' class='endofrange'
/>
1210 These burdens make no sense in our tradition. We should begin by
1211 understanding that tradition a bit more and by placing in their proper
1212 context the current battles about behavior labeled
<quote>piracy.
</quote>
1216 <!-- PAGE BREAK 34 -->
1217 <chapter label=
"1" id=
"creators">
1218 <title>CHAPTER ONE: Creators
</title>
1219 <indexterm id='idxanimatedcartoons' class='startofrange'
><primary>animated cartoons
</primary></indexterm>
1220 <indexterm id='idxcartoonfilms' class='startofrange'
><primary>cartoon films
</primary></indexterm>
1221 <indexterm id='idxfilmsanimated' class='startofrange'
><primary>films
</primary><secondary>animated
</secondary></indexterm>
1222 <indexterm id='idxsteamboatwillie' class='startofrange'
><primary>Steamboat Willie
</primary></indexterm>
1223 <indexterm id='idxmickeymouse' class='startofrange'
><primary>Mickey Mouse
</primary></indexterm>
1225 <emphasis role=
"strong">In
1928</emphasis>, a cartoon character was born. An early Mickey Mouse
1226 made his debut in May of that year, in a silent flop called
<citetitle>Plane Crazy
</citetitle>.
1227 In November, in New York City's Colony Theater, in the first widely
1228 distributed cartoon synchronized with sound,
<citetitle>Steamboat Willie
</citetitle> brought
1229 to life the character that would become Mickey Mouse.
1231 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1233 Synchronized sound had been introduced to film a year earlier in the
1234 movie
<citetitle>The Jazz Singer
</citetitle>. That success led Walt Disney to copy the
1235 technique and mix sound with cartoons. No one knew whether it would
1236 work or, if it did work, whether it would win an audience. But when
1237 Disney ran a test in the summer of
1928, the results were unambiguous.
1238 As Disney describes that first experiment,
1242 A couple of my boys could read music, and one of them could play
1243 a mouth organ. We put them in a room where they could not see
1244 the screen and arranged to pipe their sound into the room where
1245 our wives and friends were going to see the picture.
1246 <!-- PAGE BREAK 35 -->
1249 The boys worked from a music and sound-effects score. After several
1250 false starts, sound and action got off with the gun. The mouth
1251 organist played the tune, the rest of us in the sound department
1252 bammed tin pans and blew slide whistles on the beat. The
1253 synchronization was pretty close.
1256 The effect on our little audience was nothing less than electric.
1257 They responded almost instinctively to this union of sound and
1258 motion. I thought they were kidding me. So they put me in the audience
1259 and ran the action again. It was terrible, but it was wonderful! And
1260 it was something new!
<footnote><para>
1262 Leonard Maltin,
<citetitle>Of Mice and Magic: A History of American Animated
1263 Cartoons
</citetitle> (New York: Penguin Books,
1987),
34–35.
1267 <indexterm><primary>Iwerks, Ub
</primary></indexterm>
1269 Disney's then partner, and one of animation's most extraordinary
1270 talents, Ub Iwerks, put it more strongly:
<quote>I have never been so thrilled
1271 in my life. Nothing since has ever equaled it.
</quote>
1274 Disney had created something very new, based upon something relatively
1275 new. Synchronized sound brought life to a form of creativity that had
1276 rarely
—except in Disney's hands
—been anything more than
1277 filler for other films. Throughout animation's early history, it was
1278 Disney's invention that set the standard that others struggled to
1279 match. And quite often, Disney's great genius, his spark of
1280 creativity, was built upon the work of others.
1282 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt' class='endofrange'
/>
1283 <indexterm id='idxkeatonbuster' class='startofrange'
><primary>Keaton, Buster
</primary></indexterm>
1284 <indexterm id='idxsteamboatbilljr' class='startofrange'
><primary>Steamboat Bill, Jr.
</primary></indexterm>
1286 This much is familiar. What you might not know is that
1928 also marks
1287 another important transition. In that year, a comic (as opposed to
1288 cartoon) genius created his last independently produced silent film.
1289 That genius was Buster Keaton. The film was
<citetitle>Steamboat Bill, Jr
</citetitle>.
1292 Keaton was born into a vaudeville family in
1895. In the era of silent
1293 film, he had mastered using broad physical comedy as a way to spark
1294 uncontrollable laughter from his audience.
<citetitle>Steamboat Bill,
1295 Jr
</citetitle>. was a classic of this form, famous among film buffs for its
1296 incredible stunts. The film was classic Keaton
—wildly popular
1297 and among the best of its genre.
1299 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>piracy vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
1300 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
1302 <citetitle>Steamboat Bill, Jr
</citetitle>. appeared before Disney's cartoon Steamboat
1304 <!-- PAGE BREAK 36 -->
1305 The coincidence of titles is not coincidental. Steamboat Willie is a
1306 direct cartoon parody of Steamboat Bill,
<footnote><para>
1308 I am grateful to David Gerstein and his careful history, described at
1309 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
4</ulink>.
1310 According to Dave Smith of the Disney Archives, Disney paid royalties to
1311 use the music for five songs in
<citetitle>Steamboat Willie
</citetitle>:
<quote>Steamboat Bill,
</quote> <quote>The
1312 Simpleton
</quote> (Delille),
<quote>Mischief Makers
</quote> (Carbonara),
<quote>Joyful Hurry No.
1</quote>
1313 (Baron), and
<quote>Gawky Rube
</quote> (Lakay). A sixth song,
<quote>The Turkey in the
1314 Straw,
</quote> was already in the public domain. Letter from David Smith to
1315 Harry Surden,
10 July
2003, on file with author.
1317 and both are built upon a common song as a source. It is not just from
1318 the invention of synchronized sound in
<citetitle>The Jazz Singer
</citetitle> that we
1319 get
<citetitle>Steamboat Willie
</citetitle>. It is also from Buster Keaton's invention of
1320 Steamboat Bill, Jr., itself inspired by the song
<quote>Steamboat Bill,
</quote>
1321 that we get Steamboat Willie, and then from Steamboat Willie, Mickey
1324 <indexterm startref='idxsteamboatwillie' class='endofrange'
/>
1325 <indexterm startref='idxmickeymouse' class='endofrange'
/>
1326 <indexterm startref='idxkeatonbuster' class='endofrange'
/>
1327 <indexterm startref='idxsteamboatbilljr' class='endofrange'
/>
1328 <indexterm id='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks' class='startofrange'
><primary>creativity
</primary><secondary>by transforming previous works
</secondary></indexterm>
1329 <indexterm id='idxdisneyinc' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Inc.
</primary></indexterm>
1331 This
<quote>borrowing
</quote> was nothing unique, either for Disney or for the
1332 industry. Disney was always parroting the feature-length mainstream
1333 films of his day.
<footnote><para>
1335 He was also a fan of the public domain. See Chris Sprigman,
<quote>The Mouse
1336 that Ate the Public Domain,
</quote> Findlaw,
5 March
2002, at
1337 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
5</ulink>.
1339 So did many others. Early cartoons are filled with
1340 knockoffs
—slight variations on winning themes; retellings of
1341 ancient stories. The key to success was the brilliance of the
1342 differences. With Disney, it was sound that gave his animation its
1343 spark. Later, it was the quality of his work relative to the
1344 production-line cartoons with which he competed. Yet these additions
1345 were built upon a base that was borrowed. Disney added to the work of
1346 others before him, creating something new out of something just barely
1349 <indexterm id='idxgrimmfairytales' class='startofrange'
><primary>Grimm fairy tales
</primary></indexterm>
1351 Sometimes this borrowing was slight. Sometimes it was significant.
1352 Think about the fairy tales of the Brothers Grimm. If you're as
1353 oblivious as I was, you're likely to think that these tales are happy,
1354 sweet stories, appropriate for any child at bedtime. In fact, the
1355 Grimm fairy tales are, well, for us, grim. It is a rare and perhaps
1356 overly ambitious parent who would dare to read these bloody,
1357 moralistic stories to his or her child, at bedtime or anytime.
1360 Disney took these stories and retold them in a way that carried them
1361 into a new age. He animated the stories, with both characters and
1362 light. Without removing the elements of fear and danger altogether, he
1363 made funny what was dark and injected a genuine emotion of compassion
1364 where before there was fear. And not just with the work of the
1365 Brothers Grimm. Indeed, the catalog of Disney work drawing upon the
1366 work of others is astonishing when set together:
<citetitle>Snow White
</citetitle>
1367 (
1937),
<citetitle>Fantasia
</citetitle> (
1940),
<citetitle>Pinocchio
</citetitle> (
1940),
<citetitle>Dumbo
</citetitle>
1368 (
1941),
<citetitle>Bambi
</citetitle> (
1942),
<citetitle>Song of the South
</citetitle> (
1946),
1369 <citetitle>Cinderella
</citetitle> (
1950),
<citetitle>Alice in Wonderland
</citetitle> (
1951),
<citetitle>Robin
1370 Hood
</citetitle> (
1952),
<citetitle>Peter Pan
</citetitle> (
1953),
<citetitle>Lady and the Tramp
</citetitle>
1371 <!-- PAGE BREAK 37 -->
1372 (
1955),
<citetitle>Mulan
</citetitle> (
1998),
<citetitle>Sleeping Beauty
</citetitle> (
1959),
<citetitle>101
1373 Dalmatians
</citetitle> (
1961),
<citetitle>The Sword in the Stone
</citetitle> (
1963), and
1374 <citetitle>The Jungle Book
</citetitle> (
1967)
—not to mention a recent example
1375 that we should perhaps quickly forget,
<citetitle>Treasure Planet
</citetitle>
1376 (
2003). In all of these cases, Disney (or Disney, Inc.) ripped
1377 creativity from the culture around him, mixed that creativity with his
1378 own extraordinary talent, and then burned that mix into the soul of
1379 his culture. Rip, mix, and burn.
1381 <indexterm startref='idxgrimmfairytales' class='endofrange'
/>
1383 This is a kind of creativity. It is a creativity that we should
1384 remember and celebrate. There are some who would say that there is no
1385 creativity except this kind. We don't need to go that far to recognize
1386 its importance. We could call this
<quote>Disney creativity,
</quote> though that
1387 would be a bit misleading. It is, more precisely,
<quote>Walt Disney
1388 creativity
</quote>—a form of expression and genius that builds upon the
1389 culture around us and makes it something different.
1391 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs' class='endofrange'
/>
1392 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs' class='endofrange'
/>
1393 <indexterm startref='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks' class='endofrange'
/>
1394 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
1395 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomaindefined' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>defined
</secondary></indexterm>
1396 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomaintraditionaltermforconversionto' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>traditional term for conversion to
</secondary></indexterm>
1397 <para> In
1928, the culture that Disney was free to draw upon was
1398 relatively fresh. The public domain in
1928 was not very old and was
1399 therefore quite vibrant. The average term of copyright was just around
1400 thirty years
—for that minority of creative work that was in fact
1401 copyrighted.
<footnote><para>
1403 Until
1976, copyright law granted an author the possibility of two terms: an
1404 initial term and a renewal term. I have calculated the
<quote>average
</quote> term by
1406 the weighted average of total registrations for any particular year,
1407 and the proportion renewing. Thus, if
100 copyrights are registered in year
1408 1, and only
15 are renewed, and the renewal term is
28 years, then the
1410 term is
32.2 years. For the renewal data and other relevant data, see the
1411 Web site associated with this book, available at
1412 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
6</ulink>.
1414 That means that for thirty years, on average, the authors or
1415 copyright holders of a creative work had an
<quote>exclusive right
</quote> to control
1416 certain uses of the work. To use this copyrighted work in limited ways
1417 required the permission of the copyright owner.
1420 At the end of a copyright term, a work passes into the public domain.
1421 No permission is then needed to draw upon or use that work. No
1422 permission and, hence, no lawyers. The public domain is a
<quote>lawyer-free
1423 zone.
</quote> Thus, most of the content from the nineteenth century was free
1424 for Disney to use and build upon in
1928. It was free for
1425 anyone
— whether connected or not, whether rich or not, whether
1426 approved or not
—to use and build upon.
1428 <indexterm startref='idxanimatedcartoons' class='endofrange'
/>
1429 <indexterm startref='idxfilmsanimated' class='endofrange'
/>
1431 This is the ways things always were
—until quite recently. For most
1432 of our history, the public domain was just over the horizon. From
1433 until
1978, the average copyright term was never more than thirty-two
1434 years, meaning that most culture just a generation and a half old was
1436 <!-- PAGE BREAK 38 -->
1437 free for anyone to build upon without the permission of anyone else.
1438 Today's equivalent would be for creative work from the
1960s and
1970s
1439 to now be free for the next Walt Disney to build upon without
1440 permission. Yet today, the public domain is presumptive only for
1441 content from before the Great Depression.
1443 <indexterm startref='idxcartoonfilms' class='endofrange'
/>
1444 <indexterm startref='idxdisneyinc' class='endofrange'
/>
1445 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof' class='endofrange'
/>
1446 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomaindefined' class='endofrange'
/>
1447 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomaintraditionaltermforconversionto' class='endofrange'
/>
1448 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1450 <emphasis role=
"strong">Of course
</emphasis>, Walt Disney had no monopoly on
<quote>Walt Disney creativity.
</quote>
1451 Nor does America. The norm of free culture has, until recently, and
1452 except within totalitarian nations, been broadly exploited and quite
1455 <indexterm id='idxcomicsjapanese' class='startofrange'
><primary>comics, Japanese
</primary></indexterm>
1456 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>piracy vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
1457 <indexterm id='idxjapanesecomics' class='startofrange'
><primary>Japanese comics
</primary></indexterm>
1458 <indexterm id='idxmanga' class='startofrange'
><primary>manga
</primary></indexterm>
1459 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
1461 Consider, for example, a form of creativity that seems strange to many
1462 Americans but that is inescapable within Japanese culture:
<citetitle>manga
</citetitle>, or
1463 comics. The Japanese are fanatics about comics. Some
40 percent of
1464 publications are comics, and
30 percent of publication revenue derives
1465 from comics. They are everywhere in Japanese society, at every
1466 magazine stand, carried by a large proportion of commuters on Japan's
1467 extraordinary system of public transportation.
1470 Americans tend to look down upon this form of culture. That's an
1471 unattractive characteristic of ours. We're likely to misunderstand
1472 much about manga, because few of us have ever read anything close to
1473 the stories that these
<quote>graphic novels
</quote> tell. For the Japanese, manga
1474 cover every aspect of social life. For us, comics are
<quote>men in tights.
</quote>
1475 And anyway, it's not as if the New York subways are filled with
1476 readers of Joyce or even Hemingway. People of different cultures
1477 distract themselves in different ways, the Japanese in this
1478 interestingly different way.
1481 But my purpose here is not to understand manga. It is to describe a
1482 variant on manga that from a lawyer's perspective is quite odd, but
1483 from a Disney perspective is quite familiar.
1485 <indexterm id='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks2' class='startofrange'
><primary>creativity
</primary><secondary>by transforming previous works
</secondary></indexterm>
1486 <indexterm id='idxdoujinshicomics' class='startofrange'
><primary>doujinshi comics
</primary></indexterm>
1488 This is the phenomenon of
<citetitle>doujinshi
</citetitle>. Doujinshi are also comics, but
1489 they are a kind of copycat comic. A rich ethic governs the creation of
1490 doujinshi. It is not doujinshi if it is
<emphasis>just
</emphasis> a
1491 copy; the artist must make a contribution to the art he copies, by
1492 transforming it either subtly or
1493 <!-- PAGE BREAK 39 -->
1494 significantly. A doujinshi comic can thus take a mainstream comic and
1495 develop it differently
—with a different story line. Or the comic can
1496 keep the character in character but change its look slightly. There is no
1497 formula for what makes the doujinshi sufficiently
<quote>different.
</quote> But they
1498 must be different if they are to be considered true doujinshi. Indeed,
1499 there are committees that review doujinshi for inclusion within shows
1500 and reject any copycat comic that is merely a copy.
1502 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1504 These copycat comics are not a tiny part of the manga market. They are
1505 huge. More than
33,
000 <quote>circles
</quote> of creators from across Japan produce
1506 these bits of Walt Disney creativity. More than
450,
000 Japanese come
1507 together twice a year, in the largest public gathering in the country,
1508 to exchange and sell them. This market exists in parallel to the
1509 mainstream commercial manga market. In some ways, it obviously
1510 competes with that market, but there is no sustained effort by those
1511 who control the commercial manga market to shut the doujinshi market
1512 down. It flourishes, despite the competition and despite the law.
1514 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawjapanese' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>Japanese
</secondary></indexterm>
1515 <indexterm><primary>Steamboat Bill, Jr.
</primary></indexterm>
1517 The most puzzling feature of the doujinshi market, for those trained
1518 in the law, at least, is that it is allowed to exist at all. Under
1519 Japanese copyright law, which in this respect (on paper) mirrors
1520 American copyright law, the doujinshi market is an illegal
1521 one. Doujinshi are plainly
<quote>derivative works.
</quote> There is no general
1522 practice by doujinshi artists of securing the permission of the manga
1523 creators. Instead, the practice is simply to take and modify the
1524 creations of others, as Walt Disney did with
<citetitle>Steamboat Bill,
1525 Jr
</citetitle>. Under both Japanese and American law, that
<quote>taking
</quote> without
1526 the permission of the original copyright owner is illegal. It is an
1527 infringement of the original copyright to make a copy or a derivative
1528 work without the original copyright owner's permission.
1530 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt2' class='endofrange'
/>
1531 <indexterm id='idxwinickjudd' class='startofrange'
><primary>Winick, Judd
</primary></indexterm>
1533 Yet this illegal market exists and indeed flourishes in Japan, and in
1534 the view of many, it is precisely because it exists that Japanese manga
1535 flourish. As American graphic novelist Judd Winick said to me,
<quote>The
1536 early days of comics in America are very much like what's going on
1537 in Japan now.
… American comics were born out of copying each
1538 <!-- PAGE BREAK 40 -->
1539 other.
… That's how [the artists] learn to draw
— by going into comic
1540 books and not tracing them, but looking at them and copying them
</quote>
1541 and building from them.
<footnote><para>
1543 For an excellent history, see Scott McCloud,
<citetitle>Reinventing Comics
</citetitle> (New
1544 York: Perennial,
2000).
1547 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawjapanese' class='endofrange'
/>
1548 <indexterm><primary>Superman comics
</primary></indexterm>
1550 American comics now are quite different, Winick explains, in part
1551 because of the legal difficulty of adapting comics the way doujinshi are
1552 allowed. Speaking of Superman, Winick told me,
<quote>there are these rules
1553 and you have to stick to them.
</quote> There are things Superman
<quote>cannot
</quote>
1554 do.
<quote>As a creator, it's frustrating having to stick to some parameters
1555 which are fifty years old.
</quote>
1557 <indexterm startref='idxwinickjudd' class='endofrange'
/>
1558 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawjapanese2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>Japanese
</secondary></indexterm>
1559 <indexterm><primary>comics, Japanese
</primary></indexterm>
1560 <indexterm id='idxmehrasalil' class='startofrange'
><primary>Mehra, Salil
</primary></indexterm>
1562 The norm in Japan mitigates this legal difficulty. Some say it is
1563 precisely the benefit accruing to the Japanese manga market that
1564 explains the mitigation. Temple University law professor Salil Mehra,
1565 for example, hypothesizes that the manga market accepts these
1566 technical violations because they spur the manga market to be more
1567 wealthy and productive. Everyone would be worse off if doujinshi were
1568 banned, so the law does not ban doujinshi.
<footnote><para>
1570 See Salil K. Mehra,
<quote>Copyright and Comics in Japan: Does Law Explain
1571 Why All the Comics My Kid Watches Are Japanese Imports?
</quote> <citetitle>Rutgers Law
1572 Review
</citetitle> 55 (
2002):
155,
182.
<quote>[T]here might be a collective economic
1573 rationality that would lead manga and anime artists to forgo bringing
1574 legal actions for infringement. One hypothesis is that all manga
1575 artists may be better off collectively if they set aside their
1576 individual self-interest and decide not to press their legal
1577 rights. This is essentially a prisoner's dilemma solved.
</quote>
1580 <indexterm startref='idxcomicsjapanese' class='endofrange'
/>
1581 <indexterm startref='idxjapanesecomics' class='endofrange'
/>
1582 <indexterm startref='idxmanga' class='endofrange'
/>
1584 The problem with this story, however, as Mehra plainly acknowledges,
1585 is that the mechanism producing this laissez faire response is not
1586 clear. It may well be that the market as a whole is better off if
1587 doujinshi are permitted rather than banned, but that doesn't explain
1588 why individual copyright owners don't sue nonetheless. If the law has
1589 no general exception for doujinshi, and indeed in some cases
1590 individual manga artists have sued doujinshi artists, why is there not
1591 a more general pattern of blocking this
<quote>free taking
</quote> by the doujinshi
1594 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawjapanese2' class='endofrange'
/>
1595 <indexterm startref='idxmehrasalil' class='endofrange'
/>
1597 I spent four wonderful months in Japan, and I asked this question
1598 as often as I could. Perhaps the best account in the end was offered by
1599 a friend from a major Japanese law firm.
<quote>We don't have enough
1600 lawyers,
</quote> he told me one afternoon. There
<quote>just aren't enough resources
1601 to prosecute cases like this.
</quote>
1604 This is a theme to which we will return: that regulation by law is a
1605 function of both the words on the books and the costs of making those
1606 words have effect. For now, focus on the obvious question that is
1607 begged: Would Japan be better off with more lawyers? Would manga
1608 <!-- PAGE BREAK 41 -->
1609 be richer if doujinshi artists were regularly prosecuted? Would the
1610 Japanese gain something important if they could end this practice of
1611 uncompensated sharing? Does piracy here hurt the victims of the
1612 piracy, or does it help them? Would lawyers fighting this piracy help
1613 their clients or hurt them?
1615 <indexterm startref='idxdoujinshicomics' class='endofrange'
/>
1617 <emphasis role='strong'
>Let's pause
</emphasis> for a moment.
1620 If you're like I was a decade ago, or like most people are when they
1621 first start thinking about these issues, then just about now you should
1622 be puzzled about something you hadn't thought through before.
1625 We live in a world that celebrates
<quote>property.
</quote> I am one of those
1626 celebrants. I believe in the value of property in general, and I also
1627 believe in the value of that weird form of property that lawyers call
1628 <quote>intellectual property.
</quote><footnote><para>
1630 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
1631 The term
<citetitle>intellectual property
</citetitle> is of relatively recent origin. See
1632 Siva Vaidhyanathan,
<citetitle>Copyrights and Copywrongs
</citetitle>,
11 (New York: New York
1633 University Press,
2001). See also Lawrence Lessig,
<citetitle>The Future of Ideas
</citetitle>
1634 (New York: Random House,
2001),
293 n.
26. The term accurately
1635 describes a set of
<quote>property
</quote> rights
— copyright, patents,
1636 trademark, and trade-secret
— but the nature of those rights is
1639 A large, diverse society cannot survive without property; a large,
1640 diverse, and modern society cannot flourish without intellectual
1643 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt3' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1644 <indexterm id='idxgrimmfairytales2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Grimm fairy tales
</primary></indexterm>
1645 <indexterm><primary>Keaton, Buster
</primary></indexterm>
1647 But it takes just a second's reflection to realize that there is
1648 plenty of value out there that
<quote>property
</quote> doesn't capture. I don't
1649 mean
<quote>money can't buy you love,
</quote> but rather, value that is plainly
1650 part of a process of production, including commercial as well as
1651 noncommercial production. If Disney animators had stolen a set of
1652 pencils to draw Steamboat Willie, we'd have no hesitation in
1653 condemning that taking as wrong
— even though trivial, even if
1654 unnoticed. Yet there was nothing wrong, at least under the law of the
1655 day, with Disney's taking from Buster Keaton or from the Brothers
1656 Grimm. There was nothing wrong with the taking from Keaton because
1657 Disney's use would have been considered
<quote>fair.
</quote> There was nothing
1658 wrong with the taking from the Grimms because the Grimms' work was in
1661 <indexterm id='idxfreeculturederivativeworksbasedon' class='startofrange'
><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary>derivative works based on
</secondary></indexterm>
1663 Thus, even though the things that Disney took
—or more generally,
1664 the things taken by anyone exercising Walt Disney creativity
—are
1665 valuable, our tradition does not treat those takings as wrong. Some
1667 <!-- PAGE BREAK 42 -->
1668 things remain free for the taking within a free culture, and that
1671 <indexterm startref='idxgrimmfairytales2' class='endofrange'
/>
1672 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawjapanese3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>Japanese
</secondary></indexterm>
1673 <indexterm><primary>comics, Japanese
</primary></indexterm>
1674 <indexterm id='idxdoujinshicomics2' class='startofrange'
><primary>doujinshi comics
</primary></indexterm>
1675 <indexterm id='idxjapanesecomics2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Japanese comics
</primary></indexterm>
1676 <indexterm id='idxmanga2' class='startofrange'
><primary>manga
</primary></indexterm>
1678 The same with the doujinshi culture. If a doujinshi artist broke into
1679 a publisher's office and ran off with a thousand copies of his latest
1680 work
—or even one copy
—without paying, we'd have no hesitation in
1681 saying the artist was wrong. In addition to having trespassed, he would
1682 have stolen something of value. The law bans that stealing in whatever
1683 form, whether large or small.
1685 <indexterm startref='idxcreativitybytransformingpreviousworks2' class='endofrange'
/>
1687 Yet there is an obvious reluctance, even among Japanese lawyers, to
1688 say that the copycat comic artists are
<quote>stealing.
</quote> This form of Walt
1689 Disney creativity is seen as fair and right, even if lawyers in
1690 particular find it hard to say why.
1692 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs2' class='endofrange'
/>
1693 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs2' class='endofrange'
/>
1694 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawjapanese3' class='endofrange'
/>
1695 <indexterm startref='idxdoujinshicomics2' class='endofrange'
/>
1696 <indexterm startref='idxjapanesecomics2' class='endofrange'
/>
1697 <indexterm startref='idxmanga2' class='endofrange'
/>
1698 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
1700 It's the same with a thousand examples that appear everywhere once you
1701 begin to look. Scientists build upon the work of other scientists
1702 without asking or paying for the privilege. (
<quote>Excuse me, Professor
1703 Einstein, but may I have permission to use your theory of relativity
1704 to show that you were wrong about quantum physics?
</quote>) Acting companies
1705 perform adaptations of the works of Shakespeare without securing
1706 permission from anyone. (Does
<emphasis>anyone
</emphasis> believe
1707 Shakespeare would be better spread within our culture if there were a
1708 central Shakespeare rights clearinghouse that all productions of
1709 Shakespeare must appeal to first?) And Hollywood goes through cycles
1710 with a certain kind of movie: five asteroid films in the late
1990s;
1711 two volcano disaster films in
1997.
1714 Creators here and everywhere are always and at all times building
1715 upon the creativity that went before and that surrounds them now.
1716 That building is always and everywhere at least partially done without
1717 permission and without compensating the original creator. No society,
1718 free or controlled, has ever demanded that every use be paid for or that
1719 permission for Walt Disney creativity must always be sought. Instead,
1720 every society has left a certain bit of its culture free for the taking
—free
1721 societies more fully than unfree, perhaps, but all societies to some degree.
1722 <!-- PAGE BREAK 43 -->
1724 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt3' class='endofrange'
/>
1726 The hard question is therefore not
<emphasis>whether
</emphasis> a
1727 culture is free. All cultures are free to some degree. The hard
1728 question instead is
<quote><emphasis>How
</emphasis> free is this culture?
</quote>
1729 How much, and how broadly, is the culture free for others to take and
1730 build upon? Is that freedom limited to party members? To members of
1731 the royal family? To the top ten corporations on the New York Stock
1732 Exchange? Or is that freedom spread broadly? To artists generally,
1733 whether affiliated with the Met or not? To musicians generally,
1734 whether white or not? To filmmakers generally, whether affiliated with
1738 Free cultures are cultures that leave a great deal open for others to
1739 build upon; unfree, or permission, cultures leave much less. Ours was a
1740 free culture. It is becoming much less so.
1742 <indexterm startref='idxfreeculturederivativeworksbasedon' class='endofrange'
/>
1744 <!-- PAGE BREAK 44 -->
1746 <chapter label=
"2" id=
"mere-copyists">
1747 <title>CHAPTER TWO:
<quote>Mere Copyists
</quote></title>
1748 <indexterm><primary>Daguerre, Louis
</primary></indexterm>
1749 <indexterm id='idxcameratechnology' class='startofrange'
><primary>camera technology
</primary></indexterm>
1750 <indexterm id='idxphotography' class='startofrange'
><primary>photography
</primary></indexterm>
1752 <emphasis role='strong'
>In
1839</emphasis>, Louis Daguerre invented
1753 the first practical technology for producing what we would call
1754 <quote>photographs.
</quote> Appropriately enough, they were called
1755 <quote>daguerreotypes.
</quote> The process was complicated and
1756 expensive, and the field was thus limited to professionals and a few
1757 zealous and wealthy amateurs. (There was even an American Daguerre
1758 Association that helped regulate the industry, as do all such
1759 associations, by keeping competition down so as to keep prices up.)
1761 <indexterm><primary>Talbot, William
</primary></indexterm>
1763 Yet despite high prices, the demand for daguerreotypes was strong.
1764 This pushed inventors to find simpler and cheaper ways to make
1765 <quote>automatic pictures.
</quote> William Talbot soon discovered a process for
1766 making
<quote>negatives.
</quote> But because the negatives were glass, and had to
1767 be kept wet, the process still remained expensive and cumbersome. In
1768 the
1870s, dry plates were developed, making it easier to separate the
1769 taking of a picture from its developing. These were still plates of
1770 glass, and thus it was still not a process within reach of most
1773 <indexterm id='idxeastmangeorge' class='startofrange'
><primary>Eastman, George
</primary></indexterm>
1775 The technological change that made mass photography possible
1776 didn't happen until
1888, and was the creation of a single man. George
1777 <!-- PAGE BREAK 45 -->
1778 Eastman, himself an amateur photographer, was frustrated by the
1779 technology of photographs made with plates. In a flash of insight (so
1780 to speak), Eastman saw that if the film could be made to be flexible,
1781 it could be held on a single spindle. That roll could then be sent to
1782 a developer, driving the costs of photography down substantially. By
1783 lowering the costs, Eastman expected he could dramatically broaden the
1784 population of photographers.
1786 <indexterm id='idxkodakcameras' class='startofrange'
><primary>Kodak cameras
</primary></indexterm>
1787 <indexterm id='idxkodakprimertheeastman' class='startofrange'
><primary>Kodak Primer, The (Eastman)
</primary></indexterm>
1789 Eastman developed flexible, emulsion-coated paper film and placed
1790 rolls of it in small, simple cameras: the Kodak. The device was
1791 marketed on the basis of its simplicity.
<quote>You press the button and we
1792 do the rest.
</quote><footnote><para>
1794 Reese V. Jenkins,
<citetitle>Images and Enterprise
</citetitle> (Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press,
1975),
112.
1795 </para></footnote> As he described in
<citetitle>The Kodak Primer
</citetitle>:
1799 The principle of the Kodak system is the separation of the work that
1800 any person whomsoever can do in making a photograph, from the work
1801 that only an expert can do.
… We furnish anybody, man, woman or
1802 child, who has sufficient intelligence to point a box straight and
1803 press a button, with an instrument which altogether removes from the
1804 practice of photography the necessity for exceptional facilities or,
1805 in fact, any special knowledge of the art. It can be employed without
1806 preliminary study, without a darkroom and without
1807 chemicals.
<footnote>
1810 <indexterm><primary>Coe, Brian
</primary></indexterm>
1811 Brian Coe,
<citetitle>The Birth of Photography
</citetitle> (New York: Taplinger Publishing,
1816 <indexterm startref='idxkodakprimertheeastman' class='endofrange'
/>
1818 For $
25, anyone could make pictures. The camera came preloaded
1819 with film, and when it had been used, the camera was returned to an
1820 Eastman factory, where the film was developed. Over time, of course,
1821 the cost of the camera and the ease with which it could be used both
1822 improved. Roll film thus became the basis for the explosive growth of
1823 popular photography. Eastman's camera first went on sale in
1888; one
1824 year later, Kodak was printing more than six thousand negatives a day.
1825 From
1888 through
1909, while industrial production was rising by
4.7
1826 percent, photographic equipment and material sales increased by
11
1827 percent.
<footnote><para>
1830 </para></footnote> Eastman Kodak's sales during the same period experienced
1831 an average annual increase of over
17 percent.
<footnote><para>
1833 Based on a chart in Jenkins, p.
178.
1836 <indexterm><primary>Coe, Brian
</primary></indexterm>
1839 <!-- PAGE BREAK 46 -->
1840 The real significance of Eastman's invention, however, was not
1841 economic. It was social. Professional photography gave individuals a
1842 glimpse of places they would never otherwise see. Amateur photography
1843 gave them the ability to record their own lives in a way they had
1844 never been able to do before. As author Brian Coe notes,
<quote>For the
1845 first time the snapshot album provided the man on the street with a
1846 permanent record of his family and its activities.
… For the first
1847 time in history there exists an authentic visual record of the
1848 appearance and activities of the common man made without [literary]
1849 interpretation or bias.
</quote><footnote><para>
1854 <indexterm><primary>democracy
</primary><secondary>in technologies of expression
</secondary></indexterm>
1855 <indexterm><primary>expression, technologies of
</primary><secondary>democratic
</secondary></indexterm>
1857 In this way, the Kodak camera and film were technologies of
1858 expression. The pencil or paintbrush was also a technology of
1859 expression, of course. But it took years of training before they could
1860 be deployed by amateurs in any useful or effective way. With the
1861 Kodak, expression was possible much sooner and more simply. The
1862 barrier to expression was lowered. Snobs would sneer at its
<quote>quality
</quote>;
1863 professionals would discount it as irrelevant. But watch a child study
1864 how best to frame a picture and you get a sense of the experience of
1865 creativity that the Kodak enabled. Democratic tools gave ordinary
1866 people a way to express themselves more easily than any tools could
1869 <indexterm startref='idxkodakcameras' class='endofrange'
/>
1870 <indexterm id='idxpermissionsphotographyexemptedfrom' class='startofrange'
><primary>permissions
</primary><secondary>photography exempted from
</secondary></indexterm>
1872 What was required for this technology to flourish? Obviously,
1873 Eastman's genius was an important part. But also important was the
1874 legal environment within which Eastman's invention grew. For early in
1875 the history of photography, there was a series of judicial decisions
1876 that could well have changed the course of photography substantially.
1877 Courts were asked whether the photographer, amateur or professional,
1878 required permission before he could capture and print whatever image
1879 he wanted. Their answer was no.
<footnote><para>
1881 For illustrative cases, see, for example,
<citetitle>Pavesich
</citetitle>
1882 v.
<citetitle>N.E. Life Ins. Co
</citetitle>.,
50 S.E.
68 (Ga.
1905);
1883 <citetitle>Foster-Milburn Co
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Chinn
</citetitle>,
123090 S.W.
364,
366
1884 (Ky.
1909);
<citetitle>Corliss
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Walker
</citetitle>,
64 F.
280 (Mass.
1888 <indexterm startref='idxcameratechnology' class='endofrange'
/>
1889 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt4' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
1890 <indexterm id='idximagesownershipof' class='startofrange'
><primary>images, ownership of
</primary></indexterm>
1892 The arguments in favor of requiring permission will sound surprisingly
1893 familiar. The photographer was
<quote>taking
</quote> something from the person or
1894 building whose photograph he shot
—pirating something of
1895 value. Some even thought he was taking the target's soul. Just as
1896 Disney was not free to take the pencils that his animators used to
1898 <!-- PAGE BREAK 47 -->
1899 Mickey, so, too, should these photographers not be free to take images
1900 that they thought valuable.
1902 <indexterm><primary>Brandeis, Louis D.
</primary></indexterm>
1903 <indexterm><primary>Steamboat Bill, Jr.
</primary></indexterm>
1904 <indexterm id='idxcameratechnology2' class='startofrange'
><primary>camera technology
</primary></indexterm>
1906 On the other side was an argument that should be familiar, as well.
1907 Sure, there may be something of value being used. But citizens should
1908 have the right to capture at least those images that stand in public view.
1909 (Louis Brandeis, who would become a Supreme Court Justice, thought
1910 the rule should be different for images from private spaces.
<footnote>
1913 Samuel D. Warren and Louis D. Brandeis,
<quote>The Right to Privacy,
</quote>
1914 <citetitle>Harvard Law Review
</citetitle> 4 (
1890):
193.
1915 <indexterm><primary>Brandeis, Louis D.
</primary></indexterm>
1916 <indexterm><primary>Warren, Samuel D.
</primary></indexterm>
1917 </para></footnote>) It may be that this means that the photographer
1918 gets something for nothing. Just as Disney could take inspiration from
1919 <citetitle>Steamboat Bill, Jr
</citetitle>. or the Brothers Grimm, the photographer should be
1920 free to capture an image without compensating the source.
1922 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt4' class='endofrange'
/>
1924 Fortunately for Mr. Eastman, and for photography in general, these
1925 early decisions went in favor of the pirates. In general, no
1926 permission would be required before an image could be captured and
1927 shared with others. Instead, permission was presumed. Freedom was the
1928 default. (The law would eventually craft an exception for famous
1929 people: commercial photographers who snap pictures of famous people
1930 for commercial purposes have more restrictions than the rest of
1931 us. But in the ordinary case, the image can be captured without
1932 clearing the rights to do the capturing.
<footnote><para>
1934 See Melville B. Nimmer,
<quote>The Right of Publicity,
</quote> <citetitle>Law and Contemporary
1935 Problems
</citetitle> 19 (
1954):
203; William L. Prosser,
<quote>Privacy,
</quote> <citetitle>California Law
1936 Review
</citetitle> 48 (
1960)
398–407;
<citetitle>White
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Samsung Electronics America,
1937 Inc
</citetitle>.,
971 F.
2d
1395 (
9th Cir.
1992), cert. denied,
508 U.S.
951
1941 <indexterm><primary>Kodak cameras
</primary></indexterm>
1942 <indexterm><primary>Napster
</primary></indexterm>
1944 We can only speculate about how photography would have developed had
1945 the law gone the other way. If the presumption had been against the
1946 photographer, then the photographer would have had to demonstrate
1947 permission. Perhaps Eastman Kodak would have had to demonstrate
1948 permission, too, before it developed the film upon which images were
1949 captured. After all, if permission were not granted, then Eastman
1950 Kodak would be benefiting from the
<quote>theft
</quote> committed by the
1951 photographer. Just as Napster benefited from the copyright
1952 infringements committed by Napster users, Kodak would be benefiting
1953 from the
<quote>image-right
</quote> infringement of its photographers. We could
1954 imagine the law then requiring that some form of permission be
1955 demonstrated before a company developed pictures. We could imagine a
1956 system developing to demonstrate that permission.
1958 <indexterm startref='idxcameratechnology2' class='endofrange'
/>
1959 <indexterm id='idxcameratechnology3' class='startofrange'
><primary>camera technology
</primary></indexterm>
1960 <indexterm><primary>democracy
</primary><secondary>in technologies of expression
</secondary></indexterm>
1961 <indexterm><primary>expression, technologies of
</primary><secondary>democratic
</secondary></indexterm>
1964 <!-- PAGE BREAK 48 -->
1965 But though we could imagine this system of permission, it would be
1966 very hard to see how photography could have flourished as it did if
1967 the requirement for permission had been built into the rules that
1968 govern it. Photography would have existed. It would have grown in
1969 importance over time. Professionals would have continued to use the
1970 technology as they did
—since professionals could have more
1971 easily borne the burdens of the permission system. But the spread of
1972 photography to ordinary people would not have occurred. Nothing like
1973 that growth would have been realized. And certainly, nothing like that
1974 growth in a democratic technology of expression would have been
1977 <indexterm startref='idxphotography' class='endofrange'
/>
1978 <indexterm startref='idxeastmangeorge' class='endofrange'
/>
1979 <indexterm startref='idxpermissionsphotographyexemptedfrom' class='endofrange'
/>
1980 <indexterm startref='idximagesownershipof' class='endofrange'
/>
1981 <indexterm><primary>digital cameras
</primary></indexterm>
1982 <indexterm id='idxjustthink' class='startofrange'
><primary>Just Think!
</primary></indexterm>
1984 <emphasis role='strong'
>If you drive
</emphasis> through San
1985 Francisco's Presidio, you might see two gaudy yellow school buses
1986 painted over with colorful and striking images, and the logo
1987 <quote>Just Think!
</quote> in place of the name of a school. But
1988 there's little that's
<quote>just
</quote> cerebral in the projects
1989 that these busses enable. These buses are filled with technologies
1990 that teach kids to tinker with film. Not the film of Eastman. Not even
1991 the film of your VCR. Rather the
<quote>film
</quote> of digital
1992 cameras. Just Think! is a project that enables kids to make films, as
1993 a way to understand and critique the filmed culture that they find all
1994 around them. Each year, these busses travel to more than thirty
1995 schools and enable three hundred to five hundred children to learn
1996 something about media by doing something with media. By doing, they
1997 think. By tinkering, they learn.
1999 <indexterm id='idxeducationinmedialiteracy' class='startofrange'
><primary>education
</primary><secondary>in media literacy
</secondary></indexterm>
2000 <indexterm id='idxmedialiteracy' class='startofrange'
><primary>media literacy
</primary></indexterm>
2001 <indexterm id='idxexpressiontechnologiesofmedialiteracyand' class='startofrange'
><primary>expression, technologies of
</primary><secondary>media literacy and
</secondary></indexterm>
2003 These buses are not cheap, but the technology they carry is
2004 increasingly so. The cost of a high-quality digital video system has
2005 fallen dramatically. As one analyst puts it,
<quote>Five years ago, a good
2006 real-time digital video editing system cost $
25,
000. Today you can get
2007 professional quality for $
595.
</quote><footnote><para>
2009 H. Edward Goldberg,
<quote>Essential Presentation Tools: Hardware and
2010 Software You Need to Create Digital Multimedia Presentations,
</quote>
2011 cadalyst, February
2002, available at
2012 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
7</ulink>.
2014 These buses are filled with technology that would have cost hundreds
2015 of thousands just ten years ago. And it is now feasible to imagine not
2016 just buses like this, but classrooms across the country where kids are
2017 learning more and more of something teachers call
<quote>media literacy.
</quote>
2019 <indexterm><primary>Yanofsky, Dave
</primary></indexterm>
2021 <!-- PAGE BREAK 49 -->
2022 <quote>Media literacy,
</quote> as Dave Yanofsky, the executive director of Just
2023 Think!, puts it,
<quote>is the ability
… to understand, analyze, and
2024 deconstruct media images. Its aim is to make [kids] literate about the
2025 way media works, the way it's constructed, the way it's delivered, and
2026 the way people access it.
</quote>
2028 <indexterm startref='idxjustthink' class='endofrange'
/>
2030 This may seem like an odd way to think about
<quote>literacy.
</quote> For most
2031 people, literacy is about reading and writing. Faulkner and Hemingway
2032 and noticing split infinitives are the things that
<quote>literate
</quote> people know
2035 <indexterm><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
2036 <indexterm><primary>commercials
</primary></indexterm>
2037 <indexterm><primary>television
</primary><secondary>advertising on
</secondary></indexterm>
2039 Maybe. But in a world where children see on average
390 hours of
2040 television commercials per year, or between
20,
000 and
45,
000
2041 commercials generally,
<footnote><para>
2043 Judith Van Evra,
<citetitle>Television and Child Development
</citetitle> (Hillsdale, N.J.:
2044 Lawrence Erlbaum Associates,
1990);
<quote>Findings on Family and TV
2045 Study,
</quote> <citetitle>Denver Post
</citetitle>,
25 May
1997, B6.
2047 it is increasingly important to understand the
<quote>grammar
</quote> of media. For
2048 just as there is a grammar for the written word, so, too, is there one
2049 for media. And just as kids learn how to write by writing lots of
2050 terrible prose, kids learn how to write media by constructing lots of
2051 (at least at first) terrible media.
2054 A growing field of academics and activists sees this form of literacy
2055 as crucial to the next generation of culture. For though anyone who
2056 has written understands how difficult writing is
—how difficult
2057 it is to sequence the story, to keep a reader's attention, to craft
2058 language to be understandable
—few of us have any real sense of
2059 how difficult media is. Or more fundamentally, few of us have a sense
2060 of how media works, how it holds an audience or leads it through a
2061 story, how it triggers emotion or builds suspense.
2063 <indexterm startref='idxcameratechnology3' class='endofrange'
/>
2065 It took filmmaking a generation before it could do these things well.
2066 But even then, the knowledge was in the filming, not in writing about
2067 the film. The skill came from experiencing the making of a film, not
2068 from reading a book about it. One learns to write by writing and then
2069 reflecting upon what one has written. One learns to write with images
2070 by making them and then reflecting upon what one has created.
2072 <indexterm id='idxdaleyelizabeth' class='startofrange'
><primary>Daley, Elizabeth
</primary></indexterm>
2073 <indexterm><primary>Crichton, Michael
</primary></indexterm>
2075 This grammar has changed as media has changed. When it was just film,
2076 as Elizabeth Daley, executive director of the University of Southern
2077 California's Annenberg Center for Communication and dean of the
2079 <!-- PAGE BREAK 50 -->
2080 USC School of Cinema-Television, explained to me, the grammar was
2081 about
<quote>the placement of objects, color,
… rhythm, pacing, and
2082 texture.
</quote><footnote>
2085 Interview with Elizabeth Daley and Stephanie Barish,
13 December
2087 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2088 <indexterm><primary>Daley, Elizabeth
</primary></indexterm>
2090 But as computers open up an interactive space where a story is
2091 <quote>played
</quote> as well as experienced, that grammar changes. The simple
2092 control of narrative is lost, and so other techniques are necessary. Author
2093 Michael Crichton had mastered the narrative of science fiction.
2094 But when he tried to design a computer game based on one of his
2095 works, it was a new craft he had to learn. How to lead people through
2096 a game without their feeling they have been led was not obvious, even
2097 to a wildly successful author.
<footnote><para>
2099 See Scott Steinberg,
<quote>Crichton Gets Medieval on PCs,
</quote> E!online,
4
2100 November
2000, available at
2101 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
8</ulink>;
<quote>Timeline,
</quote> 22 November
2000,
2103 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
9</ulink>.
2106 <indexterm><primary>computer games
</primary></indexterm>
2108 This skill is precisely the craft a filmmaker learns. As Daley
2109 describes,
<quote>people are very surprised about how they are led through a
2110 film. [I]t is perfectly constructed to keep you from seeing it, so you
2111 have no idea. If a filmmaker succeeds you do not know how you were
2112 led.
</quote> If you know you were led through a film, the film has failed.
2115 Yet the push for an expanded literacy
—one that goes beyond text
2116 to include audio and visual elements
—is not about making better
2117 film directors. The aim is not to improve the profession of
2118 filmmaking at all. Instead, as Daley explained,
2122 From my perspective, probably the most important digital divide
2123 is not access to a box. It's the ability to be empowered with the
2124 language that that box works in. Otherwise only a very few people
2125 can write with this language, and all the rest of us are reduced to
2130 <quote>Read-only.
</quote> Passive recipients of culture produced elsewhere.
2131 Couch potatoes. Consumers. This is the world of media from the
2135 The twenty-first century could be different. This is the crucial
2136 point: It could be both read and write. Or at least reading and better
2137 understanding the craft of writing. Or best, reading and understanding
2138 the tools that enable the writing to lead or mislead. The aim of any
2140 <!-- PAGE BREAK 51 -->
2141 and this literacy in particular, is to
<quote>empower people to choose the
2142 appropriate language for what they need to create or
2143 express.
</quote><footnote>
2146 Interview with Daley and Barish.
2147 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2148 </para></footnote> It is to enable students
<quote>to communicate in the
2149 language of the twenty-first century.
</quote><footnote><para>
2154 <indexterm id='idxbarishstephanie' class='startofrange'
><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2156 As with any language, this language comes more easily to some than to
2157 others. It doesn't necessarily come more easily to those who excel in
2158 written language. Daley and Stephanie Barish, director of the
2159 Institute for Multimedia Literacy at the Annenberg Center, describe
2160 one particularly poignant example of a project they ran in a high
2161 school. The high school was a very poor inner-city Los Angeles
2162 school. In all the traditional measures of success, this school was a
2163 failure. But Daley and Barish ran a program that gave kids an
2164 opportunity to use film to express meaning about something the
2165 students know something about
—gun violence.
2167 <indexterm startref='idxdaleyelizabeth' class='endofrange'
/>
2169 The class was held on Friday afternoons, and it created a relatively
2170 new problem for the school. While the challenge in most classes was
2171 getting the kids to come, the challenge in this class was keeping them
2172 away. The
<quote>kids were showing up at
6 A.M. and leaving at
5 at night,
</quote>
2173 said Barish. They were working harder than in any other class to do
2174 what education should be about
—learning how to express themselves.
2177 Using whatever
<quote>free web stuff they could find,
</quote> and relatively simple
2178 tools to enable the kids to mix
<quote>image, sound, and text,
</quote> Barish said
2179 this class produced a series of projects that showed something about
2180 gun violence that few would otherwise understand. This was an issue
2181 close to the lives of these students. The project
<quote>gave them a tool
2182 and empowered them to be able to both understand it and talk about
2183 it,
</quote> Barish explained. That tool succeeded in creating
2184 expression
—far more successfully and powerfully than could have
2185 been created using only text.
<quote>If you had said to these students, `you
2186 have to do it in text,' they would've just thrown their hands up and
2187 gone and done something else,
</quote> Barish described, in part, no doubt,
2188 because expressing themselves in text is not something these students
2189 can do well. Yet neither is text a form in which
2190 <emphasis>these
</emphasis> ideas can be expressed well. The power of
2191 this message depended upon its connection to this form of expression.
2193 <indexterm startref='idxbarishstephanie' class='endofrange'
/>
2194 <indexterm id='idxdaleyelizabeth2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Daley, Elizabeth
</primary></indexterm>
2197 <!-- PAGE BREAK 52 -->
2198 <quote>But isn't education about teaching kids to write?
</quote> I asked. In part,
2199 of course, it is. But why are we teaching kids to write? Education,
2200 Daley explained, is about giving students a way of
<quote>constructing
2201 meaning.
</quote> To say that that means just writing is like saying teaching
2202 writing is only about teaching kids how to spell. Text is one
2203 part
—and increasingly, not the most powerful part
—of
2204 constructing meaning. As Daley explained in the most moving part of
2209 What you want is to give these students ways of constructing
2210 meaning. If all you give them is text, they're not going to do it.
2211 Because they can't. You know, you've got Johnny who can look at a
2212 video, he can play a video game, he can do graffiti all over your
2213 walls, he can take your car apart, and he can do all sorts of other
2214 things. He just can't read your text. So Johnny comes to school and
2215 you say,
<quote>Johnny, you're illiterate. Nothing you can do matters.
</quote>
2216 Well, Johnny then has two choices: He can dismiss you or he [can]
2217 dismiss himself. If his ego is healthy at all, he's going to dismiss
2218 you. [But i]nstead, if you say,
<quote>Well, with all these things that you
2219 can do, let's talk about this issue. Play for me music that you think
2220 reflects that, or show me images that you think reflect that, or draw
2221 for me something that reflects that.
</quote> Not by giving a kid a video
2222 camera and
… saying,
<quote>Let's go have fun with the video camera and
2223 make a little movie.
</quote> But instead, really help you take these elements
2224 that you understand, that are your language, and construct meaning
2225 about the topic.
…
2227 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2229 That empowers enormously. And then what happens, of
2230 course, is eventually, as it has happened in all these classes, they
2231 bump up against the fact,
<quote>I need to explain this and I really need
2232 to write something.
</quote> And as one of the teachers told Stephanie,
2233 they would rewrite a paragraph
5,
6,
7,
8 times, till they got it right.
2236 Because they needed to. There was a reason for doing it. They
2237 needed to say something, as opposed to just jumping through
2238 your hoops. They actually needed to use a language that they
2239 <!-- PAGE BREAK 53 -->
2240 didn't speak very well. But they had come to understand that they
2241 had a lot of power with this language.
2243 <!-- FIXME removed a " from the end of the previous paragraph that did
2244 not match with any start quote. -->
2246 <indexterm startref='idxeducationinmedialiteracy' class='endofrange'
/>
2247 <indexterm startref='idxmedialiteracy' class='endofrange'
/>
2248 <indexterm startref='idxexpressiontechnologiesofmedialiteracyand' class='endofrange'
/>
2249 <indexterm startref='idxdaleyelizabeth2' class='endofrange'
/>
2250 <indexterm id='idxseptemberterroristattacksof' class='startofrange'
><primary>September
11,
2001, terrorist attacks of
</primary></indexterm>
2251 <indexterm><primary>World Trade Center
</primary></indexterm>
2252 <indexterm id='idxnewscoverage' class='startofrange'
><primary>news coverage
</primary></indexterm>
2254 <emphasis role='strong'
>When two planes
</emphasis> crashed into the
2255 World Trade Center, another into the Pentagon, and a fourth into a
2256 Pennsylvania field, all media around the world shifted to this
2257 news. Every moment of just about every day for that week, and for
2258 weeks after, television in particular, and media generally, retold the
2259 story of the events we had just witnessed. The telling was a
2260 retelling, because we had seen the events that were described. The
2261 genius of this awful act of terrorism was that the delayed second
2262 attack was perfectly timed to assure that the whole world would be
2266 These retellings had an increasingly familiar feel. There was music
2267 scored for the intermissions, and fancy graphics that flashed across
2268 the screen. There was a formula to interviews. There was
<quote>balance,
</quote>
2269 and seriousness. This was news choreographed in the way we have
2270 increasingly come to expect it,
<quote>news as entertainment,
</quote> even if the
2271 entertainment is tragedy.
2273 <indexterm><primary>ABC
</primary></indexterm>
2274 <indexterm><primary>CBS
</primary></indexterm>
2276 But in addition to this produced news about the
<quote>tragedy of September
2277 11,
</quote> those of us tied to the Internet came to see a very different
2278 production as well. The Internet was filled with accounts of the same
2279 events. Yet these Internet accounts had a very different flavor. Some
2280 people constructed photo pages that captured images from around the
2281 world and presented them as slide shows with text. Some offered open
2282 letters. There were sound recordings. There was anger and frustration.
2283 There were attempts to provide context. There was, in short, an
2284 extraordinary worldwide barn raising, in the sense Mike Godwin uses
2285 the term in his book
<citetitle>Cyber Rights
</citetitle>, around a news event that had
2286 captured the attention of the world. There was ABC and CBS, but there
2287 was also the Internet.
2289 <indexterm startref='idxseptemberterroristattacksof' class='endofrange'
/>
2291 I don't mean simply to praise the Internet
—though I do think the
2292 people who supported this form of speech should be praised. I mean
2293 instead to point to a significance in this form of speech. For like a
2294 Kodak, the Internet enables people to capture images. And like in a
2296 <!-- PAGE BREAK 54 -->
2297 by a student on the
<quote>Just Think!
</quote> bus, the visual images could be mixed
2301 But unlike any technology for simply capturing images, the Internet
2302 allows these creations to be shared with an extraordinary number of
2303 people, practically instantaneously. This is something new in our
2304 tradition
—not just that culture can be captured mechanically,
2305 and obviously not just that events are commented upon critically, but
2306 that this mix of captured images, sound, and commentary can be widely
2307 spread practically instantaneously.
2309 <indexterm><primary>September
11,
2001, terrorist attacks of
</primary></indexterm>
2310 <indexterm id='idxblogsweblogs' class='startofrange'
><primary>blogs (Web-logs)
</primary></indexterm>
2311 <indexterm id='idxinternetblogson' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>blogs on
</secondary></indexterm>
2312 <indexterm id='idxweblogsblogs' class='startofrange'
><primary>Web-logs (blogs)
</primary></indexterm>
2314 September
11 was not an aberration. It was a beginning. Around the
2315 same time, a form of communication that has grown dramatically was
2316 just beginning to come into public consciousness: the Web-log, or
2317 blog. The blog is a kind of public diary, and within some cultures,
2318 such as in Japan, it functions very much like a diary. In those
2319 cultures, it records private facts in a public way
—it's a kind
2320 of electronic
<citetitle>Jerry Springer
</citetitle>, available anywhere in the world.
2322 <indexterm><primary>political discourse
</primary></indexterm>
2323 <indexterm id='idxinternetpublicdiscourseconductedon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>public discourse conducted on
</secondary></indexterm>
2325 But in the United States, blogs have taken on a very different
2326 character. There are some who use the space simply to talk about
2327 their private life. But there are many who use the space to engage in
2328 public discourse. Discussing matters of public import, criticizing
2329 others who are mistaken in their views, criticizing politicians about
2330 the decisions they make, offering solutions to problems we all see:
2331 blogs create the sense of a virtual public meeting, but one in which
2332 we don't all hope to be there at the same time and in which
2333 conversations are not necessarily linked. The best of the blog entries
2334 are relatively short; they point directly to words used by others,
2335 criticizing with or adding to them. They are arguably the most
2336 important form of unchoreographed public discourse that we have.
2338 <indexterm id='idxdemocracyintechnologiesofexpression' class='startofrange'
><primary>democracy
</primary><secondary>in technologies of expression
</secondary></indexterm>
2339 <indexterm id='idxelections' class='startofrange'
><primary>elections
</primary></indexterm>
2340 <indexterm id='idxexpressiontechnologiesofdemocratic' class='startofrange'
><primary>expression, technologies of
</primary><secondary>democratic
</secondary></indexterm>
2342 That's a strong statement. Yet it says as much about our democracy as
2343 it does about blogs. This is the part of America that is most
2344 difficult for those of us who love America to accept: Our democracy
2345 has atrophied. Of course we have elections, and most of the time the
2346 courts allow those elections to count. A relatively small number of
2348 <!-- PAGE BREAK 55 -->
2349 in those elections. The cycle of these elections has become totally
2350 professionalized and routinized. Most of us think this is democracy.
2352 <indexterm startref='idxblogsweblogs' class='endofrange'
/>
2353 <indexterm startref='idxinternetblogson' class='endofrange'
/>
2354 <indexterm startref='idxweblogsblogs' class='endofrange'
/>
2355 <indexterm><primary>Tocqueville, Alexis de
</primary></indexterm>
2356 <indexterm id='idxdemocracypublicdiscoursein' class='startofrange'
><primary>democracy
</primary><secondary>public discourse in
</secondary></indexterm>
2357 <indexterm><primary>jury system
</primary></indexterm>
2359 But democracy has never just been about elections. Democracy
2360 means rule by the people, but rule means something more than mere
2361 elections. In our tradition, it also means control through reasoned
2362 discourse. This was the idea that captured the imagination of Alexis
2363 de Tocqueville, the nineteenth-century French lawyer who wrote the
2364 most important account of early
<quote>Democracy in America.
</quote> It wasn't
2365 popular elections that fascinated him
—it was the jury, an
2366 institution that gave ordinary people the right to choose life or
2367 death for other citizens. And most fascinating for him was that the
2368 jury didn't just vote about the outcome they would impose. They
2369 deliberated. Members argued about the
<quote>right
</quote> result; they tried to
2370 persuade each other of the
<quote>right
</quote> result, and in criminal cases at
2371 least, they had to agree upon a unanimous result for the process to
2372 come to an end.
<footnote><para>
2374 See, for example, Alexis de Tocqueville,
<citetitle>Democracy in America
</citetitle>,
2375 bk.
1, trans. Henry Reeve (New York: Bantam Books,
2000), ch.
16.
2378 <indexterm startref='idxelections' class='endofrange'
/>
2380 Yet even this institution flags in American life today. And in its
2381 place, there is no systematic effort to enable citizen deliberation. Some
2382 are pushing to create just such an institution.
<footnote><para>
2384 Bruce Ackerman and James Fishkin,
<quote>Deliberation Day,
</quote> <citetitle>Journal of
2385 Political Philosophy
</citetitle> 10 (
2) (
2002):
129.
2387 And in some towns in New England, something close to deliberation
2388 remains. But for most of us for most of the time, there is no time or
2389 place for
<quote>democratic deliberation
</quote> to occur.
2391 <indexterm id='idxpoliticaldiscourse' class='startofrange'
><primary>political discourse
</primary></indexterm>
2393 More bizarrely, there is generally not even permission for it to
2394 occur. We, the most powerful democracy in the world, have developed a
2395 strong norm against talking about politics. It's fine to talk about
2396 politics with people you agree with. But it is rude to argue about
2397 politics with people you disagree with. Political discourse becomes
2398 isolated, and isolated discourse becomes more extreme.
<footnote><para>
2400 Cass Sunstein,
<citetitle>Republic.com
</citetitle> (Princeton: Princeton University Press,
2001),
2401 65–80,
175,
182,
183,
192.
2402 </para></footnote> We say what our friends want to hear, and hear very
2403 little beyond what our friends say.
2405 <indexterm id='idxblogsweblogs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>blogs (Web-logs)
</primary></indexterm>
2406 <indexterm><primary>e-mail
</primary></indexterm>
2407 <indexterm id='idxinternetblogson2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>blogs on
</secondary></indexterm>
2408 <indexterm id='idxweblogsblogs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Web-logs (blogs)
</primary></indexterm>
2409 <indexterm startref='idxdemocracyintechnologiesofexpression' class='endofrange'
/>
2410 <indexterm startref='idxexpressiontechnologiesofdemocratic' class='endofrange'
/>
2411 <indexterm startref='idxdemocracypublicdiscoursein' class='endofrange'
/>
2413 Enter the blog. The blog's very architecture solves one part of this
2414 problem. People post when they want to post, and people read when they
2415 want to read. The most difficult time is synchronous time.
2416 Technologies that enable asynchronous communication, such as e-mail,
2417 increase the opportunity for communication. Blogs allow for public
2419 <!-- PAGE BREAK 56 -->
2420 discourse without the public ever needing to gather in a single public
2424 But beyond architecture, blogs also have solved the problem of
2425 norms. There's no norm (yet) in blog space not to talk about politics.
2426 Indeed, the space is filled with political speech, on both the right and
2427 the left. Some of the most popular sites are conservative or libertarian,
2428 but there are many of all political stripes. And even blogs that are not
2429 political cover political issues when the occasion merits.
2431 <indexterm><primary>Dean, Howard
</primary></indexterm>
2433 The significance of these blogs is tiny now, though not so tiny. The
2434 name Howard Dean may well have faded from the
2004 presidential race
2435 but for blogs. Yet even if the number of readers is small, the reading
2436 is having an effect.
2438 <indexterm><primary>Lott, Trent
</primary></indexterm>
2439 <indexterm><primary>Thurmond, Strom
</primary></indexterm>
2440 <indexterm id='idxmediablogpressureon' class='startofrange'
><primary>media
</primary><secondary>blog pressure on
</secondary></indexterm>
2441 <indexterm id='idxinternetnewseventson2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>news events on
</secondary></indexterm>
2443 One direct effect is on stories that had a different life cycle in the
2444 mainstream media. The Trent Lott affair is an example. When Lott
2445 <quote>misspoke
</quote> at a party for Senator Strom Thurmond, essentially praising
2446 Thurmond's segregationist policies, he calculated correctly that this
2447 story would disappear from the mainstream press within forty-eight
2448 hours. It did. But he didn't calculate its life cycle in blog
2449 space. The bloggers kept researching the story. Over time, more and
2450 more instances of the same
<quote>misspeaking
</quote> emerged. Finally, the story
2451 broke back into the mainstream press. In the end, Lott was forced to
2452 resign as senate majority leader.
<footnote><para>
2454 Noah Shachtman,
<quote>With Incessant Postings, a Pundit Stirs the Pot,
</quote> New
2455 York Times,
16 January
2003, G5.
2458 <indexterm id='idxmediacommercialimperativesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>media
</primary><secondary>commercial imperatives of
</secondary></indexterm>
2460 This different cycle is possible because the same commercial pressures
2461 don't exist with blogs as with other ventures. Television and
2462 newspapers are commercial entities. They must work to keep attention.
2463 If they lose readers, they lose revenue. Like sharks, they must move
2466 <indexterm startref='idxmediablogpressureon' class='endofrange'
/>
2467 <indexterm><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>peer-generated rankings on
</secondary></indexterm>
2469 But bloggers don't have a similar constraint. They can obsess, they
2470 can focus, they can get serious. If a particular blogger writes a
2471 particularly interesting story, more and more people link to that
2472 story. And as the number of links to a particular story increases, it
2473 rises in the ranks of stories. People read what is popular; what is
2474 popular has been selected by a very democratic process of
2475 peer-generated rankings.
2477 <indexterm startref='idxmediacommercialimperativesof' class='endofrange'
/>
2478 <indexterm id='idxjournalism' class='startofrange'
><primary>journalism
</primary></indexterm>
2479 <indexterm id='idxwinerdave' class='startofrange'
><primary>Winer, Dave
</primary></indexterm>
2481 There's a second way, as well, in which blogs have a different cycle
2482 <!-- PAGE BREAK 57 -->
2483 from the mainstream press. As Dave Winer, one of the fathers of this
2484 movement and a software author for many decades, told me, another
2485 difference is the absence of a financial
<quote>conflict of interest.
</quote> <quote>I think you
2486 have to take the conflict of interest
</quote> out of journalism, Winer told me.
2487 <quote>An amateur journalist simply doesn't have a conflict of interest, or the
2488 conflict of interest is so easily disclosed that you know you can sort of
2489 get it out of the way.
</quote>
2491 <indexterm><primary>CNN
</primary></indexterm>
2492 <indexterm><primary>media
</primary><secondary>commercial imperatives of
</secondary></indexterm>
2493 <indexterm><primary>Iraq war
</primary></indexterm>
2494 <indexterm><primary>media
</primary><secondary>ownership concentration in
</secondary></indexterm>
2496 These conflicts become more important as media becomes more
2497 concentrated (more on this below). A concentrated media can hide more
2498 from the public than an unconcentrated media can
—as CNN admitted
2499 it did after the Iraq war because it was afraid of the consequences to
2500 its own employees.
<footnote><para>
2502 Telephone interview with David Winer,
16 April
2003.
2504 It also needs to sustain a more coherent account. (In the middle of
2505 the Iraq war, I read a post on the Internet from someone who was at
2506 that time listening to a satellite uplink with a reporter in Iraq. The
2507 New York headquarters was telling the reporter over and over that her
2508 account of the war was too bleak: She needed to offer a more
2509 optimistic story. When she told New York that wasn't warranted, they
2510 told her that
<emphasis>they
</emphasis> were writing
<quote>the story.
</quote>)
2512 <indexterm startref='idxinternetnewseventson2' class='endofrange'
/>
2514 Blog space gives amateurs a way to enter the
2515 debate
—<quote>amateur
</quote> not in the sense of inexperienced,
2516 but in the sense of an Olympic athlete, meaning not paid by anyone to
2517 give their reports. It allows for a much broader range of input into a
2518 story, as reporting on the Columbia disaster revealed, when hundreds
2519 from across the southwest United States turned to the Internet to
2520 retell what they had seen.
<footnote><para>
2522 John Schwartz,
<quote>Loss of the Shuttle: The Internet; A Wealth of
2523 Information Online,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
2 February
2003, A28; Staci
2524 D. Kramer,
<quote>Shuttle Disaster Coverage Mixed, but Strong Overall,
</quote>
2525 Online Journalism Review,
2 February
2003, available at
2526 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
10</ulink>.
2528 And it drives readers to read across the range of accounts and
2529 <quote>triangulate,
</quote> as Winer puts it, the truth. Blogs, Winer says, are
2530 <quote>communicating directly with our constituency, and the middle man is
2531 out of it
</quote>—with all the benefits, and costs, that might entail.
2534 Winer is optimistic about the future of journalism infected
2535 with blogs.
<quote>It's going to become an essential skill,
</quote> Winer predicts,
2536 for public figures and increasingly for private figures as well. It's
2537 not clear that
<quote>journalism
</quote> is happy about this
—some journalists
2538 have been told to curtail their blogging.
<footnote>
2541 <indexterm><primary>CNN
</primary></indexterm>
2542 <indexterm><primary>Iraq war
</primary></indexterm>
2543 <indexterm><primary>Olafson, Steve
</primary></indexterm>
2544 <indexterm><primary>blogs (Web-logs)
</primary></indexterm>
2545 See Michael Falcone,
<quote>Does an Editor's Pencil Ruin a Web Log?
</quote> <citetitle>New
2546 York Times
</citetitle>,
29 September
2003, C4. (
<quote>Not all news organizations have
2547 been as accepting of employees who blog. Kevin Sites, a CNN
2548 correspondent in Iraq who started a blog about his reporting of the
2549 war on March
9, stopped posting
12 days later at his bosses'
2550 request. Last year Steve Olafson, a
<citetitle>Houston Chronicle
</citetitle> reporter, was
2551 fired for keeping a personal Web log, published under a pseudonym,
2552 that dealt with some of the issues and people he was covering.
</quote>)
2554 But it is clear that we are still in transition.
<quote>A
2556 <!-- PAGE BREAK 58 -->
2557 lot of what we are doing now is warm-up exercises,
</quote> Winer told me.
2558 There is a lot that must mature before this space has its mature effect.
2559 And as the inclusion of content in this space is the least infringing use
2560 of the Internet (meaning infringing on copyright), Winer said,
<quote>we will
2561 be the last thing that gets shut down.
</quote>
2563 <indexterm startref='idxjournalism' class='endofrange'
/>
2565 This speech affects democracy. Winer thinks that happens because
<quote>you
2566 don't have to work for somebody who controls, [for] a gatekeeper.
</quote>
2567 That is true. But it affects democracy in another way as well. As
2568 more and more citizens express what they think, and defend it in
2569 writing, that will change the way people understand public issues. It
2570 is easy to be wrong and misguided in your head. It is harder when the
2571 product of your mind can be criticized by others. Of course, it is a
2572 rare human who admits that he has been persuaded that he is wrong. But
2573 it is even rarer for a human to ignore when he has been proven wrong.
2574 The writing of ideas, arguments, and criticism improves democracy.
2575 Today there are probably a couple of million blogs where such writing
2576 happens. When there are ten million, there will be something
2577 extraordinary to report.
2579 <indexterm startref='idxnewscoverage' class='endofrange'
/>
2580 <indexterm startref='idxinternetpublicdiscourseconductedon' class='endofrange'
/>
2581 <indexterm startref='idxpoliticaldiscourse' class='endofrange'
/>
2582 <indexterm startref='idxblogsweblogs2' class='endofrange'
/>
2583 <indexterm startref='idxinternetblogson2' class='endofrange'
/>
2584 <indexterm startref='idxweblogsblogs2' class='endofrange'
/>
2585 <indexterm startref='idxwinerdave' class='endofrange'
/>
2586 <indexterm id='idxbrownjohnseely' class='startofrange'
><primary>Brown, John Seely
</primary></indexterm>
2587 <indexterm id='idxadvertising1' class='startofrange'
><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
2589 <emphasis role='strong'
>John Seely Brown
</emphasis> is the chief
2590 scientist of the Xerox Corporation. His work, as his Web site
2591 describes it, is
<quote>human learning and
… the creation of
2592 knowledge ecologies for creating
… innovation.
</quote>
2595 Brown thus looks at these technologies of digital creativity a bit
2596 differently from the perspectives I've sketched so far. I'm sure he
2597 would be excited about any technology that might improve
2598 democracy. But his real excitement comes from how these technologies
2602 As Brown believes, we learn by tinkering. When
<quote>a lot of us grew up,
</quote>
2603 he explains, that tinkering was done
<quote>on motorcycle engines, lawnmower
2604 engines, automobiles, radios, and so on.
</quote> But digital technologies
2605 enable a different kind of tinkering
—with abstract ideas though
2606 in concrete form. The kids at Just Think! not only think about how a
2607 commercial portrays a politician; using digital technology, they can
2608 <!-- PAGE BREAK 59 -->
2609 take the commercial apart and manipulate it, tinker with it to see how
2610 it does what it does. Digital technologies launch a kind of bricolage,
2611 or
<quote>free collage,
</quote> as Brown calls it. Many get to add to or transform
2612 the tinkering of many others.
2615 The best large-scale example of this kind of tinkering so far is free
2616 software or open-source software (FS/OSS). FS/OSS is software whose
2617 source code is shared. Anyone can download the technology that makes a
2618 FS/OSS program run. And anyone eager to learn how a particular bit of
2619 FS/OSS technology works can tinker with the code.
2622 This opportunity creates a
<quote>completely new kind of learning platform,
</quote>
2623 as Brown describes.
<quote>As soon as you start doing that, you
…
2624 unleash a free collage on the community, so that other people can
2625 start looking at your code, tinkering with it, trying it out, seeing
2626 if they can improve it.
</quote> Each effort is a kind of
2627 apprenticeship.
<quote>Open source becomes a major apprenticeship platform.
</quote>
2630 In this process,
<quote>the concrete things you tinker with are abstract.
2631 They are code.
</quote> Kids are
<quote>shifting to the ability to tinker in the
2632 abstract, and this tinkering is no longer an isolated activity that
2633 you're doing in your garage. You are tinkering with a community
2634 platform.
… You are tinkering with other people's stuff. The more
2635 you tinker the more you improve.
</quote> The more you improve, the more you
2639 This same thing happens with content, too. And it happens in the same
2640 collaborative way when that content is part of the Web. As Brown puts
2641 it,
<quote>the Web [is] the first medium that truly honors multiple forms of
2642 intelligence.
</quote> Earlier technologies, such as the typewriter or word
2643 processors, helped amplify text. But the Web amplifies much more than
2644 text.
<quote>The Web
… says if you are musical, if you are artistic, if
2645 you are visual, if you are interested in film
… [then] there is a
2646 lot you can start to do on this medium. [It] can now amplify and honor
2647 these multiple forms of intelligence.
</quote>
2649 <indexterm startref='idxadvertising1' class='endofrange'
/>
2650 <indexterm><primary>Barish, Stephanie
</primary></indexterm>
2652 Brown is talking about what Elizabeth Daley, Stephanie Barish, and
2653 Just Think! teach: that this tinkering with culture teaches as well
2655 <!-- PAGE BREAK 60 -->
2656 as creates. It develops talents differently, and it builds a different
2657 kind of recognition.
2660 Yet the freedom to tinker with these objects is not guaranteed.
2661 Indeed, as we'll see through the course of this book, that freedom is
2662 increasingly highly contested. While there's no doubt that your father
2663 had the right to tinker with the car engine, there's great doubt that
2664 your child will have the right to tinker with the images she finds all
2665 around. The law and, increasingly, technology interfere with a
2666 freedom that technology, and curiosity, would otherwise ensure.
2669 These restrictions have become the focus of researchers and scholars.
2670 Professor Ed Felten of Princeton (whom we'll see more of in chapter
2671 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/>)
2672 has developed a powerful argument in favor of the
<quote>right to
2673 tinker
</quote> as it applies to computer science and to knowledge in
2674 general.
<footnote><para>
2676 See, for example, Edward Felten and Andrew Appel,
<quote>Technological Access
2677 Control Interferes with Noninfringing Scholarship,
</quote> <citetitle>Communications
2678 of the Association for Computer Machinery
</citetitle> 43 (
2000):
9.
2680 But Brown's concern is earlier, or younger, or more fundamental. It is
2681 about the learning that kids can do, or can't do, because of the law.
2684 <quote>This is where education in the twenty-first century is going,
</quote> Brown
2685 explains. We need to
<quote>understand how kids who grow up digital think
2686 and want to learn.
</quote>
2689 <quote>Yet,
</quote> as Brown continued, and as the balance of this book will
2690 evince,
<quote>we are building a legal system that completely suppresses the
2691 natural tendencies of today's digital kids.
… We're building an
2692 architecture that unleashes
60 percent of the brain [and] a legal
2693 system that closes down that part of the brain.
</quote>
2695 <indexterm startref='idxbrownjohnseely' class='endofrange'
/>
2697 We're building a technology that takes the magic of Kodak, mixes
2698 moving images and sound, and adds a space for commentary and an
2699 opportunity to spread that creativity everywhere. But we're building
2700 the law to close down that technology.
2703 <quote>No way to run a culture,
</quote> as Brewster Kahle, whom we'll meet in
2704 chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"collectors"/>,
2705 quipped to me in a rare moment of despondence.
2707 <!-- PAGE BREAK 61 -->
2709 <chapter label=
"3" id=
"catalogs">
2710 <title>CHAPTER THREE: Catalogs
</title>
2711 <indexterm><primary>Jordan, Jesse
</primary></indexterm>
2712 <indexterm><primary>RPI
</primary><see>Rensselaer Polytechnic Institute (RPI)
</see></indexterm>
2713 <indexterm id='idxrensselaer' class='startofrange'
><primary>Rensselaer Polytechnic Institute (RPI)
</primary></indexterm>
2714 <indexterm id='idxrensselaerpolytechnicinstituterpicomputernetworksearchengineof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Rensselaer Polytechnic Institute (RPI)
</primary><secondary>computer network search engine of
</secondary></indexterm>
2715 <indexterm id='idxsearchengines' class='startofrange'
><primary>search engines
</primary></indexterm>
2716 <indexterm id='idxuniversitycomputernetworksppsharingon' class='startofrange'
><primary>university computer networks, p2p sharing on
</primary></indexterm>
2717 <indexterm id='idxinternetsearchenginesusedon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>search engines used on
</secondary></indexterm>
2719 <emphasis role='strong'
>In the fall
</emphasis> of
2002, Jesse Jordan
2720 of Oceanside, New York, enrolled as a freshman at Rensselaer
2721 Polytechnic Institute, in Troy, New York. His major at RPI was
2722 information technology. Though he is not a programmer, in October
2723 Jesse decided to begin to tinker with search engine technology that
2724 was available on the RPI network.
2727 RPI is one of America's foremost technological research institutions.
2728 It offers degrees in fields ranging from architecture and engineering
2729 to information sciences. More than
65 percent of its five thousand
2730 undergraduates finished in the top
10 percent of their high school
2731 class. The school is thus a perfect mix of talent and experience to
2732 imagine and then build, a generation for the network age.
2735 RPI's computer network links students, faculty, and administration to
2736 one another. It also links RPI to the Internet. Not everything
2737 available on the RPI network is available on the Internet. But the
2738 network is designed to enable students to get access to the Internet,
2739 as well as more intimate access to other members of the RPI community.
2741 <indexterm id='idxgoogle' class='startofrange'
><primary>Google
</primary></indexterm>
2743 Search engines are a measure of a network's intimacy. Google
2744 <!-- PAGE BREAK 62 -->
2745 brought the Internet much closer to all of us by fantastically
2746 improving the quality of search on the network. Specialty search
2747 engines can do this even better. The idea of
<quote>intranet
</quote> search
2748 engines, search engines that search within the network of a particular
2749 institution, is to provide users of that institution with better
2750 access to material from that institution. Businesses do this all the
2751 time, enabling employees to have access to material that people
2752 outside the business can't get. Universities do it as well.
2754 <indexterm startref='idxuniversitycomputernetworksppsharingon' class='endofrange'
/>
2755 <indexterm id='idxjordanjesse' class='startofrange'
><primary>Jordan, Jesse
</primary></indexterm>
2756 <indexterm id='idxmicrosoftnetworkfilesystemof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>network file system of
</secondary></indexterm>
2758 These engines are enabled by the network technology itself.
2759 Microsoft, for example, has a network file system that makes it very
2760 easy for search engines tuned to that network to query the system for
2761 information about the publicly (within that network) available
2762 content. Jesse's search engine was built to take advantage of this
2763 technology. It used Microsoft's network file system to build an index
2764 of all the files available within the RPI network.
2766 <indexterm startref='idxgoogle' class='endofrange'
/>
2768 Jesse's wasn't the first search engine built for the RPI network.
2769 Indeed, his engine was a simple modification of engines that others
2770 had built. His single most important improvement over those engines
2771 was to fix a bug within the Microsoft file-sharing system that could
2772 cause a user's computer to crash. With the engines that existed
2773 before, if you tried to access a file through a Windows browser that
2774 was on a computer that was off-line, your computer could crash. Jesse
2775 modified the system a bit to fix that problem, by adding a button that
2776 a user could click to see if the machine holding the file was still
2779 <indexterm startref='idxmicrosoftnetworkfilesystemof' class='endofrange'
/>
2781 Jesse's engine went on-line in late October. Over the following six
2782 months, he continued to tweak it to improve its functionality. By
2783 March, the system was functioning quite well. Jesse had more than one
2784 million files in his directory, including every type of content that might
2785 be on users' computers.
2787 <indexterm startref='idxinternetsearchenginesusedon' class='endofrange'
/>
2789 Thus the index his search engine produced included pictures, which
2790 students could use to put on their own Web sites; copies of notes or
2791 research; copies of information pamphlets; movie clips that students
2792 might have created; university brochures
—basically anything that
2793 <!-- PAGE BREAK 63 -->
2794 users of the RPI network made available in a public folder of their
2797 <indexterm><primary>Google
</primary></indexterm>
2798 <indexterm><primary>education
</primary><secondary>tinkering as means of
</secondary></indexterm>
2800 But the index also included music files. In fact, one quarter of the
2801 files that Jesse's search engine listed were music files. But that
2802 means, of course, that three quarters were not, and
—so that this
2803 point is absolutely clear
—Jesse did nothing to induce people to
2804 put music files in their public folders. He did nothing to target the
2805 search engine to these files. He was a kid tinkering with a
2806 Google-like technology at a university where he was studying
2807 information science, and hence, tinkering was the aim. Unlike Google,
2808 or Microsoft, for that matter, he made no money from this tinkering;
2809 he was not connected to any business that would make any money from
2810 this experiment. He was a kid tinkering with technology in an
2811 environment where tinkering with technology was precisely what he was
2814 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>in recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
2815 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsagainststudentfilesharing' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>against student file sharing
</secondary></indexterm>
2816 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustrycopyrightinfringementlawsuitsof' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits of
</secondary></indexterm>
2817 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaacopyrightinfringementlawsuitsfiledby' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits filed by
</secondary></indexterm>
2818 <indexterm startref='idxrensselaerpolytechnicinstituterpicomputernetworksearchengineof' class='endofrange'
/>
2820 On April
3,
2003, Jesse was contacted by the dean of students at
2821 RPI. The dean informed Jesse that the Recording Industry Association
2822 of America, the RIAA, would be filing a lawsuit against him and three
2823 other students whom he didn't even know, two of them at other
2824 universities. A few hours later, Jesse was served with papers from
2825 the suit. As he read these papers and watched the news reports about
2826 them, he was increasingly astonished.
2829 <quote>It was absurd,
</quote> he told me.
<quote>I don't think I did anything
2830 wrong.
… I don't think there's anything wrong with the search
2831 engine that I ran or
… what I had done to it. I mean, I hadn't
2832 modified it in any way that promoted or enhanced the work of
2833 pirates. I just modified the search engine in a way that would make it
2834 easier to use
</quote>—again, a
<emphasis>search engine
</emphasis>,
2835 which Jesse had not himself built, using the Windows filesharing
2836 system, which Jesse had not himself built, to enable members of the
2837 RPI community to get access to content, which Jesse had not himself
2838 created or posted, and the vast majority of which had nothing to do
2841 <indexterm startref='idxsearchengines' class='endofrange'
/>
2842 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>exaggerated claims of
</secondary></indexterm>
2843 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>statutory damages of
</secondary></indexterm>
2844 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsindividualdefendantsintimidatedby' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>individual defendants intimidated by
</secondary></indexterm>
2845 <indexterm><primary>statutory damages
</primary></indexterm>
2846 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaintimidationtacticsof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>intimidation tactics of
</secondary></indexterm>
2848 But the RIAA branded Jesse a pirate. They claimed he operated a
2849 network and had therefore
<quote>willfully
</quote> violated copyright laws. They
2850 <!-- PAGE BREAK 64 -->
2851 demanded that he pay them the damages for his wrong. For cases of
2852 <quote>willful infringement,
</quote> the Copyright Act specifies something lawyers
2853 call
<quote>statutory damages.
</quote> These damages permit a copyright owner to
2854 claim $
150,
000 per infringement. As the RIAA alleged more than one
2855 hundred specific copyright infringements, they therefore demanded that
2856 Jesse pay them at least $
15,
000,
000.
2858 <indexterm><primary>Michigan Technical University
</primary></indexterm>
2859 <indexterm><primary>Princeton University
</primary></indexterm>
2861 Similar lawsuits were brought against three other students: one other
2862 student at RPI, one at Michigan Technical University, and one at
2863 Princeton. Their situations were similar to Jesse's. Though each case
2864 was different in detail, the bottom line in each was exactly the same:
2865 huge demands for
<quote>damages
</quote> that the RIAA claimed it was entitled to.
2866 If you added up the claims, these four lawsuits were asking courts in
2867 the United States to award the plaintiffs close to $
100
2868 <emphasis>billion
</emphasis>—six times the
2869 <emphasis>total
</emphasis> profit of the film industry in
2870 2001.
<footnote><para>
2873 Tim Goral,
<quote>Recording Industry Goes After Campus P-
2-P Networks:
2874 Suit Alleges $
97.8 Billion in Damages,
</quote> <citetitle>Professional Media Group LCC
</citetitle> 6
2875 (
2003):
5, available at
2003 WL
55179443.
2878 <indexterm startref='idxrensselaer' class='endofrange'
/>
2880 Jesse called his parents. They were supportive but a bit frightened.
2881 An uncle was a lawyer. He began negotiations with the RIAA. They
2882 demanded to know how much money Jesse had. Jesse had saved
2883 $
12,
000 from summer jobs and other employment. They demanded
2884 $
12,
000 to dismiss the case.
2886 <indexterm><primary>Oppenheimer, Matt
</primary></indexterm>
2888 The RIAA wanted Jesse to admit to doing something wrong. He
2889 refused. They wanted him to agree to an injunction that would
2890 essentially make it impossible for him to work in many fields of
2891 technology for the rest of his life. He refused. They made him
2892 understand that this process of being sued was not going to be
2893 pleasant. (As Jesse's father recounted to me, the chief lawyer on the
2894 case, Matt Oppenheimer, told Jesse,
<quote>You don't want to pay another
2895 visit to a dentist like me.
</quote>) And throughout, the RIAA insisted it
2896 would not settle the case until it took every penny Jesse had saved.
2898 <indexterm><primary>legal system, attorney costs in
</primary></indexterm>
2900 Jesse's family was outraged at these claims. They wanted to fight.
2901 But Jesse's uncle worked to educate the family about the nature of the
2902 American legal system. Jesse could fight the RIAA. He might even
2903 win. But the cost of fighting a lawsuit like this, Jesse was told, would be
2904 at least $
250,
000. If he won, he would not recover that money. If he
2905 <!-- PAGE BREAK 65 -->
2906 won, he would have a piece of paper saying he had won, and a piece of
2907 paper saying he and his family were bankrupt.
2910 So Jesse faced a mafia-like choice: $
250,
000 and a chance at winning,
2911 or $
12,
000 and a settlement.
2913 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
2914 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in
</secondary></indexterm>
2915 <indexterm><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>lobbying power of
</secondary></indexterm>
2917 The recording industry insists this is a matter of law and morality.
2918 Let's put the law aside for a moment and think about the morality.
2919 Where is the morality in a lawsuit like this? What is the virtue in
2920 scapegoatism? The RIAA is an extraordinarily powerful lobby. The
2921 president of the RIAA is reported to make more than $
1 million a year.
2922 Artists, on the other hand, are not well paid. The average recording
2923 artist makes $
45,
900.
<footnote><para>
2925 Occupational Employment Survey, U.S. Dept. of Labor (
2001)
2926 (
27–2042—Musicians and Singers). See also National Endowment for
2927 the Arts,
<citetitle>More Than One in a Blue Moon
</citetitle> (
2000).
2929 There are plenty of ways for the RIAA to affect
2930 and direct policy. So where is the morality in taking money from a
2931 student for running a search engine?
<footnote><para>
2933 Douglas Lichtman makes a related point in
<quote>KaZaA and Punishment,
</quote>
2934 <citetitle>Wall Street Journal
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003, A24.
2937 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsindividualdefendantsintimidatedby' class='endofrange'
/>
2938 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaintimidationtacticsof' class='endofrange'
/>
2940 On June
23, Jesse wired his savings to the lawyer working for the
2941 RIAA. The case against him was then dismissed. And with this, this
2942 kid who had tinkered a computer into a $
15 million lawsuit became an
2947 I was definitely not an activist [before]. I never really meant to be
2948 an activist.
… [But] I've been pushed into this. In no way did I
2949 ever foresee anything like this, but I think it's just completely
2950 absurd what the RIAA has done.
2954 Jesse's parents betray a certain pride in their reluctant activist. As
2955 his father told me, Jesse
<quote>considers himself very conservative, and so do
2956 I.
… He's not a tree hugger.
… I think it's bizarre that they would
2957 pick on him. But he wants to let people know that they're sending the
2958 wrong message. And he wants to correct the record.
</quote>
2960 <indexterm startref='idxuniversitycomputernetworksppsharingon' class='endofrange'
/>
2961 <indexterm startref='idxjordanjesse' class='endofrange'
/>
2962 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry' class='endofrange'
/>
2963 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsagainststudentfilesharing' class='endofrange'
/>
2964 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustrycopyrightinfringementlawsuitsof' class='endofrange'
/>
2965 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaacopyrightinfringementlawsuitsfiledby' class='endofrange'
/>
2966 <!-- PAGE BREAK 66 -->
2968 <chapter label=
"4" id=
"pirates">
2969 <title>CHAPTER FOUR:
<quote>Pirates
</quote></title>
2970 <indexterm id='idxpiracyindevelopmentofcontentindustry' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>in development of content industry
</secondary></indexterm>
2971 <indexterm><primary><quote>if value, then right
</quote> theory
</primary></indexterm>
2973 <emphasis role='strong'
>If
<quote>piracy
</quote> means
</emphasis>
2974 using the creative property of others without their
2975 permission
—if
<quote>if value, then right
</quote> is
2976 true
—then the history of the content industry is a history of
2977 piracy. Every important sector of
<quote>big media
</quote>
2978 today
—film, records, radio, and cable TV
—was born of a
2979 kind of piracy so defined. The consistent story is how last
2980 generation's pirates join this generation's country club
—until
2986 The film industry of Hollywood was built by fleeing pirates.
<footnote><para>
2988 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
2989 I am grateful to Peter DiMauro for pointing me to this extraordinary
2990 history. See also Siva Vaidhyanathan,
<citetitle>Copyrights and Copywrongs
</citetitle>,
87–93,
2991 which details Edison's
<quote>adventures
</quote> with copyright and patent.
2993 Creators and directors migrated from the East Coast to California in
2994 the early twentieth century in part to escape controls that patents
2995 granted the inventor of filmmaking, Thomas Edison. These controls were
2996 exercised through a monopoly
<quote>trust,
</quote> the Motion Pictures Patents
2997 Company, and were based on Thomas Edison's creative
2998 property
—patents. Edison formed the MPPC to exercise the rights
2999 this creative property
3000 <!-- PAGE BREAK 67 -->
3001 gave him, and the MPPC was serious about the control it demanded.
3004 As one commentator tells one part of the story,
3008 A January
1909 deadline was set for all companies to comply with
3009 the license. By February, unlicensed outlaws, who referred to
3010 themselves as independents protested the trust and carried on
3011 business without submitting to the Edison monopoly. In the
3012 summer of
1909 the independent movement was in full-swing,
3013 with producers and theater owners using illegal equipment and
3014 imported film stock to create their own underground market.
3016 <indexterm><primary>Fox, William
</primary></indexterm>
3017 <indexterm><primary>General Film Company
</primary></indexterm>
3018 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.
</primary></indexterm>
3020 With the country experiencing a tremendous expansion in the number of
3021 nickelodeons, the Patents Company reacted to the independent movement
3022 by forming a strong-arm subsidiary known as the General Film Company
3023 to block the entry of non-licensed independents. With coercive tactics
3024 that have become legendary, General Film confiscated unlicensed
3025 equipment, discontinued product supply to theaters which showed
3026 unlicensed films, and effectively monopolized distribution with the
3027 acquisition of all U.S. film exchanges, except for the one owned by
3028 the independent William Fox who defied the Trust even after his
3029 license was revoked.
<footnote><para>
3031 J. A. Aberdeen,
<citetitle>Hollywood Renegades: The Society of Independent Motion
3032 Picture Producers
</citetitle> (Cobblestone Entertainment,
2000) and expanded texts
3033 posted at
<quote>The Edison Movie Monopoly: The Motion Picture Patents
3034 Company vs. the Independent Outlaws,
</quote> available at
3035 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
11</ulink>. For a
3036 discussion of the economic motive behind both these limits and the
3037 limits imposed by Victor on phonographs, see Randal C. Picker,
<quote>From
3038 Edison to the Broadcast Flag: Mechanisms of Consent and Refusal and
3039 the Propertization of Copyright
</quote> (September
2002), University of
3040 Chicago Law School, James M. Olin Program in Law and Economics,
3041 Working Paper No.
159.
3042 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag
</primary></indexterm>
3047 The Napsters of those days, the
<quote>independents,
</quote> were companies like
3048 Fox. And no less than today, these independents were vigorously
3049 resisted.
<quote>Shooting was disrupted by machinery stolen, and
3050 `accidents' resulting in loss of negatives, equipment, buildings and
3051 sometimes life and limb frequently occurred.
</quote><footnote><para>
3053 Marc Wanamaker,
<quote>The First Studios,
</quote> <citetitle>The Silents Majority
</citetitle>, archived at
3054 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
12</ulink>.
3056 That led the independents to flee the East
3057 Coast. California was remote enough from Edison's reach that
3058 filmmakers there could pirate his inventions without fear of the
3059 law. And the leaders of Hollywood filmmaking, Fox most prominently,
3063 Of course, California grew quickly, and the effective enforcement
3064 of federal law eventually spread west. But because patents grant the
3065 patent holder a truly
<quote>limited
</quote> monopoly (just seventeen years at that
3067 <!-- PAGE BREAK 68 -->
3068 time), by the time enough federal marshals appeared, the patents had
3069 expired. A new industry had been born, in part from the piracy of
3070 Edison's creative property.
3073 <section id=
"recordedmusic">
3074 <title>Recorded Music
</title>
3075 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on music recordings
</secondary></indexterm>
3077 The record industry was born of another kind of piracy, though to see
3078 how requires a bit of detail about the way the law regulates music.
3080 <indexterm id='idxfourneauxhenri' class='startofrange'
><primary>Fourneaux, Henri
</primary></indexterm>
3081 <indexterm><primary>Russel, Phil
</primary></indexterm>
3083 At the time that Edison and Henri Fourneaux invented machines
3084 for reproducing music (Edison the phonograph, Fourneaux the player
3085 piano), the law gave composers the exclusive right to control copies of
3086 their music and the exclusive right to control public performances of
3087 their music. In other words, in
1900, if I wanted a copy of Phil Russel's
3088 1899 hit
<quote>Happy Mose,
</quote> the law said I would have to pay for the right
3089 to get a copy of the musical score, and I would also have to pay for the
3090 right to perform it publicly.
3092 <indexterm><primary>Beatles
</primary></indexterm>
3094 But what if I wanted to record
<quote>Happy Mose,
</quote> using Edison's phonograph
3095 or Fourneaux's player piano? Here the law stumbled. It was clear
3096 enough that I would have to buy any copy of the musical score that I
3097 performed in making this recording. And it was clear enough that I
3098 would have to pay for any public performance of the work I was
3099 recording. But it wasn't totally clear that I would have to pay for a
3100 <quote>public performance
</quote> if I recorded the song in my own house (even
3101 today, you don't owe the Beatles anything if you sing their songs in
3102 the shower), or if I recorded the song from memory (copies in your
3103 brain are not
—yet
— regulated by copyright law). So if I
3104 simply sang the song into a recording device in the privacy of my own
3105 home, it wasn't clear that I owed the composer anything. And more
3106 importantly, it wasn't clear whether I owed the composer anything if I
3107 then made copies of those recordings. Because of this gap in the law,
3108 then, I could effectively pirate someone else's song without paying
3109 its composer anything.
3111 <indexterm startref='idxfourneauxhenri' class='endofrange'
/>
3113 The composers (and publishers) were none too happy about
3114 <!-- PAGE BREAK 69 -->
3115 this capacity to pirate. As South Dakota senator Alfred Kittredge
3117 <indexterm><primary>Kittredge, Alfred
</primary></indexterm>
3121 Imagine the injustice of the thing. A composer writes a song or an
3122 opera. A publisher buys at great expense the rights to the same and
3123 copyrights it. Along come the phonographic companies and companies who
3124 cut music rolls and deliberately steal the work of the brain of the
3125 composer and publisher without any regard for [their]
3126 rights.
<footnote><para>
3128 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright: Hearings on
3129 S.
6330 and H.R.
19853 Before the (Joint) Committees on Patents,
59th
3130 Cong.
59,
1st sess. (
1906) (statement of Senator Alfred B. Kittredge,
3131 of South Dakota, chairman), reprinted in
<citetitle>Legislative History of the
3132 Copyright Act
</citetitle>, E. Fulton Brylawski and Abe Goldman, eds. (South
3133 Hackensack, N.J.: Rothman Reprints,
1976).
3134 <indexterm><primary>Kittredge, Alfred
</primary></indexterm>
3138 <indexterm><primary>Sousa, John Philip
</primary></indexterm>
3140 The innovators who developed the technology to record other
3141 people's works were
<quote>sponging upon the toil, the work, the talent, and
3142 genius of American composers,
</quote><footnote><para>
3144 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
223
3145 (statement of Nathan Burkan, attorney for the Music Publishers Association).
3147 and the
<quote>music publishing industry
</quote>
3148 was thereby
<quote>at the complete mercy of this one pirate.
</quote><footnote><para>
3150 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
226
3151 (statement of Nathan Burkan, attorney for the Music Publishers Association).
3154 Sousa put it, in as direct a way as possible,
<quote>When they make money
3155 out of my pieces, I want a share of it.
</quote><footnote><para>
3157 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
23
3158 (statement of John Philip Sousa, composer).
3161 <indexterm><primary>American Graphophone Company
</primary></indexterm>
3162 <indexterm><primary>player pianos
</primary></indexterm>
3163 <indexterm><primary>sheet music
</primary></indexterm>
3164 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
3165 <indexterm id='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
3166 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>statutory licenses in
</secondary></indexterm>
3167 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustrystatutorylicensesystemin' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>statutory license system in
</secondary></indexterm>
3169 These arguments have familiar echoes in the wars of our day. So, too,
3170 do the arguments on the other side. The innovators who developed the
3171 player piano argued that
<quote>it is perfectly demonstrable that the
3172 introduction of automatic music players has not deprived any composer
3173 of anything he had before their introduction.
</quote> Rather, the machines
3174 increased the sales of sheet music.
<footnote><para>
3177 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
283–84
3178 (statement of Albert Walker, representative of the Auto-Music
3179 Perforating Company of New York).
3180 </para></footnote> In any case, the innovators argued, the job of
3181 Congress was
<quote>to consider first the interest of [the public], whom
3182 they represent, and whose servants they are.
</quote> <quote>All talk about
3183 `theft,'
</quote> the general counsel of the American Graphophone Company
3184 wrote,
<quote>is the merest claptrap, for there exists no property in ideas
3185 musical, literary or artistic, except as defined by
3186 statute.
</quote><footnote><para>
3188 To Amend and Consolidate the Acts Respecting Copyright,
376 (prepared
3189 memorandum of Philip Mauro, general patent counsel of the American
3190 Graphophone Company Association).
3193 <indexterm><primary>cover songs
</primary></indexterm>
3195 The law soon resolved this battle in favor of the composer
3196 <emphasis>and
</emphasis> the recording artist. Congress amended the
3197 law to make sure that composers would be paid for the
<quote>mechanical
3198 reproductions
</quote> of their music. But rather than simply granting the
3199 composer complete control over the right to make mechanical
3200 reproductions, Congress gave recording artists a right to record the
3201 music, at a price set by Congress, once the composer allowed it to be
3202 recorded once. This is the part of
3204 <!-- PAGE BREAK 70 -->
3205 copyright law that makes cover songs possible. Once a composer
3206 authorizes a recording of his song, others are free to record the same
3207 song, so long as they pay the original composer a fee set by the law.
3209 <indexterm id='idxcompulsorylicense' class='startofrange'
><primary>compulsory license
</primary></indexterm>
3210 <indexterm id='idxstatutorylicenses' class='startofrange'
><primary>statutory licenses
</primary></indexterm>
3212 American law ordinarily calls this a
<quote>compulsory license,
</quote> but I will
3213 refer to it as a
<quote>statutory license.
</quote> A statutory license is a license
3214 whose key terms are set by law. After Congress's amendment of the
3215 Copyright Act in
1909, record companies were free to distribute copies
3216 of recordings so long as they paid the composer (or copyright holder)
3217 the fee set by the statute.
3219 <indexterm id='idxgrishamjohn' class='startofrange'
><primary>Grisham, John
</primary></indexterm>
3221 This is an exception within the law of copyright. When John Grisham
3222 writes a novel, a publisher is free to publish that novel only if
3223 Grisham gives the publisher permission. Grisham, in turn, is free to
3224 charge whatever he wants for that permission. The price to publish
3225 Grisham is thus set by Grisham, and copyright law ordinarily says you
3226 have no permission to use Grisham's work except with permission of
3229 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings' class='endofrange'
/>
3230 <indexterm><primary>Beatles
</primary></indexterm>
3232 But the law governing recordings gives recording artists less. And
3233 thus, in effect, the law
<emphasis>subsidizes
</emphasis> the recording
3234 industry through a kind of piracy
—by giving recording artists a
3235 weaker right than it otherwise gives creative authors. The Beatles
3236 have less control over their creative work than Grisham does. And the
3237 beneficiaries of this less control are the recording industry and the
3238 public. The recording industry gets something of value for less than
3239 it otherwise would pay; the public gets access to a much wider range
3240 of musical creativity. Indeed, Congress was quite explicit about its
3241 reasons for granting this right. Its fear was the monopoly power of
3242 rights holders, and that that power would stifle follow-on
3243 creativity.
<footnote><para>
3246 Copyright Law Revision: Hearings on S.
2499, S.
2900, H.R.
243, and
3247 H.R.
11794 Before the (Joint) Committee on Patents,
60th Cong.,
1st
3248 sess.,
217 (
1908) (statement of Senator Reed Smoot, chairman), reprinted
3249 in
<citetitle>Legislative History of the
1909 Copyright Act
</citetitle>, E. Fulton Brylawski and
3250 Abe Goldman, eds. (South Hackensack, N.J.: Rothman Reprints,
1976).
3253 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws' class='endofrange'
/>
3254 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry' class='endofrange'
/>
3255 <indexterm startref='idxgrishamjohn' class='endofrange'
/>
3257 While the recording industry has been quite coy about this recently,
3258 historically it has been quite a supporter of the statutory license for
3259 records. As a
1967 report from the House Committee on the Judiciary
3264 the record producers argued vigorously that the compulsory
3265 <!-- PAGE BREAK 71 -->
3266 license system must be retained. They asserted that the record
3267 industry is a half-billion-dollar business of great economic
3268 importance in the United States and throughout the world; records
3269 today are the principal means of disseminating music, and this creates
3270 special problems, since performers need unhampered access to musical
3271 material on nondiscriminatory terms. Historically, the record
3272 producers pointed out, there were no recording rights before
1909 and
3273 the
1909 statute adopted the compulsory license as a deliberate
3274 anti-monopoly condition on the grant of these rights. They argue that
3275 the result has been an outpouring of recorded music, with the public
3276 being given lower prices, improved quality, and a greater
3277 choice.
<footnote><para>
3279 Copyright Law Revision: Report to Accompany H.R.
2512, House Committee
3280 on the Judiciary,
90th Cong.,
1st sess., House Document no.
83, (
8
3281 March
1967). I am grateful to Glenn Brown for drawing my attention to
3282 this report.
</para></footnote>
3285 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin' class='endofrange'
/>
3286 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustrystatutorylicensesystemin' class='endofrange'
/>
3287 <indexterm startref='idxcompulsorylicense' class='endofrange'
/>
3288 <indexterm startref='idxstatutorylicenses' class='endofrange'
/>
3290 By limiting the rights musicians have, by partially pirating their
3291 creative work, the record producers, and the public, benefit.
3294 <section id=
"radio">
3295 <title>Radio
</title>
3296 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryradiobroadcastand' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>radio broadcast and
</secondary></indexterm>
3297 <indexterm id='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
3299 Radio was also born of piracy.
3302 When a radio station plays a record on the air, that constitutes a
3303 <quote>public performance
</quote> of the composer's work.
<footnote><para>
3305 See
17 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, sections
106 and
110. At the beginning,
3306 record companies printed
<quote>Not Licensed for Radio Broadcast
</quote> and other
3307 messages purporting to restrict the ability to play a record on a
3308 radio station. Judge Learned Hand rejected the argument that a
3309 warning attached to a record might restrict the rights of the radio
3310 station. See
<citetitle>RCA Manufacturing Co
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Whiteman
</citetitle>,
114 F.
2d
86 (
2nd
3311 Cir.
1940). See also Randal C. Picker,
<quote>From Edison to the Broadcast
3312 Flag: Mechanisms of Consent and Refusal and the Propertization of
3313 Copyright,
</quote> <citetitle>University of Chicago Law Review
</citetitle> 70 (
2003):
281.
3314 <indexterm><primary>Hand, Learned
</primary></indexterm>
3315 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.
</primary></indexterm>
3317 As I described above, the law gives the composer (or copyright holder)
3318 an exclusive right to public performances of his work. The radio
3319 station thus owes the composer money for that performance.
3322 But when the radio station plays a record, it is not only performing a
3323 copy of the
<emphasis>composer's
</emphasis> work. The radio station is
3324 also performing a copy of the
<emphasis>recording artist's
</emphasis>
3325 work. It's one thing to have
<quote>Happy Birthday
</quote> sung on the radio by the
3326 local children's choir; it's quite another to have it sung by the
3327 Rolling Stones or Lyle Lovett. The recording artist is adding to the
3328 value of the composition performed on the radio station. And if the
3329 law were perfectly consistent, the radio station would have to pay the
3330 recording artist for his work, just as it pays the composer of the
3332 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle
</primary></indexterm>
3334 <!-- PAGE BREAK 72 -->
3337 But it doesn't. Under the law governing radio performances, the radio
3338 station does not have to pay the recording artist. The radio station
3339 need only pay the composer. The radio station thus gets a bit of
3340 something for nothing. It gets to perform the recording artist's work
3341 for free, even if it must pay the composer something for the privilege
3342 of playing the song.
3344 <indexterm id='idxmadonna' class='startofrange'
><primary>Madonna
</primary></indexterm>
3346 This difference can be huge. Imagine you compose a piece of music.
3347 Imagine it is your first. You own the exclusive right to authorize
3348 public performances of that music. So if Madonna wants to sing your
3349 song in public, she has to get your permission.
3352 Imagine she does sing your song, and imagine she likes it a lot. She
3353 then decides to make a recording of your song, and it becomes a top
3354 hit. Under our law, every time a radio station plays your song, you
3355 get some money. But Madonna gets nothing, save the indirect effect on
3356 the sale of her CDs. The public performance of her recording is not a
3357 <quote>protected
</quote> right. The radio station thus gets to
3358 <emphasis>pirate
</emphasis> the value of Madonna's work without paying
3361 <indexterm startref='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto' class='endofrange'
/>
3362 <indexterm startref='idxmadonna' class='endofrange'
/>
3364 No doubt, one might argue that, on balance, the recording artists
3365 benefit. On average, the promotion they get is worth more than the
3366 performance rights they give up. Maybe. But even if so, the law
3367 ordinarily gives the creator the right to make this choice. By making
3368 the choice for him or her, the law gives the radio station the right
3369 to take something for nothing.
3371 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryradiobroadcastand' class='endofrange'
/>
3373 <section id=
"cabletv">
3374 <title>Cable TV
</title>
3375 <indexterm id='idxcabletelevision' class='startofrange'
><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
3377 Cable TV was also born of a kind of piracy.
3380 When cable entrepreneurs first started wiring communities with cable
3381 television in
1948, most refused to pay broadcasters for the content
3382 that they echoed to their customers. Even when the cable companies
3383 started selling access to television broadcasts, they refused to pay
3384 <!-- PAGE BREAK 73 -->
3385 for what they sold. Cable companies were thus Napsterizing
3386 broadcasters' content, but more egregiously than anything Napster ever
3387 did
— Napster never charged for the content it enabled others to
3390 <indexterm><primary>Anello, Douglas
</primary></indexterm>
3391 <indexterm><primary>Burdick, Quentin
</primary></indexterm>
3392 <indexterm><primary>Hyde, Rosel H.
</primary></indexterm>
3394 Broadcasters and copyright owners were quick to attack this theft.
3395 Rosel Hyde, chairman of the FCC, viewed the practice as a kind of
3396 <quote>unfair and potentially destructive competition.
</quote><footnote><para>
3398 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV: Hearing on S.
1006 Before the
3399 Subcommittee on Patents, Trademarks, and Copyrights of the Senate
3400 Committee on the Judiciary,
89th Cong.,
2nd sess.,
78 (
1966)
3401 (statement of Rosel H. Hyde, chairman of the Federal Communications
3403 <indexterm><primary>Hyde, Rosel H.
</primary></indexterm>
3405 There may have been a
<quote>public interest
</quote> in spreading the reach of cable
3406 TV, but as Douglas Anello, general counsel to the National Association
3407 of Broadcasters, asked Senator Quentin Burdick during testimony,
<quote>Does public
3408 interest dictate that you use somebody else's property?
</quote><footnote><para>
3410 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
116 (statement of Douglas A. Anello,
3411 general counsel of the National Association of Broadcasters).
3413 As another broadcaster put it,
3417 The extraordinary thing about the CATV business is that it is the
3418 only business I know of where the product that is being sold is not
3419 paid for.
<footnote><para>
3421 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
126 (statement of Ernest W. Jennes,
3422 general counsel of the Association of Maximum Service Telecasters, Inc.).
3427 Again, the demand of the copyright holders seemed reasonable enough:
3431 All we are asking for is a very simple thing, that people who now
3432 take our property for nothing pay for it. We are trying to stop
3433 piracy and I don't think there is any lesser word to describe it. I
3434 think there are harsher words which would fit it.
<footnote><para>
3436 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
169 (joint statement of Arthur B.
3437 Krim, president of United Artists Corp., and John Sinn, president of
3438 United Artists Television, Inc.).
3442 <indexterm><primary>Heston, Charlton
</primary></indexterm>
3444 These were
<quote>free-ride[rs],
</quote> Screen Actor's Guild president Charlton
3445 Heston said, who were
<quote>depriving actors of
3446 compensation.
</quote><footnote><para>
3448 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
209 (statement of Charlton Heston,
3449 president of the Screen Actors Guild).
3450 <indexterm><primary>Heston, Charlton
</primary></indexterm>
3455 But again, there was another side to the debate. As Assistant Attorney
3456 General Edwin Zimmerman put it,
3460 Our point here is that unlike the problem of whether you have any
3461 copyright protection at all, the problem here is whether copyright
3462 holders who are already compensated, who already have a monopoly,
3463 should be permitted to extend that monopoly.
… The
3465 <!-- PAGE BREAK 74 -->
3466 question here is how much compensation they should have and
3467 how far back they should carry their right to compensation.
<footnote><para>
3469 Copyright Law Revision
—CATV,
216 (statement of Edwin M.
3470 Zimmerman, acting assistant attorney general).
3471 <indexterm><primary>Zimmerman, Edwin
</primary></indexterm>
3473 <indexterm><primary>Zimmerman, Edwin
</primary></indexterm>
3477 Copyright owners took the cable companies to court. Twice the Supreme
3478 Court held that the cable companies owed the copyright owners nothing.
3481 It took Congress almost thirty years before it resolved the question
3482 of whether cable companies had to pay for the content they
<quote>pirated.
</quote>
3483 In the end, Congress resolved this question in the same way that it
3484 resolved the question about record players and player pianos. Yes,
3485 cable companies would have to pay for the content that they broadcast;
3486 but the price they would have to pay was not set by the copyright
3487 owner. The price was set by law, so that the broadcasters couldn't
3488 exercise veto power over the emerging technologies of cable. Cable
3489 companies thus built their empire in part upon a
<quote>piracy
</quote> of the value
3490 created by broadcasters' content.
3492 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyindevelopmentofcontentindustry' class='endofrange'
/>
3493 <indexterm startref='idxcabletelevision' class='endofrange'
/>
3495 <emphasis role='strong'
>These separate stories
</emphasis> sing a
3496 common theme. If
<quote>piracy
</quote> means using value from someone
3497 else's creative property without permission from that creator
—as
3498 it is increasingly described today
<footnote><para>
3500 See, for example, National Music Publisher's Association,
<citetitle>The Engine
3501 of Free Expression: Copyright on the Internet
—The Myth of Free
3502 Information
</citetitle>, available at
3503 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
13</ulink>.
<quote>The
3504 threat of piracy
—the use of someone else's creative work without
3505 permission or compensation
—has grown with the Internet.
</quote>
3507 — then
<emphasis>every
</emphasis> industry affected by copyright
3508 today is the product and beneficiary of a certain kind of
3509 piracy. Film, records, radio, cable TV.
… The list is long and
3510 could well be expanded. Every generation welcomes the pirates from the
3511 last. Every generation
—until now.
3513 <!-- PAGE BREAK 75 -->
3516 <chapter label=
"5" id=
"piracy">
3517 <title>CHAPTER FIVE:
<quote>Piracy
</quote></title>
3519 <emphasis role='strong'
>There is piracy
</emphasis> of copyrighted
3520 material. Lots of it. This piracy comes in many forms. The most
3521 significant is commercial piracy, the unauthorized taking of other
3522 people's content within a commercial context. Despite the many
3523 justifications that are offered in its defense, this taking is
3524 wrong. No one should condone it, and the law should stop it.
3527 But as well as copy-shop piracy, there is another kind of
<quote>taking
</quote>
3528 that is more directly related to the Internet. That taking, too, seems
3529 wrong to many, and it is wrong much of the time. Before we paint this
3530 taking
<quote>piracy,
</quote> however, we should understand its nature a bit more.
3531 For the harm of this taking is significantly more ambiguous than
3532 outright copying, and the law should account for that ambiguity, as it
3533 has so often done in the past.
3534 <!-- PAGE BREAK 76 -->
3536 <section id=
"piracy-i">
3537 <title>Piracy I
</title>
3538 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in
</primary></indexterm>
3539 <indexterm id='idxcdsforeign' class='startofrange'
><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>foreign piracy of
</secondary></indexterm>
3541 All across the world, but especially in Asia and Eastern Europe, there
3542 are businesses that do nothing but take others people's copyrighted
3543 content, copy it, and sell it
—all without the permission of a copyright
3544 owner. The recording industry estimates that it loses about $
4.6 billion
3545 every year to physical piracy
<footnote><para>
3547 See IFPI (International Federation of the Phonographic Industry),
<citetitle>The
3548 Recording Industry Commercial Piracy Report
2003</citetitle>, July
2003, available
3549 at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
14</ulink>. See
3550 also Ben Hunt,
<quote>Companies Warned on Music Piracy Risk,
</quote> <citetitle>Financial
3551 Times
</citetitle>,
14 February
2003,
11.
3553 (that works out to one in three CDs sold worldwide). The MPAA
3554 estimates that it loses $
3 billion annually worldwide to piracy.
3557 This is piracy plain and simple. Nothing in the argument of this
3558 book, nor in the argument that most people make when talking about
3559 the subject of this book, should draw into doubt this simple point:
3560 This piracy is wrong.
3563 Which is not to say that excuses and justifications couldn't be made
3564 for it. We could, for example, remind ourselves that for the first one
3565 hundred years of the American Republic, America did not honor foreign
3566 copyrights. We were born, in this sense, a pirate nation. It might
3567 therefore seem hypocritical for us to insist so strongly that other
3568 developing nations treat as wrong what we, for the first hundred years
3569 of our existence, treated as right.
3572 That excuse isn't terribly strong. Technically, our law did not ban
3573 the taking of foreign works. It explicitly limited itself to American
3574 works. Thus the American publishers who published foreign works
3575 without the permission of foreign authors were not violating any rule.
3576 The copy shops in Asia, by contrast, are violating Asian law. Asian
3577 law does protect foreign copyrights, and the actions of the copy shops
3578 violate that law. So the wrong of piracy that they engage in is not
3579 just a moral wrong, but a legal wrong, and not just an internationally
3580 legal wrong, but a locally legal wrong as well.
3583 True, these local rules have, in effect, been imposed upon these
3584 countries. No country can be part of the world economy and choose
3585 <!-- PAGE BREAK 77-->
3586 not to protect copyright internationally. We may have been born a
3587 pirate nation, but we will not allow any other nation to have a
3591 If a country is to be treated as a sovereign, however, then its laws are
3592 its laws regardless of their source. The international law under which
3593 these nations live gives them some opportunities to escape the burden
3594 of intellectual property law.
<footnote><para>
3596 See Peter Drahos with John Braithwaite, Information Feudalism:
3597 <citetitle>Who Owns the Knowledge Economy?
</citetitle> (New York: The
3598 New Press,
2003),
10–13,
209. The Trade-Related Aspects of
3599 Intellectual Property Rights (TRIPS) agreement obligates member
3600 nations to create administrative and enforcement mechanisms for
3601 intellectual property rights, a costly proposition for developing
3602 countries. Additionally, patent rights may lead to higher prices for
3603 staple industries such as agriculture. Critics of TRIPS question the
3604 disparity between burdens imposed upon developing countries and
3605 benefits conferred to industrialized nations. TRIPS does permit
3606 governments to use patents for public, noncommercial uses without
3607 first obtaining the patent holder's permission. Developing nations may
3608 be able to use this to gain the benefits of foreign patents at lower
3609 prices. This is a promising strategy for developing nations within the
3611 <indexterm><primary>agricultural patents
</primary></indexterm>
3612 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
3613 </para></footnote> In my view, more developing nations should take
3614 advantage of that opportunity, but when they don't, then their laws
3615 should be respected. And under the laws of these nations, this piracy
3618 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in
</primary></indexterm>
3620 Alternatively, we could try to excuse this piracy by noting that in
3621 any case, it does no harm to the industry. The Chinese who get access
3622 to American CDs at
50 cents a copy are not people who would have
3623 bought those American CDs at $
15 a copy. So no one really has any
3624 less money than they otherwise would have had.
<footnote><para>
3626 For an analysis of the economic impact of copying technology, see Stan
3627 Liebowitz,
<citetitle>Rethinking the Network Economy
</citetitle> (New York: Amacom,
2002),
3628 144–90.
<quote>In some instances
… the impact of piracy on the
3629 copyright holder's ability to appropriate the value of the work will
3630 be negligible. One obvious instance is the case where the individual
3631 engaging in pirating would not have purchased an original even if
3632 pirating were not an option.
</quote> Ibid.,
149.
3633 <indexterm><primary>Liebowitz, Stan
</primary></indexterm>
3637 This is often true (though I have friends who have purchased many
3638 thousands of pirated DVDs who certainly have enough money to pay
3639 for the content they have taken), and it does mitigate to some degree
3640 the harm caused by such taking. Extremists in this debate love to say,
3641 <quote>You wouldn't go into Barnes
& Noble and take a book off of the shelf
3642 without paying; why should it be any different with on-line music?
</quote>
3643 The difference is, of course, that when you take a book from Barnes
&
3644 Noble, it has one less book to sell. By contrast, when you take an MP3
3645 from a computer network, there is not one less CD that can be sold.
3646 The physics of piracy of the intangible are different from the physics of
3647 piracy of the tangible.
3649 <indexterm startref='idxcdsforeign' class='endofrange'
/>
3651 This argument is still very weak. However, although copyright is a
3652 property right of a very special sort, it
<emphasis>is
</emphasis> a
3653 property right. Like all property rights, the copyright gives the
3654 owner the right to decide the terms under which content is shared. If
3655 the copyright owner doesn't want to sell, she doesn't have to. There
3656 are exceptions: important statutory licenses that apply to copyrighted
3657 content regardless of the wish of the copyright owner. Those licenses
3658 give people the right to
<quote>take
</quote> copyrighted content whether or not the
3659 copyright owner wants to sell. But
3661 <!-- PAGE BREAK 78 -->
3662 where the law does not give people the right to take content, it is
3663 wrong to take that content even if the wrong does no harm. If we have
3664 a property system, and that system is properly balanced to the
3665 technology of a time, then it is wrong to take property without the
3666 permission of a property owner. That is exactly what
<quote>property
</quote> means.
3668 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in
</primary></indexterm>
3669 <indexterm><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>in Asia
</secondary></indexterm>
3670 <indexterm><primary>free software/open-source software (FS/OSS)
</primary></indexterm>
3671 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
3672 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
3673 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>competitive strategies of
</secondary></indexterm>
3674 <indexterm><primary>Windows
</primary></indexterm>
3675 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>international software piracy of
</secondary></indexterm>
3676 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>Windows operating system of
</secondary></indexterm>
3678 Finally, we could try to excuse this piracy with the argument that the
3679 piracy actually helps the copyright owner. When the Chinese
<quote>steal
</quote>
3680 Windows, that makes the Chinese dependent on Microsoft. Microsoft
3681 loses the value of the software that was taken. But it gains users who
3682 are used to life in the Microsoft world. Over time, as the nation
3683 grows more wealthy, more and more people will buy software rather than
3684 steal it. And hence over time, because that buying will benefit
3685 Microsoft, Microsoft benefits from the piracy. If instead of pirating
3686 Microsoft Windows, the Chinese used the free GNU/Linux operating
3687 system, then these Chinese users would not eventually be buying
3688 Microsoft. Without piracy, then, Microsoft would lose.
3690 <indexterm><primary>law
</primary><secondary>databases of case reports in
</secondary></indexterm>
3692 This argument, too, is somewhat true. The addiction strategy is a good
3693 one. Many businesses practice it. Some thrive because of it. Law
3694 students, for example, are given free access to the two largest legal
3695 databases. The companies marketing both hope the students will become
3696 so used to their service that they will want to use it and not the
3697 other when they become lawyers (and must pay high subscription fees).
3699 <indexterm><primary>Netscape
</primary></indexterm>
3700 <indexterm><primary>Internet Explorer
</primary></indexterm>
3701 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
3702 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
3704 Still, the argument is not terribly persuasive. We don't give the
3705 alcoholic a defense when he steals his first beer, merely because that
3706 will make it more likely that he will buy the next three. Instead, we
3707 ordinarily allow businesses to decide for themselves when it is best
3708 to give their product away. If Microsoft fears the competition of
3709 GNU/Linux, then Microsoft can give its product away, as it did, for
3710 example, with Internet Explorer to fight Netscape. A property right
3711 means giving the property owner the right to say who gets access to
3712 what
—at least ordinarily. And if the law properly balances the
3713 rights of the copyright owner with the rights of access, then
3714 violating the law is still wrong.
3717 <!-- PAGE BREAK 79 -->
3718 Thus, while I understand the pull of these justifications for piracy,
3719 and I certainly see the motivation, in my view, in the end, these efforts
3720 at justifying commercial piracy simply don't cut it. This kind of piracy
3721 is rampant and just plain wrong. It doesn't transform the content it
3722 steals; it doesn't transform the market it competes in. It merely gives
3723 someone access to something that the law says he should not have.
3724 Nothing has changed to draw that law into doubt. This form of piracy
3728 But as the examples from the four chapters that introduced this part
3729 suggest, even if some piracy is plainly wrong, not all
<quote>piracy
</quote> is. Or
3730 at least, not all
<quote>piracy
</quote> is wrong if that term is understood in the
3731 way it is increasingly used today. Many kinds of
<quote>piracy
</quote> are useful
3732 and productive, to produce either new content or new ways of doing
3733 business. Neither our tradition nor any tradition has ever banned all
3734 <quote>piracy
</quote> in that sense of the term.
3737 This doesn't mean that there are no questions raised by the latest
3738 piracy concern, peer-to-peer file sharing. But it does mean that we
3739 need to understand the harm in peer-to-peer sharing a bit more before
3740 we condemn it to the gallows with the charge of piracy.
3743 For (
1) like the original Hollywood, p2p sharing escapes an overly
3744 controlling industry; and (
2) like the original recording industry, it
3745 simply exploits a new way to distribute content; but (
3) unlike cable
3746 TV, no one is selling the content that is shared on p2p services.
3749 These differences distinguish p2p sharing from true piracy. They
3750 should push us to find a way to protect artists while enabling this
3754 <section id=
"piracy-ii">
3755 <title>Piracy II
</title>
3757 The key to the
<quote>piracy
</quote> that the law aims to quash is a use that
<quote>rob[s]
3758 the author of [his] profit.
</quote><footnote><para>
3760 <citetitle>Bach
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Longman
</citetitle>,
98 Eng. Rep.
1274 (
1777).
3762 This means we must determine whether
3763 and how much p2p sharing harms before we know how strongly the
3764 <!-- PAGE BREAK 80 -->
3765 law should seek to either prevent it or find an alternative to assure the
3766 author of his profit.
3768 <indexterm><primary>innovation
</primary></indexterm>
3769 <indexterm><primary>Fanning, Shawn
</primary></indexterm>
3771 Peer-to-peer sharing was made famous by Napster. But the inventors of
3772 the Napster technology had not made any major technological
3773 innovations. Like every great advance in innovation on the Internet
3774 (and, arguably, off the Internet as well
<footnote><para>
3776 <indexterm><primary>innovation
</primary></indexterm>
3777 See Clayton M. Christensen,
<citetitle>The Innovator's Dilemma: The Revolutionary
3778 National Bestseller That Changed the Way We Do Business
</citetitle> (New York:
3779 HarperBusiness,
2000). Professor Christensen examines why companies
3780 that give rise to and dominate a product area are frequently unable to
3781 come up with the most creative, paradigm-shifting uses for their own
3782 products. This job usually falls to outside innovators, who
3783 reassemble existing technology in inventive ways. For a discussion of
3784 Christensen's ideas, see Lawrence Lessig,
<citetitle>Future
</citetitle>,
89–92,
139.
3786 <indexterm><primary>Christensen, Clayton M.
</primary></indexterm>
3787 </para></footnote>), Shawn Fanning and crew had simply
3788 put together components that had been developed independently.
3791 The result was spontaneous combustion. Launched in July
1999,
3792 Napster amassed over
10 million users within nine months. After
3793 eighteen months, there were close to
80 million registered users of the
3794 system.
<footnote><para>
3796 See Carolyn Lochhead,
<quote>Silicon Valley Dream, Hollywood Nightmare,
</quote> <citetitle>San
3797 Francisco Chronicle
</citetitle>,
24 September
2002, A1;
<quote>Rock 'n' Roll Suicide,
</quote>
3798 <citetitle>New Scientist
</citetitle>,
6 July
2002,
42; Benny Evangelista,
<quote>Napster Names CEO,
3799 Secures New Financing,
</quote> <citetitle>San Francisco Chronicle
</citetitle>,
23 May
2003, C1;
3800 <quote>Napster's Wake-Up Call,
</quote> <citetitle>Economist
</citetitle>,
24 June
2000,
23; John Naughton,
3801 <quote>Hollywood at War with the Internet
</quote> (London)
<citetitle>Times
</citetitle>,
26 July
2002,
18.
3803 Courts quickly shut Napster down, but other services emerged
3804 to take its place. (Kazaa is currently the most popular p2p service. It
3805 boasts over
100 million members.) These services' systems are different
3806 architecturally, though not very different in function: Each enables
3807 users to make content available to any number of other users. With a
3808 p2p system, you can share your favorite songs with your best friend
—
3809 or your
20,
000 best friends.
3812 According to a number of estimates, a huge proportion of Americans
3813 have tasted file-sharing technology. A study by Ipsos-Insight in
3814 September
2002 estimated that
60 million Americans had downloaded
3815 music
—28 percent of Americans older than
12.
<footnote><para>
3818 See Ipsos-Insight,
<citetitle>TEMPO: Keeping Pace with Online Music Distribution
</citetitle>
3819 (September
2002), reporting that
28 percent of Americans aged twelve
3820 and older have downloaded music off of the Internet and
30 percent have
3821 listened to digital music files stored on their computers.
3823 A survey by the NPD group quoted in
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>
3824 estimated that
43 million citizens used file-sharing networks to
3825 exchange content in May
2003.
<footnote><para>
3827 Amy Harmon,
<quote>Industry Offers a Carrot in Online Music Fight,
</quote> <citetitle>New
3828 York Times
</citetitle>,
6 June
2003, A1.
3830 The vast majority of these are not kids. Whatever the actual figure, a
3831 massive quantity of content is being
<quote>taken
</quote> on these networks. The
3832 ease and inexpensiveness of file-sharing networks have inspired
3833 millions to enjoy music in a way that they hadn't before.
3836 Some of this enjoying involves copyright infringement. Some of it does
3837 not. And even among the part that is technically copyright
3838 infringement, calculating the actual harm to copyright owners is more
3839 complicated than one might think. So consider
—a bit more
3840 carefully than the polarized voices around this debate usually
3841 do
—the kinds of sharing that file sharing enables, and the kinds
3845 <!-- PAGE BREAK 81 -->
3846 File sharers share different kinds of content. We can divide these
3847 different kinds into four types.
3849 <orderedlist numeration=
"upperalpha">
3851 <indexterm><primary>Madonna
</primary></indexterm>
3854 There are some who use sharing networks as substitutes for purchasing
3855 content. Thus, when a new Madonna CD is released, rather than buying
3856 the CD, these users simply take it. We might quibble about whether
3857 everyone who takes it would actually have bought it if sharing didn't
3858 make it available for free. Most probably wouldn't have, but clearly
3859 there are some who would. The latter are the target of category A:
3860 users who download instead of purchasing.
3864 There are some who use sharing networks to sample music before
3865 purchasing it. Thus, a friend sends another friend an MP3 of an artist
3866 he's not heard of. The other friend then buys CDs by that artist. This
3867 is a kind of targeted advertising, quite likely to succeed. If the
3868 friend recommending the album gains nothing from a bad recommendation,
3869 then one could expect that the recommendations will actually be quite
3870 good. The net effect of this sharing could increase the quantity of
3875 There are many who use sharing networks to get access to copyrighted
3876 content that is no longer sold or that they would not have purchased
3877 because the transaction costs off the Net are too high. This use of
3878 sharing networks is among the most rewarding for many. Songs that were
3879 part of your childhood but have long vanished from the marketplace
3880 magically appear again on the network. (One friend told me that when
3881 she discovered Napster, she spent a solid weekend
<quote>recalling
</quote> old
3882 songs. She was astonished at the range and mix of content that was
3883 available.) For content not sold, this is still technically a
3884 violation of copyright, though because the copyright owner is not
3885 selling the content anymore, the economic harm is zero
—the same
3886 harm that occurs when I sell my collection of
1960s
45-rpm records to
3890 <!-- PAGE BREAK 82 -->
3892 Finally, there are many who use sharing networks to get access
3893 to content that is not copyrighted or that the copyright owner
3898 How do these different types of sharing balance out?
3901 Let's start with some simple but important points. From the
3902 perspective of the law, only type D sharing is clearly legal. From the
3903 perspective of economics, only type A sharing is clearly
3904 harmful.
<footnote><para>
3906 See Liebowitz,
<citetitle>Rethinking the Network Economy
</citetitle>,
148–49.
3907 <indexterm><primary>Liebowitz, Stan
</primary></indexterm>
3909 Type B sharing is illegal but plainly beneficial. Type C sharing is
3910 illegal, yet good for society (since more exposure to music is good)
3911 and harmless to the artist (since the work is not otherwise
3912 available). So how sharing matters on balance is a hard question to
3913 answer
—and certainly much more difficult than the current
3914 rhetoric around the issue suggests.
3917 Whether on balance sharing is harmful depends importantly on how
3918 harmful type A sharing is. Just as Edison complained about Hollywood,
3919 composers complained about piano rolls, recording artists complained
3920 about radio, and broadcasters complained about cable TV, the music
3921 industry complains that type A sharing is a kind of
<quote>theft
</quote> that is
3922 <quote>devastating
</quote> the industry.
3924 <indexterm id='idxcassette' class='startofrange'
><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
3926 While the numbers do suggest that sharing is harmful, how
3927 harmful is harder to reckon. It has long been the recording industry's
3928 practice to blame technology for any drop in sales. The history of
3929 cassette recording is a good example. As a study by Cap Gemini Ernst
3930 & Young put it,
<quote>Rather than exploiting this new, popular
3931 technology, the labels fought it.
</quote><footnote><para>
3933 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording
</primary></indexterm>
3934 See Cap Gemini Ernst
& Young,
<citetitle>Technology Evolution and the
3935 Music Industry's Business Model Crisis
</citetitle> (
2003),
3. This report
3936 describes the music industry's effort to stigmatize the budding
3937 practice of cassette taping in the
1970s, including an advertising
3938 campaign featuring a cassette-shape skull and the caption
<quote>Home taping
3939 is killing music.
</quote> At the time digital audio tape became a threat,
3940 the Office of Technical Assessment conducted a survey of consumer
3941 behavior. In
1988,
40 percent of consumers older than ten had taped
3942 music to a cassette format. U.S. Congress, Office of Technology
3943 Assessment,
<citetitle>Copyright and Home Copying: Technology Challenges the Law
</citetitle>,
3944 OTA-CIT-
422 (Washington, D.C.: U.S. Government Printing Office,
3945 October
1989),
145–56.
</para></footnote>
3946 The labels claimed that every album taped was an album unsold, and
3947 when record sales fell by
11.4 percent in
1981, the industry claimed
3948 that its point was proved. Technology was the problem, and banning or
3949 regulating technology was the answer.
3951 <indexterm><primary>MTV
</primary></indexterm>
3953 Yet soon thereafter, and before Congress was given an opportunity
3954 to enact regulation, MTV was launched, and the industry had a record
3955 turnaround.
<quote>In the end,
</quote> Cap Gemini concludes,
<quote>the `crisis'
… was
3956 not the fault of the tapers
—who did not [stop after MTV came into
3957 <!-- PAGE BREAK 83 -->
3958 being]
—but had to a large extent resulted from stagnation in musical
3959 innovation at the major labels.
</quote><footnote><para>
3961 U.S. Congress,
<citetitle>Copyright and Home Copying
</citetitle>,
4.
3964 <indexterm startref='idxcassette' class='endofrange'
/>
3966 But just because the industry was wrong before does not mean it is
3967 wrong today. To evaluate the real threat that p2p sharing presents to
3968 the industry in particular, and society in general
—or at least
3969 the society that inherits the tradition that gave us the film
3970 industry, the record industry, the radio industry, cable TV, and the
3971 VCR
—the question is not simply whether type A sharing is
3972 harmful. The question is also
<emphasis>how
</emphasis> harmful type A
3973 sharing is, and how beneficial the other types of sharing are.
3976 We start to answer this question by focusing on the net harm, from the
3977 standpoint of the industry as a whole, that sharing networks cause.
3978 The
<quote>net harm
</quote> to the industry as a whole is the amount by which type
3979 A sharing exceeds type B. If the record companies sold more records
3980 through sampling than they lost through substitution, then sharing
3981 networks would actually benefit music companies on balance. They would
3982 therefore have little
<emphasis>static
</emphasis> reason to resist
3986 <indexterm id='idxcdssales' class='startofrange'
><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>sales levels of
</secondary></indexterm>
3988 Could that be true? Could the industry as a whole be gaining because
3989 of file sharing? Odd as that might sound, the data about CD sales
3990 actually suggest it might be close.
3993 In
2002, the RIAA reported that CD sales had fallen by
8.9 percent,
3994 from
882 million to
803 million units; revenues fell
6.7
3995 percent.
<footnote><para>
3997 See Recording Industry Association of America,
<citetitle>2002 Yearend Statistics
</citetitle>,
3999 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
15</ulink>. A later
4000 report indicates even greater losses. See Recording Industry
4001 Association of America,
<citetitle>Some Facts About Music Piracy
</citetitle>,
25 June
2003,
4002 available at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
4003 #
16</ulink>:
<quote>In the past four years, unit shipments of recorded music
4004 have fallen by
26 percent from
1.16 billion units in to
860 million
4005 units in
2002 in the United States (based on units shipped). In terms
4006 of sales, revenues are down
14 percent, from $
14.6 billion in to $
12.6
4007 billion last year (based on U.S. dollar value of shipments). The music
4008 industry worldwide has gone from a $
39 billion industry in
2000 down
4009 to a $
32 billion industry in
2002 (based on U.S. dollar value of
4012 This confirms a trend over the past few years. The RIAA blames
4013 Internet piracy for the trend, though there are many other causes that
4014 could account for this drop. SoundScan, for example, reports a more
4015 than
20 percent drop in the number of CDs released since
1999. That no
4016 doubt accounts for some of the decrease in sales. Rising prices could
4017 account for at least some of the loss.
<quote>From
1999 to
2001, the average
4018 price of a CD rose
7.2 percent, from $
13.04 to $
14.19.
</quote><footnote>
4021 Jane Black,
<quote>Big Music's Broken Record,
</quote> BusinessWeek online,
13
4022 February
2003, available at
4023 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
17</ulink>.
4024 <indexterm><primary>Black, Jane
</primary></indexterm>
4027 Competition from other forms of media could also account for some of
4028 the decline. As Jane Black of
<citetitle>BusinessWeek
</citetitle> notes,
<quote>The
4029 soundtrack to the film
<citetitle>High Fidelity
</citetitle> has a list price of
4030 $
18.98. You could get the whole movie [on DVD] for
4031 $
19.99.
</quote><footnote><para>
4038 <!-- PAGE BREAK 84 -->
4039 But let's assume the RIAA is right, and all of the decline in CD sales
4040 is because of Internet sharing. Here's the rub: In the same period
4041 that the RIAA estimates that
803 million CDs were sold, the RIAA
4042 estimates that
2.1 billion CDs were downloaded for free. Thus,
4043 although
2.6 times the total number of CDs sold were downloaded for
4044 free, sales revenue fell by just
6.7 percent.
4047 There are too many different things happening at the same time to
4048 explain these numbers definitively, but one conclusion is unavoidable:
4049 The recording industry constantly asks,
<quote>What's the difference between
4050 downloading a song and stealing a CD?
</quote>—but their own numbers
4051 reveal the difference. If I steal a CD, then there is one less CD to
4052 sell. Every taking is a lost sale. But on the basis of the numbers the
4053 RIAA provides, it is absolutely clear that the same is not true of
4054 downloads. If every download were a lost sale
—if every use of
4055 Kazaa
<quote>rob[bed] the author of [his] profit
</quote>—then the industry
4056 would have suffered a
100 percent drop in sales last year, not a
7
4057 percent drop. If
2.6 times the number of CDs sold were downloaded for
4058 free, and yet sales revenue dropped by just
6.7 percent, then there is
4059 a huge difference between
<quote>downloading a song and stealing a CD.
</quote>
4061 <indexterm startref='idxcdssales' class='endofrange'
/>
4063 These are the harms
—alleged and perhaps exaggerated but, let's
4064 assume, real. What of the benefits? File sharing may impose costs on
4065 the recording industry. What value does it produce in addition to
4069 One benefit is type C sharing
—making available content that
4070 is technically still under copyright but is no longer commercially
4071 available. This is not a small category of content. There are
4072 millions of tracks that are no longer commercially
4073 available.
<footnote><para>
4075 By one estimate,
75 percent of the music released by the major labels
4076 is no longer in print. See Online Entertainment and Copyright
4077 Law
—Coming Soon to a Digital Device Near You: Hearing Before the
4078 Senate Committee on the Judiciary,
107th Cong.,
1st sess. (
3 April
4079 2001) (prepared statement of the Future of Music Coalition), available
4080 at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
18</ulink>.
4082 And while it's conceivable that some of this content is not available
4083 because the artist producing the content doesn't want it to be made
4084 available, the vast majority of it is unavailable solely because the
4085 publisher or the distributor has decided it no longer makes economic
4086 sense
<emphasis>to the company
</emphasis> to make it available.
4088 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>resales of
</secondary></indexterm>
4090 In real space
—long before the Internet
—the market had a simple
4091 <!-- PAGE BREAK 85 -->
4092 response to this problem: used book and record stores. There are
4093 thousands of used book and used record stores in America
4094 today.
<footnote><para>
4096 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>resales of
</secondary></indexterm>
4097 While there are not good estimates of the number of used record stores
4098 in existence, in
2002, there were
7,
198 used book dealers in the
4099 United States, an increase of
20 percent since
1993. See Book Hunter
4100 Press,
<citetitle>The Quiet Revolution: The Expansion of the Used Book
4101 Market
</citetitle> (
2002), available at
4102 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
19</ulink>. Used
4103 records accounted for $
260 million in sales in
2002. See National
4104 Association of Recording Merchandisers,
<quote>2002 Annual Survey
4105 Results,
</quote> available at
4106 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
20</ulink>.
4108 These stores buy content from owners, then sell the content they
4109 buy. And under American copyright law, when they buy and sell this
4110 content,
<emphasis>even if the content is still under
4111 copyright
</emphasis>, the copyright owner doesn't get a dime. Used
4112 book and record stores are commercial entities; their owners make
4113 money from the content they sell; but as with cable companies before
4114 statutory licensing, they don't have to pay the copyright owner for
4115 the content they sell.
4117 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
4118 <indexterm><primary>Bernstein, Leonard
</primary></indexterm>
4119 <indexterm id='idxinternetbookson' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>books on
</secondary></indexterm>
4121 Type C sharing, then, is very much like used book stores or used
4122 record stores. It is different, of course, because the person making
4123 the content available isn't making money from making the content
4124 available. It is also different, of course, because in real space,
4125 when I sell a record, I don't have it anymore, while in cyberspace,
4126 when someone shares my
1949 recording of Bernstein's
<quote>Two Love Songs,
</quote>
4127 I still have it. That difference would matter economically if the
4128 owner of the copyright were selling the record in competition to my
4129 sharing. But we're talking about the class of content that is not
4130 currently commercially available. The Internet is making it available,
4131 through cooperative sharing, without competing with the market.
4134 It may well be, all things considered, that it would be better if the
4135 copyright owner got something from this trade. But just because it may
4136 well be better, it doesn't follow that it would be good to ban used book
4137 stores. Or put differently, if you think that type C sharing should be
4138 stopped, do you think that libraries and used book stores should be
4141 <indexterm id='idxbooksfreeonline1' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>free on-line releases of
</secondary></indexterm>
4142 <indexterm><primary>Doctorow, Cory
</primary></indexterm>
4143 <indexterm><primary>Down and Out in the Magic Kingdom (Doctorow)
</primary></indexterm>
4145 Finally, and perhaps most importantly, file-sharing networks enable
4146 type D sharing to occur
—the sharing of content that copyright owners
4147 want to have shared or for which there is no continuing copyright. This
4148 sharing clearly benefits authors and society. Science fiction author
4149 Cory Doctorow, for example, released his first novel,
<citetitle>Down and Out in
4150 the Magic Kingdom
</citetitle>, both free on-line and in bookstores on the same
4152 <!-- PAGE BREAK 86 -->
4153 day. His (and his publisher's) thinking was that the on-line distribution
4154 would be a great advertisement for the
<quote>real
</quote> book. People would read
4155 part on-line, and then decide whether they liked the book or not. If
4156 they liked it, they would be more likely to buy it. Doctorow's content is
4157 type D content. If sharing networks enable his work to be spread, then
4158 both he and society are better off. (Actually, much better off: It is a
4161 <indexterm startref='idxbooksfreeonline1' class='endofrange'
/>
4163 Likewise for work in the public domain: This sharing benefits society
4164 with no legal harm to authors at all. If efforts to solve the problem
4165 of type A sharing destroy the opportunity for type D sharing, then we
4166 lose something important in order to protect type A content.
4169 The point throughout is this: While the recording industry
4170 understandably says,
<quote>This is how much we've lost,
</quote> we must also ask,
4171 <quote>How much has society gained from p2p sharing? What are the
4172 efficiencies? What is the content that otherwise would be
4173 unavailable?
</quote>
4175 <indexterm startref='idxinternetbookson' class='endofrange'
/>
4177 For unlike the piracy I described in the first section of this
4178 chapter, much of the
<quote>piracy
</quote> that file sharing enables is plainly
4179 legal and good. And like the piracy I described in chapter
4180 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"pirates"/>, much of
4181 this piracy is motivated by a new way of spreading content caused by
4182 changes in the technology of distribution. Thus, consistent with the
4183 tradition that gave us Hollywood, radio, the recording industry, and
4184 cable TV, the question we should be asking about file sharing is how
4185 best to preserve its benefits while minimizing (to the extent
4186 possible) the wrongful harm it causes artists. The question is one of
4187 balance. The law should seek that balance, and that balance will be
4188 found only with time.
4191 <quote>But isn't the war just a war against illegal sharing? Isn't the target
4192 just what you call type A sharing?
</quote>
4195 You would think. And we should hope. But so far, it is not. The
4197 of the war purportedly on type A sharing alone has been felt far
4198 beyond that one class of sharing. That much is obvious from the
4200 case itself. When Napster told the district court that it had
4202 a technology to block the transfer of
99.4 percent of identified
4203 <!-- PAGE BREAK 87 -->
4204 infringing material, the district court told counsel for Napster
99.4
4205 percent was not good enough. Napster had to push the infringements
4206 <quote>down to zero.
</quote><footnote><para>
4208 See Transcript of Proceedings, In Re: Napster Copyright Litigation at
34-
4209 35 (N.D. Cal.,
11 July
2001), nos. MDL-
00-
1369 MHP, C
99-
5183
4212 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
21</ulink>. For an
4213 account of the litigation and its toll on Napster, see Joseph Menn,
4214 <citetitle>All the Rave: The Rise and Fall of Shawn Fanning's Napster
</citetitle> (New
4215 York: Crown Business,
2003),
269–82.
4219 If
99.4 percent is not good enough, then this is a war on file-sharing
4220 technologies, not a war on copyright infringement. There is no way to
4221 assure that a p2p system is used
100 percent of the time in compliance
4222 with the law, any more than there is a way to assure that
100 percent of
4223 VCRs or
100 percent of Xerox machines or
100 percent of handguns
4224 are used in compliance with the law. Zero tolerance means zero p2p.
4225 The court's ruling means that we as a society must lose the benefits of
4226 p2p, even for the totally legal and beneficial uses they serve, simply to
4227 assure that there are zero copyright infringements caused by p2p.
4230 Zero tolerance has not been our history. It has not produced the
4231 content industry that we know today. The history of American law has
4232 been a process of balance. As new technologies changed the way content
4233 was distributed, the law adjusted, after some time, to the new
4234 technology. In this adjustment, the law sought to ensure the
4235 legitimate rights of creators while protecting innovation. Sometimes
4236 this has meant more rights for creators. Sometimes less.
4238 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
4239 <indexterm><primary>composers, copyright protections of
</primary></indexterm>
4240 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
4241 <indexterm id='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
4242 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on music recordings
</secondary></indexterm>
4243 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>statutory licenses in
</secondary></indexterm>
4244 <indexterm><primary>radio
</primary><secondary>music recordings played on
</secondary></indexterm>
4245 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in
</secondary></indexterm>
4246 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>copyright protections in
</secondary></indexterm>
4247 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>radio broadcast and
</secondary></indexterm>
4248 <indexterm><primary>statutory licenses
</primary></indexterm>
4249 <indexterm><primary>composer's rights vs. producers' rights in
</primary></indexterm>
4251 So, as we've seen, when
<quote>mechanical reproduction
</quote> threatened the
4252 interests of composers, Congress balanced the rights of composers
4253 against the interests of the recording industry. It granted rights to
4254 composers, but also to the recording artists: Composers were to be
4255 paid, but at a price set by Congress. But when radio started
4256 broadcasting the recordings made by these recording artists, and they
4257 complained to Congress that their
<quote>creative property
</quote> was not being
4258 respected (since the radio station did not have to pay them for the
4259 creativity it broadcast), Congress rejected their claim. An indirect
4262 <indexterm id='idxcabletv2' class='startofrange'
><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
4264 Cable TV followed the pattern of record albums. When the courts
4265 rejected the claim that cable broadcasters had to pay for the content
4266 they rebroadcast, Congress responded by giving broadcasters a right to
4267 compensation, but at a level set by the law. It likewise gave cable
4268 companies the right to the content, so long as they paid the statutory
4271 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusonrecordingindustry2' class='endofrange'
/>
4274 <!-- PAGE BREAK 88 -->
4275 This compromise, like the compromise affecting records and player
4276 pianos, served two important goals
—indeed, the two central goals
4277 of any copyright legislation. First, the law assured that new
4278 innovators would have the freedom to develop new ways to deliver
4279 content. Second, the law assured that copyright holders would be paid
4280 for the content that was distributed. One fear was that if Congress
4281 simply required cable TV to pay copyright holders whatever they
4282 demanded for their content, then copyright holders associated with
4283 broadcasters would use their power to stifle this new technology,
4284 cable. But if Congress had permitted cable to use broadcasters'
4285 content for free, then it would have unfairly subsidized cable. Thus
4286 Congress chose a path that would assure
4287 <emphasis>compensation
</emphasis> without giving the past
4288 (broadcasters) control over the future (cable).
4290 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonmusicrecordings2' class='endofrange'
/>
4291 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawstatutorylicensesin2' class='endofrange'
/>
4292 <indexterm startref='idxcabletv2' class='endofrange'
/>
4293 <indexterm id='idxbetamax' class='startofrange'
><primary>Betamax
</primary></indexterm>
4294 <indexterm id='idxcassettevcrs1' class='startofrange'
><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
4296 In the same year that Congress struck this balance, two major
4297 producers and distributors of film content filed a lawsuit against
4298 another technology, the video tape recorder (VTR, or as we refer to
4299 them today, VCRs) that Sony had produced, the Betamax. Disney's and
4300 Universal's claim against Sony was relatively simple: Sony produced a
4301 device, Disney and Universal claimed, that enabled consumers to engage
4302 in copyright infringement. Because the device that Sony built had a
4303 <quote>record
</quote> button, the device could be used to record copyrighted movies
4304 and shows. Sony was therefore benefiting from the copyright
4305 infringement of its customers. It should therefore, Disney and
4306 Universal claimed, be partially liable for that infringement.
4308 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws2' class='endofrange'
/>
4310 There was something to Disney's and Universal's claim. Sony did
4311 decide to design its machine to make it very simple to record television
4312 shows. It could have built the machine to block or inhibit any direct
4313 copying from a television broadcast. Or possibly, it could have built the
4314 machine to copy only if there were a special
<quote>copy me
</quote> signal on the
4315 line. It was clear that there were many television shows that did not
4316 grant anyone permission to copy. Indeed, if anyone had asked, no
4317 doubt the majority of shows would not have authorized copying. And
4318 <!-- PAGE BREAK 89 -->
4319 in the face of this obvious preference, Sony could have designed its
4320 system to minimize the opportunity for copyright infringement. It did
4321 not, and for that, Disney and Universal wanted to hold it responsible
4322 for the architecture it chose.
4324 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws3' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
4325 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on VCR technology
</secondary></indexterm>
4327 MPAA president Jack Valenti became the studios' most vocal
4328 champion. Valenti called VCRs
<quote>tapeworms.
</quote> He warned,
<quote>When there are
4329 20,
30,
40 million of these VCRs in the land, we will be invaded by
4330 millions of `tapeworms,' eating away at the very heart and essence of
4331 the most precious asset the copyright owner has, his
4332 copyright.
</quote><footnote><para>
4334 Copyright Infringements (Audio and Video Recorders): Hearing on
4335 S.
1758 Before the Senate Committee on the Judiciary,
97th Cong.,
1st
4336 and
2nd sess.,
459 (
1982) (testimony of Jack Valenti, president, Motion
4337 Picture Association of America, Inc.).
4339 <quote>One does not have to be trained in sophisticated marketing and
4340 creative judgment,
</quote> he told Congress,
<quote>to understand the devastation
4341 on the after-theater marketplace caused by the hundreds of millions of
4342 tapings that will adversely impact on the future of the creative
4343 community in this country. It is simply a question of basic economics
4344 and plain common sense.
</quote><footnote><para>
4346 Copyright Infringements (Audio and Video Recorders),
475.
4348 Indeed, as surveys would later show,
45
4349 percent of VCR owners had movie libraries of ten videos or more
<footnote><para>
4351 <citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Sony Corp. of America
</citetitle>,
480 F. Supp.
429,
4354 — a use the Court would later hold was not
<quote>fair.
</quote> By
4355 <quote>allowing VCR owners to copy freely by the means of an exemption from
4356 copyright infringement without creating a mechanism to compensate
4357 copyright owners,
</quote> Valenti testified, Congress would
<quote>take from the
4358 owners the very essence of their property: the exclusive right to
4359 control who may use their work, that is, who may copy it and thereby
4360 profit from its reproduction.
</quote><footnote><para>
4362 Copyright Infringements (Audio and Video Recorders),
485 (testimony
4366 <indexterm startref='idxbetamax' class='endofrange'
/>
4368 It took eight years for this case to be resolved by the Supreme
4369 Court. In the interim, the Ninth Circuit Court of Appeals, which
4370 includes Hollywood in its jurisdiction
—leading Judge Alex
4371 Kozinski, who sits on that court, refers to it as the
<quote>Hollywood
4372 Circuit
</quote>—held that Sony would be liable for the copyright
4373 infringement made possible by its machines. Under the Ninth Circuit's
4374 rule, this totally familiar technology
—which Jack Valenti had
4375 called
<quote>the Boston Strangler of the American film industry
</quote> (worse
4376 yet, it was a
<emphasis>Japanese
</emphasis> Boston Strangler of the
4377 American film industry)
—was an illegal
4378 technology.
<footnote><para>
4380 <citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Sony Corp. of America
</citetitle>,
659 F.
2d
963 (
9th Cir.
4383 <indexterm><primary>Kozinski, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
4386 But the Supreme Court reversed the decision of the Ninth Circuit.
4388 <!-- PAGE BREAK 90 -->
4389 And in its reversal, the Court clearly articulated its understanding of
4390 when and whether courts should intervene in such disputes. As the
4395 Sound policy, as well as history, supports our consistent deference
4396 to Congress when major technological innovations alter the
4398 for copyrighted materials. Congress has the constitutional
4400 and the institutional ability to accommodate fully the
4401 varied permutations of competing interests that are inevitably
4403 by such new technology.
<footnote><para>
4405 <citetitle>Sony Corp. of America
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>.,
464 U.S.
417,
431 (
1984).
4409 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws3' class='endofrange'
/>
4411 Congress was asked to respond to the Supreme Court's decision. But as
4412 with the plea of recording artists about radio broadcasts, Congress
4413 ignored the request. Congress was convinced that American film got
4414 enough, this
<quote>taking
</quote> notwithstanding. If we put these cases
4415 together, a pattern is clear:
4418 <informaltable id=
"t1">
4419 <tgroup cols=
"4" align=
"left">
4423 <entry>WHOSE VALUE WAS
<quote>PIRATED
</quote></entry>
4424 <entry>RESPONSE OF THE COURTS
</entry>
4425 <entry>RESPONSE OF CONGRESS
</entry>
4430 <entry>Recordings
</entry>
4431 <entry>Composers
</entry>
4432 <entry>No protection
</entry>
4433 <entry>Statutory license
</entry>
4436 <entry>Radio
</entry>
4437 <entry>Recording artists
</entry>
4439 <entry>Nothing
</entry>
4442 <entry>Cable TV
</entry>
4443 <entry>Broadcasters
</entry>
4444 <entry>No protection
</entry>
4445 <entry>Statutory license
</entry>
4449 <entry>Film creators
</entry>
4450 <entry>No protection
</entry>
4451 <entry>Nothing
</entry>
4456 <indexterm startref='idxcassettevcrs1' class='endofrange'
/>
4458 In each case throughout our history, a new technology changed the
4459 way content was distributed.
<footnote><para>
4461 These are the most important instances in our history, but there are other
4462 cases as well. The technology of digital audio tape (DAT), for example,
4463 was regulated by Congress to minimize the risk of piracy. The remedy
4464 Congress imposed did burden DAT producers, by taxing tape sales and
4465 controlling the technology of DAT. See Audio Home Recording Act of
4466 1992 (Title
17 of the
<citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>), Pub. L. No.
102-
563,
106 Stat.
4467 4237, codified at
17 U.S.C. §
1001. Again, however, this regulation did not
4468 eliminate the opportunity for free riding in the sense I've described. See
4469 Lessig,
<citetitle>Future
</citetitle>,
71. See also Picker,
<quote>From Edison to the Broadcast Flag,
</quote>
4470 <citetitle>University of Chicago Law Review
</citetitle> 70 (
2003):
293–96.
4471 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag
</primary></indexterm>
4472 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.
</primary></indexterm>
4474 In each case, throughout our history,
4475 that change meant that someone got a
<quote>free ride
</quote> on someone else's
4479 In
<emphasis>none
</emphasis> of these cases did either the courts or
4480 Congress eliminate all free riding. In
<emphasis>none
</emphasis> of
4481 these cases did the courts or Congress insist that the law should
4482 assure that the copyright holder get all the value that his copyright
4483 created. In every case, the copyright owners complained of
<quote>piracy.
</quote>
4484 In every case, Congress acted to recognize some of the legitimacy in
4485 the behavior of the
<quote>pirates.
</quote> In each case, Congress allowed some new
4486 technology to benefit from content made before. It balanced the
4488 <!-- PAGE BREAK 91 -->
4490 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
4492 When you think across these examples, and the other examples that
4493 make up the first four chapters of this section, this balance makes
4494 sense. Was Walt Disney a pirate? Would doujinshi be better if creators
4495 had to ask permission? Should tools that enable others to capture and
4496 spread images as a way to cultivate or criticize our culture be better
4498 Is it really right that building a search engine should expose you
4499 to $
15 million in damages? Would it have been better if Edison had
4500 controlled film? Should every cover band have to hire a lawyer to get
4501 permission to record a song?
4503 <indexterm><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on balance of interests in copyright law
</secondary></indexterm>
4505 We could answer yes to each of these questions, but our tradition
4506 has answered no. In our tradition, as the Supreme Court has stated,
4507 copyright
<quote>has never accorded the copyright owner complete control
4508 over all possible uses of his work.
</quote><footnote><para>
4510 <citetitle>Sony Corp. of America
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>.,
464 U.S.
417,
4513 Instead, the particular uses that the law regulates have been defined
4514 by balancing the good that comes from granting an exclusive right
4515 against the burdens such an exclusive right creates. And this
4516 balancing has historically been done
<emphasis>after
</emphasis> a
4517 technology has matured, or settled into the mix of technologies that
4518 facilitate the distribution of content.
4521 We should be doing the same thing today. The technology of the
4522 Internet is changing quickly. The way people connect to the Internet
4523 (wires vs. wireless) is changing very quickly. No doubt the network
4524 should not become a tool for
<quote>stealing
</quote> from artists. But neither
4525 should the law become a tool to entrench one particular way in which
4526 artists (or more accurately, distributors) get paid. As I describe in
4527 some detail in the last chapter of this book, we should be securing
4528 income to artists while we allow the market to secure the most
4529 efficient way to promote and distribute content. This will require
4530 changes in the law, at least in the interim. These changes should be
4531 designed to balance the protection of the law against the strong
4532 public interest that innovation continue.
4536 <!-- PAGE BREAK 92 -->
4537 This is especially true when a new technology enables a vastly
4538 superior mode of distribution. And this p2p has done. P2p technologies
4539 can be ideally efficient in moving content across a widely diverse
4540 network. Left to develop, they could make the network vastly more
4541 efficient. Yet these
<quote>potential public benefits,
</quote> as John Schwartz
4542 writes in
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>,
<quote>could be delayed in the P2P
4543 fight.
</quote><footnote><para>
4545 John Schwartz,
<quote>New Economy: The Attack on Peer-to-Peer Software
4546 Echoes Past Efforts,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
22 September
2003, C3.
4550 <emphasis role='strong'
>Yet when anyone
</emphasis> begins to talk
4551 about
<quote>balance,
</quote> the copyright warriors raise a different
4552 argument.
<quote>All this hand waving about balance and
4553 incentives,
</quote> they say,
<quote>misses a fundamental point. Our
4554 content,
</quote> the warriors insist,
<quote>is our
4555 <emphasis>property
</emphasis>. Why should we wait for Congress to
4556 `rebalance' our property rights? Do you have to wait before calling
4557 the police when your car has been stolen? And why should Congress
4558 deliberate at all about the merits of this theft? Do we ask whether
4559 the car thief had a good use for the car before we arrest him?
</quote>
4562 <quote>It is
<emphasis>our property
</emphasis>,
</quote> the warriors
4563 insist.
<quote>And it should be protected just as any other property
4564 is protected.
</quote>
4566 <!-- PAGE BREAK 93 -->
4570 <part id=
"c-property">
4571 <title><quote>PROPERTY
</quote></title>
4575 <!-- PAGE BREAK 94 -->
4576 <emphasis role='strong'
>The copyright warriors
</emphasis> are right: A
4577 copyright is a kind of property. It can be owned and sold, and the law
4578 protects against its theft. Ordinarily, the copyright owner gets to
4579 hold out for any price he wants. Markets reckon the supply and demand
4580 that partially determine the price she can get.
4583 But in ordinary language, to call a copyright a
<quote>property
</quote> right is a
4584 bit misleading, for the property of copyright is an odd kind of
4585 property. Indeed, the very idea of property in any idea or any
4586 expression is very odd. I understand what I am taking when I take the
4587 picnic table you put in your backyard. I am taking a thing, the picnic
4588 table, and after I take it, you don't have it. But what am I taking
4589 when I take the good
<emphasis>idea
</emphasis> you had to put a picnic
4590 table in the backyard
—by, for example, going to Sears, buying a
4591 table, and putting it in my backyard? What is the thing I am taking
4594 <indexterm><primary>Jefferson, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
4596 The point is not just about the thingness of picnic tables versus
4597 ideas, though that's an important difference. The point instead is that
4598 <!-- PAGE BREAK 95 -->
4599 in the ordinary case
—indeed, in practically every case except for a
4601 range of exceptions
—ideas released to the world are free. I don't
4602 take anything from you when I copy the way you dress
—though I
4603 might seem weird if I did it every day, and especially weird if you are a
4604 woman. Instead, as Thomas Jefferson said (and as is especially true
4605 when I copy the way someone else dresses),
<quote>He who receives an idea
4606 from me, receives instruction himself without lessening mine; as he who
4607 lights his taper at mine, receives light without darkening me.
</quote><footnote><para>
4609 Letter from Thomas Jefferson to Isaac McPherson (
13 August
1813) in
4610 <citetitle>The Writings of Thomas Jefferson
</citetitle>, vol.
6 (Andrew A. Lipscomb and Albert
4611 Ellery Bergh, eds.,
1903),
330,
333–34.
4614 <indexterm><primary>property rights
</primary><secondary>intangibility of
</secondary></indexterm>
4616 The exceptions to free use are ideas and expressions within the
4617 reach of the law of patent and copyright, and a few other domains that
4618 I won't discuss here. Here the law says you can't take my idea or
4620 without my permission: The law turns the intangible into
4624 But how, and to what extent, and in what form
—the details,
4625 in other words
—matter. To get a good sense of how this practice
4626 of turning the intangible into property emerged, we need to place this
4627 <quote>property
</quote> in its proper context.
<footnote><para>
4629 As the legal realists taught American law, all property rights are
4630 intangible. A property right is simply a right that an individual has
4631 against the world to do or not do certain things that may or may not
4632 attach to a physical object. The right itself is intangible, even if
4633 the object to which it is (metaphorically) attached is tangible. See
4634 Adam Mossoff,
<quote>What Is Property? Putting the Pieces Back Together,
</quote>
4635 <citetitle>Arizona Law Review
</citetitle> 45 (
2003):
373,
429 n.
241.
4639 My strategy in doing this will be the same as my strategy in the
4640 preceding part. I offer four stories to help put the idea of
4641 <quote>copyright material is property
</quote> in context. Where did the idea come
4642 from? What are its limits? How does it function in practice? After
4643 these stories, the significance of this true
4644 statement
—<quote>copyright material is property
</quote>— will be a bit
4645 more clear, and its implications will be revealed as quite different
4646 from the implications that the copyright warriors would have us draw.
4650 <!-- PAGE BREAK 96 -->
4651 <chapter label=
"6" id=
"founders">
4652 <title>CHAPTER SIX: Founders
</title>
4653 <indexterm id='idxbooksenglishcopyrightlawdevelopedfor' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>English copyright law developed for
</secondary></indexterm>
4654 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawdevelopmentof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>development of
</secondary></indexterm>
4655 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawenglish' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>English
</secondary></indexterm>
4656 <indexterm id='idxenglandcopyrightlawsdevelopedin' class='startofrange'
><primary>England, copyright laws developed in
</primary></indexterm>
4657 <indexterm id='idxunitedkingdomhistoryofcopyrightlawin' class='startofrange'
><primary>United Kingdom
</primary><secondary>history of copyright law in
</secondary></indexterm>
4658 <indexterm><primary>Branagh, Kenneth
</primary></indexterm>
4659 <indexterm><primary>Henry V
</primary></indexterm>
4660 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
4661 <indexterm id='idxromeoandjulietshakespeare' class='startofrange'
><primary>Romeo and Juliet (Shakespeare)
</primary></indexterm>
4663 <emphasis role='strong'
>William Shakespeare
</emphasis> wrote
4664 <citetitle>Romeo and Juliet
</citetitle> in
1595. The play was first
4665 published in
1597. It was the eleventh major play that Shakespeare had
4666 written. He would continue to write plays through
1613, and the plays
4667 that he wrote have continued to define Anglo-American culture ever
4668 since. So deeply have the works of a sixteenth-century writer seeped
4669 into our culture that we often don't even recognize their source. I
4670 once overheard someone commenting on Kenneth Branagh's adaptation of
4671 Henry V:
<quote>I liked it, but Shakespeare is so full of
4674 <indexterm><primary>Conger
</primary></indexterm>
4675 <indexterm id='idxtonsonjacob' class='startofrange'
><primary>Tonson, Jacob
</primary></indexterm>
4677 In
1774, almost
180 years after
<citetitle>Romeo and Juliet
</citetitle> was written, the
4678 <quote>copy-right
</quote> for the work was still thought by many to be the exclusive
4679 right of a single London publisher, Jacob Tonson.
<footnote><para>
4681 <indexterm><primary>Jonson, Ben
</primary></indexterm>
4682 <indexterm><primary>Dryden, John
</primary></indexterm>
4683 Jacob Tonson is typically remembered for his associations with prominent
4684 eighteenth-century literary figures, especially John Dryden, and for his
4685 handsome
<quote>definitive editions
</quote> of classic works. In addition to
<citetitle>Romeo and
4686 Juliet
</citetitle>, he published an astonishing array of works that still remain at the
4687 heart of the English canon, including collected works of Shakespeare, Ben
4688 Jonson, John Milton, and John Dryden. See Keith Walker,
<quote>Jacob Tonson,
4689 Bookseller,
</quote> <citetitle>American Scholar
</citetitle> 61:
3 (
1992):
424–31.
4691 Tonson was the most prominent of a small group of publishers called
4692 the Conger
<footnote><para>
4694 Lyman Ray Patterson,
<citetitle>Copyright in Historical Perspective
</citetitle> (Nashville:
4695 Vanderbilt University Press,
1968),
151–52.
4697 who controlled bookselling in England during the eighteenth
4698 century. The Conger claimed a perpetual right to control the
<quote>copy
</quote> of
4699 books that they had acquired from authors. That perpetual right meant
4701 <!-- PAGE BREAK 97 -->
4702 one else could publish copies of a book to which they held the
4703 copyright. Prices of the classics were thus kept high; competition to
4704 produce better or cheaper editions was eliminated.
4706 <indexterm><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
4707 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
4708 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>renewability of
</secondary></indexterm>
4709 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
4711 Now, there's something puzzling about the year
1774 to anyone who
4712 knows a little about copyright law. The better-known year in the
4713 history of copyright is
1710, the year that the British Parliament
4714 adopted the first
<quote>copyright
</quote> act. Known as the Statute of Anne, the
4715 act stated that all published works would get a copyright term of
4716 fourteen years, renewable once if the author was alive, and that all
4717 works already published by
1710 would get a single term of twenty-one
4718 additional years.
<footnote><para>
4720 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
4721 As Siva Vaidhyanathan nicely argues, it is erroneous to call this a
4722 <quote>copyright law.
</quote> See Vaidhyanathan,
<citetitle>Copyrights and Copywrongs
</citetitle>,
40.
4723 </para></footnote> Under this law,
<citetitle>Romeo and Juliet
</citetitle> should have been
4724 free in
1731. So why was there any issue about it still being under
4725 Tonson's control in
1774?
4727 <indexterm startref='idxromeoandjulietshakespeare' class='endofrange'
/>
4728 <indexterm startref='idxtonsonjacob' class='endofrange'
/>
4729 <indexterm id='idxlawcommonvspositive' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>common vs. positive
</secondary></indexterm>
4730 <indexterm><primary>positive law
</primary></indexterm>
4731 <indexterm><primary>Licensing Act (
1662)
</primary></indexterm>
4733 The reason is that the English hadn't yet agreed on what a
<quote>copyright
</quote>
4734 was
—indeed, no one had. At the time the English passed the
4735 Statute of Anne, there was no other legislation governing copyrights.
4736 The last law regulating publishers, the Licensing Act of
1662, had
4737 expired in
1695. That law gave publishers a monopoly over publishing,
4738 as a way to make it easier for the Crown to control what was
4739 published. But after it expired, there was no positive law that said
4740 that the publishers, or
<quote>Stationers,
</quote> had an exclusive right to print
4743 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof2' class='endofrange'
/>
4744 <indexterm><primary>common law
</primary></indexterm>
4746 There was no
<emphasis>positive
</emphasis> law, but that didn't mean
4747 that there was no law. The Anglo-American legal tradition looks to
4748 both the words of legislatures and the words of judges to know the
4749 rules that are to govern how people are to behave. We call the words
4750 from legislatures
<quote>positive law.
</quote> We call the words from judges
4751 <quote>common law.
</quote> The common law sets the background against which
4752 legislatures legislate; the legislature, ordinarily, can trump that
4753 background only if it passes a law to displace it. And so the real
4754 question after the licensing statutes had expired was whether the
4755 common law protected a copyright, independent of any positive law.
4757 <indexterm startref='idxlawcommonvspositive' class='endofrange'
/>
4758 <indexterm><primary>Conger
</primary></indexterm>
4759 <indexterm id='idxbritishparliament' class='startofrange'
><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
4760 <indexterm><primary>Scottish publishers
</primary></indexterm>
4761 <indexterm id='idxstatuteofanne' class='startofrange'
><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
4763 This question was important to the publishers, or
<quote>booksellers,
</quote> as
4764 they were called, because there was growing competition from foreign
4765 publishers. The Scottish, in particular, were increasingly publishing
4766 and exporting books to England. That competition reduced the profits
4768 <!-- PAGE BREAK 98 -->
4769 of the Conger, which reacted by demanding that Parliament pass a law
4770 to again give them exclusive control over publishing. That demand
4772 resulted in the Statute of Anne.
4774 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightasnarrowmonopolyright' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>as narrow monopoly right
</secondary></indexterm>
4776 The Statute of Anne granted the author or
<quote>proprietor
</quote> of a book an
4777 exclusive right to print that book. In an important limitation,
4778 however, and to the horror of the booksellers, the law gave the
4779 bookseller that right for a limited term. At the end of that term, the
4780 copyright
<quote>expired,
</quote> and the work would then be free and could be
4781 published by anyone. Or so the legislature is thought to have
4784 <indexterm startref='idxstatuteofanne' class='endofrange'
/>
4786 Now, the thing to puzzle about for a moment is this: Why would
4787 Parliament limit the exclusive right? Not why would they limit it to
4788 the particular limit they set, but why would they limit the right
4789 <emphasis>at all?
</emphasis>
4791 <indexterm startref='idxbritishparliament' class='endofrange'
/>
4792 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
4793 <indexterm><primary>Romeo and Juliet (Shakespeare)
</primary></indexterm>
4795 For the booksellers, and the authors whom they represented, had a very
4796 strong claim. Take
<citetitle>Romeo and Juliet
</citetitle> as an example: That play
4797 was written by Shakespeare. It was his genius that brought it into the
4798 world. He didn't take anybody's property when he created this play
4799 (that's a controversial claim, but never mind), and by his creating
4800 this play, he didn't make it any harder for others to craft a play. So
4801 why is it that the law would ever allow someone else to come along and
4802 take Shakespeare's play without his, or his estate's, permission? What
4803 reason is there to allow someone else to
<quote>steal
</quote> Shakespeare's work?
4805 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
4807 The answer comes in two parts. We first need to see something special
4808 about the notion of
<quote>copyright
</quote> that existed at the time of the
4809 Statute of Anne. Second, we have to see something important about
4810 <quote>booksellers.
</quote>
4812 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>usage restrictions attached to
</secondary></indexterm>
4814 First, about copyright. In the last three hundred years, we have come
4815 to apply the concept of
<quote>copyright
</quote> ever more broadly. But in
1710, it
4816 wasn't so much a concept as it was a very particular right. The
4817 copyright was born as a very specific set of restrictions: It forbade
4818 others from reprinting a book. In
1710, the
<quote>copy-right
</quote> was a right
4819 to use a particular machine to replicate a particular work. It did not
4820 go beyond that very narrow right. It did not control any more
4822 <!-- PAGE BREAK 99 -->
4823 a work could be
<emphasis>used
</emphasis>. Today the right includes a
4824 large collection of restrictions on the freedom of others: It grants
4825 the author the exclusive right to copy, the exclusive right to
4826 distribute, the exclusive right to perform, and so on.
4828 <indexterm><primary>Branagh, Kenneth
</primary></indexterm>
4829 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
4831 So, for example, even if the copyright to Shakespeare's works were
4832 perpetual, all that would have meant under the original meaning of the
4833 term was that no one could reprint Shakespeare's work without the
4834 permission of the Shakespeare estate. It would not have controlled
4835 anything, for example, about how the work could be performed, whether
4836 the work could be translated, or whether Kenneth Branagh would be
4837 allowed to make his films. The
<quote>copy-right
</quote> was only an exclusive
4838 right to print
—no less, of course, but also no more.
4840 <indexterm><primary>Henry VIII, King of England
</primary></indexterm>
4841 <indexterm id='idxmonopolycopyrightas' class='startofrange'
><primary>monopoly, copyright as
</primary></indexterm>
4842 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Monopolies (
1656)
</primary></indexterm>
4844 Even that limited right was viewed with skepticism by the British.
4845 They had had a long and ugly experience with
<quote>exclusive rights,
</quote>
4846 especially
<quote>exclusive rights
</quote> granted by the Crown. The English had
4847 fought a civil war in part about the Crown's practice of handing out
4848 monopolies
—especially monopolies for works that already
4849 existed. King Henry VIII granted a patent to print the Bible and a
4850 monopoly to Darcy to print playing cards. The English Parliament began
4851 to fight back against this power of the Crown. In
1656, it passed the
4852 Statute of Monopolies, limiting monopolies to patents for new
4853 inventions. And by
1710, Parliament was eager to deal with the growing
4854 monopoly in publishing.
4857 Thus the
<quote>copy-right,
</quote> when viewed as a monopoly right, was naturally
4858 viewed as a right that should be limited. (However convincing the
4859 claim that
<quote>it's my property, and I should have it forever,
</quote> try
4860 sounding convincing when uttering,
<quote>It's my monopoly, and I should
4861 have it forever.
</quote>) The state would protect the exclusive right, but
4862 only so long as it benefited society. The British saw the harms from
4863 specialinterest favors; they passed a law to stop them.
4865 <indexterm><primary>Milton, John
</primary></indexterm>
4866 <indexterm id='idxbooksellersenglish' class='startofrange'
><primary>booksellers, English
</primary></indexterm>
4867 <indexterm><primary>Conger
</primary></indexterm>
4868 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
4870 Second, about booksellers. It wasn't just that the copyright was a
4871 monopoly. It was also that it was a monopoly held by the booksellers.
4872 Booksellers sound quaint and harmless to us. They were not viewed
4873 as harmless in seventeenth-century England. Members of the Conger
4874 <!-- PAGE BREAK 100 -->
4876 were increasingly seen as monopolists of the worst
4877 kind
—tools of the Crown's repression, selling the liberty of
4878 England to guarantee themselves a monopoly profit. The attacks against
4879 these monopolists were harsh: Milton described them as
<quote>old patentees
4880 and monopolizers in the trade of book-selling
</quote>; they were
<quote>men who do
4881 not therefore labour in an honest profession to which learning is
4882 indetted.
</quote><footnote><para>
4885 Philip Wittenberg,
<citetitle>The Protection and Marketing of Literary
4886 Property
</citetitle> (New York: J. Messner, Inc.,
1937),
31.
4889 <indexterm><primary>Enlightenment
</primary></indexterm>
4890 <indexterm><primary>knowledge, freedom of
</primary></indexterm>
4892 Many believed the power the booksellers exercised over the spread of
4893 knowledge was harming that spread, just at the time the Enlightenment
4894 was teaching the importance of education and knowledge spread
4895 generally. The idea that knowledge should be free was a hallmark of
4896 the time, and these powerful commercial interests were interfering
4899 <indexterm id='idxbritishparliament2' class='startofrange'
><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
4901 To balance this power, Parliament decided to increase competition
4902 among booksellers, and the simplest way to do that was to spread the
4903 wealth of valuable books. Parliament therefore limited the term of
4904 copyrights, and thereby guaranteed that valuable books would become
4905 open to any publisher to publish after a limited time. Thus the setting
4906 of the term for existing works to just twenty-one years was a
4908 to fight the power of the booksellers. The limitation on terms was
4909 an indirect way to assure competition among publishers, and thus the
4910 construction and spread of culture.
4912 <indexterm id='idxstatuteofanne2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
4913 </primary></indexterm>
4914 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinperpetuity' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>in perpetuity
</secondary></indexterm>
4916 When
1731 (
1710 +
21) came along, however, the booksellers were
4917 getting anxious. They saw the consequences of more competition, and
4918 like every competitor, they didn't like them. At first booksellers simply
4919 ignored the Statute of Anne, continuing to insist on the perpetual right
4920 to control publication. But in
1735 and
1737, they tried to persuade
4921 Parliament to extend their terms. Twenty-one years was not enough,
4922 they said; they needed more time.
4925 Parliament rejected their requests. As one pamphleteer put it, in
4926 words that echo today,
4930 I see no Reason for granting a further Term now, which will not
4931 hold as well for granting it again and again, as often as the Old
4932 <!-- PAGE BREAK 101 -->
4933 ones Expire; so that should this Bill pass, it will in Effect be
4934 establishing a perpetual Monopoly, a Thing deservedly odious in the
4935 Eye of the Law; it will be a great Cramp to Trade, a Discouragement to
4936 Learning, no Benefit to the Authors, but a general Tax on the Publick;
4937 and all this only to increase the private Gain of the
4938 Booksellers.
<footnote><para>
4940 A Letter to a Member of Parliament concerning the Bill now depending
4941 in the House of Commons, for making more effectual an Act in the
4942 Eighth Year of the Reign of Queen Anne, entitled, An Act for the
4943 Encouragement of Learning, by Vesting the Copies of Printed Books in
4944 the Authors or Purchasers of such Copies, during the Times therein
4945 mentioned (London,
1735), in Brief Amici Curiae of Tyler T. Ochoa et
4946 al.,
8,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
537 U.S.
186 (
2003) (No.
01-
618).
4950 <indexterm startref='idxstatuteofanne2' class='endofrange'
/>
4951 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinperpetuity' class='endofrange'
/>
4952 <indexterm><primary>common law
</primary></indexterm>
4953 <indexterm><primary>law
</primary><secondary>common vs. positive
</secondary></indexterm>
4954 <indexterm><primary>positive law
</primary></indexterm>
4956 Having failed in Parliament, the publishers turned to the courts in a
4957 series of cases. Their argument was simple and direct: The Statute of
4958 Anne gave authors certain protections through positive law, but those
4959 protections were not intended as replacements for the common law.
4960 Instead, they were intended simply to supplement the common law.
4961 Under common law, it was already wrong to take another person's
4962 creative
<quote>property
</quote> and use it without his permission. The Statute of
4963 Anne, the booksellers argued, didn't change that. Therefore, just
4964 because the protections of the Statute of Anne expired, that didn't
4965 mean the protections of the common law expired: Under the common law
4966 they had the right to ban the publication of a book, even if its
4967 Statute of Anne copyright had expired. This, they argued, was the only
4968 way to protect authors.
4970 <indexterm startref='idxbritishparliament2' class='endofrange'
/>
4972 This was a clever argument, and one that had the support of some of
4973 the leading jurists of the day. It also displayed extraordinary
4974 chutzpah. Until then, as law professor Raymond Patterson has put it,
4975 <quote>The publishers
… had as much concern for authors as a cattle
4976 rancher has for cattle.
</quote><footnote><para>
4978 <indexterm><primary>Patterson, Raymond
</primary></indexterm>
4979 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
4980 Lyman Ray Patterson,
<quote>Free Speech, Copyright, and Fair Use,
</quote> <citetitle>Vanderbilt
4981 Law Review
</citetitle> 40 (
1987):
28. For a wonderfully compelling account, see
4982 Vaidhyanathan,
37–48.
4984 The bookseller didn't care squat for the rights of the author. His
4985 concern was the monopoly profit that the author's work gave.
4987 <indexterm id='idxdonaldsonalexander' class='startofrange'
><primary>Donaldson, Alexander
</primary></indexterm>
4988 <indexterm><primary>Patterson, Raymond
</primary></indexterm>
4989 <indexterm id='idxscottishpublishers' class='startofrange'
><primary>Scottish publishers
</primary></indexterm>
4991 The booksellers' argument was not accepted without a fight.
4992 The hero of this fight was a Scottish bookseller named Alexander
4993 Donaldson.
<footnote><para>
4995 For a compelling account, see David Saunders,
<citetitle>Authorship and Copyright
</citetitle>
4996 (London: Routledge,
1992),
62–69.
4999 <indexterm id='idxstatuteofanne3' class='startofrange'
><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
5000 <indexterm id='idxconger' class='startofrange'
><primary>Conger
</primary></indexterm>
5001 <indexterm><primary>Boswell, James
</primary></indexterm>
5002 <indexterm><primary>Erskine, Andrew
</primary></indexterm>
5004 Donaldson was an outsider to the London Conger. He began his
5005 career in Edinburgh in
1750. The focus of his business was inexpensive
5006 reprints
<quote>of standard works whose copyright term had expired,
</quote> at least
5007 under the Statute of Anne.
<footnote><para>
5009 Mark Rose,
<citetitle>Authors and Owners
</citetitle> (Cambridge: Harvard University Press,
5011 <indexterm><primary>Rose, Mark
</primary></indexterm>
5013 Donaldson's publishing house prospered
5014 <!-- PAGE BREAK 102 -->
5015 and became
<quote>something of a center for literary Scotsmen.
</quote> <quote>[A]mong
5016 them,
</quote> Professor Mark Rose writes, was
<quote>the young James Boswell
5017 who, together with his friend Andrew Erskine, published an anthology
5018 of contemporary Scottish poems with Donaldson.
</quote><footnote><para>
5023 <indexterm id='idxcommonlaw' class='startofrange'
><primary>common law
</primary></indexterm>
5025 When the London booksellers tried to shut down Donaldson's shop in
5026 Scotland, he responded by moving his shop to London, where he sold
5027 inexpensive editions
<quote>of the most popular English books, in defiance
5028 of the supposed common law right of Literary
5029 Property.
</quote><footnote><para>
5031 <indexterm><primary>Patterson, Raymond
</primary></indexterm>
5032 Lyman Ray Patterson,
<citetitle>Copyright in Historical Perspective
</citetitle>,
167 (quoting
5035 His books undercut the Conger prices by
30 to
50 percent, and he
5036 rested his right to compete upon the ground that, under the Statute of
5037 Anne, the works he was selling had passed out of protection.
5039 <indexterm startref='idxconger' class='endofrange'
/>
5040 <indexterm id='idxmillarvtaylor' class='startofrange'
><primary>Millar v. Taylor
</primary></indexterm>
5042 The London booksellers quickly brought suit to block
<quote>piracy
</quote> like
5043 Donaldson's. A number of actions were successful against the
<quote>pirates,
</quote>
5044 the most important early victory being
<citetitle>Millar
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Taylor
</citetitle>.
5046 <indexterm startref='idxdonaldsonalexander' class='endofrange'
/>
5047 <indexterm startref='idxscottishpublishers' class='endofrange'
/>
5048 <indexterm id='idxthomsonjames' class='startofrange'
><primary>Thomson, James
</primary></indexterm>
5049 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinperpetuity2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>in perpetuity
</secondary></indexterm>
5050 <indexterm><primary>Seasons, The (Thomson)
</primary></indexterm>
5051 <indexterm><primary>Taylor, Robert
</primary></indexterm>
5053 Millar was a bookseller who in
1729 had purchased the rights to James
5054 Thomson's poem
<quote>The Seasons.
</quote> Millar complied with the requirements of
5055 the Statute of Anne, and therefore received the full protection of the
5056 statute. After the term of copyright ended, Robert Taylor began
5057 printing a competing volume. Millar sued, claiming a perpetual common
5058 law right, the Statute of Anne notwithstanding.
<footnote><para>
5060 Howard B. Abrams,
<quote>The Historic Foundation of American Copyright Law:
5061 Exploding the Myth of Common Law Copyright,
</quote> <citetitle>Wayne Law Review
</citetitle> 29
5065 <indexterm id='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Mansfield, William Murray, Lord
</primary></indexterm>
5067 Astonishingly to modern lawyers, one of the greatest judges in English
5068 history, Lord Mansfield, agreed with the booksellers. Whatever
5069 protection the Statute of Anne gave booksellers, it did not, he held,
5070 extinguish any common law right. The question was whether the common
5071 law would protect the author against subsequent
<quote>pirates.
</quote>
5072 Mansfield's answer was yes: The common law would bar Taylor from
5073 reprinting Thomson's poem without Millar's permission. That common law
5074 rule thus effectively gave the booksellers a perpetual right to
5075 control the publication of any book assigned to them.
5077 <indexterm startref='idxcommonlaw' class='endofrange'
/>
5078 <indexterm startref='idxthomsonjames' class='endofrange'
/>
5079 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinperpetuity2' class='endofrange'
/>
5080 <indexterm id='idxbritishparliament3' class='startofrange'
><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
5082 Considered as a matter of abstract justice
—reasoning as if
5083 justice were just a matter of logical deduction from first
5084 principles
—Mansfield's conclusion might make some sense. But
5085 what it ignored was the larger issue that Parliament had struggled
5086 with in
1710: How best to limit
5087 <!-- PAGE BREAK 103 -->
5088 the monopoly power of publishers? Parliament's strategy was to offer a
5089 term for existing works that was long enough to buy peace in
1710, but
5090 short enough to assure that culture would pass into competition within
5091 a reasonable period of time. Within twenty-one years, Parliament
5092 believed, Britain would mature from the controlled culture that the
5093 Crown coveted to the free culture that we inherited.
5095 <indexterm startref='idxmansfieldwilliammurraylord2' class='endofrange'
/>
5096 <indexterm id='idxdonaldsonalexander2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Donaldson, Alexander
</primary></indexterm>
5097 <indexterm id='idxscottishpublishers2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Scottish publishers
</primary></indexterm>
5099 The fight to defend the limits of the Statute of Anne was not to end
5100 there, however, and it is here that Donaldson enters the mix.
5102 <indexterm><primary>Thomson, James
</primary></indexterm>
5103 <indexterm><primary>Beckett, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
5104 <indexterm id='idxhouseoflords' class='startofrange'
><primary>House of Lords
</primary></indexterm>
5105 <indexterm id='idxsupremecourtushouseoflordsvs' class='startofrange'
><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>House of Lords vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
5107 Millar died soon after his victory, so his case was not appealed. His
5108 estate sold Thomson's poems to a syndicate of printers that included
5109 Thomas Beckett.
<footnote><para>
5113 Donaldson then released an unauthorized edition
5114 of Thomson's works. Beckett, on the strength of the decision in
<citetitle>Millar
</citetitle>,
5115 got an injunction against Donaldson. Donaldson appealed the case to
5116 the House of Lords, which functioned much like our own Supreme
5117 Court. In February of
1774, that body had the chance to interpret the
5118 meaning of Parliament's limits from sixty years before.
5120 <indexterm startref='idxmillarvtaylor' class='endofrange'
/>
5121 <indexterm startref='idxbritishparliament3' class='endofrange'
/>
5122 <indexterm id='idxdonaldsonvbeckett' class='startofrange'
><primary>Donaldson v. Beckett
</primary></indexterm>
5123 <indexterm id='idxcommonlaw2' class='startofrange'
><primary>common law
</primary></indexterm>
5125 As few legal cases ever do,
<citetitle>Donaldson
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Beckett
</citetitle> drew an
5126 enormous amount of attention throughout Britain. Donaldson's lawyers
5127 argued that whatever rights may have existed under the common law, the
5128 Statute of Anne terminated those rights. After passage of the Statute
5129 of Anne, the only legal protection for an exclusive right to control
5130 publication came from that statute. Thus, they argued, after the term
5131 specified in the Statute of Anne expired, works that had been
5132 protected by the statute were no longer protected.
5134 <indexterm startref='idxstatuteofanne3' class='endofrange'
/>
5136 The House of Lords was an odd institution. Legal questions were
5137 presented to the House and voted upon first by the
<quote>law lords,
</quote>
5138 members of special legal distinction who functioned much like the
5139 Justices in our Supreme Court. Then, after the law lords voted, the
5140 House of Lords generally voted.
5142 <indexterm startref='idxsupremecourtushouseoflordsvs' class='endofrange'
/>
5143 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinperpetuity3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>in perpetuity
</secondary></indexterm>
5144 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainenglishlegalestablishmentof' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>English legal establishment of
</secondary></indexterm>
5146 The reports about the law lords' votes are mixed. On some counts,
5147 it looks as if perpetual copyright prevailed. But there is no ambiguity
5148 <!-- PAGE BREAK 104 -->
5149 about how the House of Lords voted as whole. By a two-to-one majority
5150 (
22 to
11) they voted to reject the idea of perpetual copyrights.
5151 Whatever one's understanding of the common law, now a copyright was
5152 fixed for a limited time, after which the work protected by copyright
5153 passed into the public domain.
5155 <indexterm><primary>Bacon, Francis
</primary></indexterm>
5156 <indexterm><primary>Bunyan, John
</primary></indexterm>
5157 <indexterm><primary>Johnson, Samuel
</primary></indexterm>
5158 <indexterm><primary>Milton, John
</primary></indexterm>
5159 <indexterm><primary>Shakespeare, William
</primary></indexterm>
5161 <quote>The public domain.
</quote> Before the case of
<citetitle>Donaldson
</citetitle>
5162 v.
<citetitle>Beckett
</citetitle>, there was no clear idea of a public domain in
5163 England. Before
1774, there was a strong argument that common law
5164 copyrights were perpetual. After
1774, the public domain was
5165 born. For the first time in Anglo-American history, the legal control
5166 over creative works expired, and the greatest works in English
5167 history
—including those of Shakespeare, Bacon, Milton, Johnson,
5168 and Bunyan
—were free of legal restraint.
5170 <indexterm startref='idxdonaldsonalexander2' class='endofrange'
/>
5171 <indexterm startref='idxscottishpublishers2' class='endofrange'
/>
5172 <indexterm startref='idxcommonlaw2' class='endofrange'
/>
5173 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinperpetuity3' class='endofrange'
/>
5174 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainenglishlegalestablishmentof' class='endofrange'
/>
5175 <indexterm><primary>Scottish publishers
</primary></indexterm>
5177 It is hard for us to imagine, but this decision by the House of Lords
5178 fueled an extraordinarily popular and political reaction. In Scotland,
5179 where most of the
<quote>pirate publishers
</quote> did their work, people
5180 celebrated the decision in the streets. As the
<citetitle>Edinburgh Advertiser
</citetitle>
5181 reported,
<quote>No private cause has so much engrossed the attention of the
5182 public, and none has been tried before the House of Lords in the
5183 decision of which so many individuals were interested.
</quote> <quote>Great
5184 rejoicing in Edinburgh upon victory over literary property: bonfires
5185 and illuminations.
</quote><footnote><para>
5190 <indexterm startref='idxhouseoflords' class='endofrange'
/>
5192 In London, however, at least among publishers, the reaction was
5193 equally strong in the opposite direction. The
<citetitle>Morning Chronicle
</citetitle>
5198 By the above decision
… near
200,
000 pounds worth of what was
5199 honestly purchased at public sale, and which was yesterday thought
5200 property is now reduced to nothing. The Booksellers of London and
5201 Westminster, many of whom sold estates and houses to purchase
5202 Copy-right, are in a manner ruined, and those who after many years
5203 industry thought they had acquired a competency to provide for their
5204 families now find themselves without a shilling to devise to their
5205 successors.
<footnote><para>
5211 <indexterm><primary>House of Lords
</primary></indexterm>
5212 <indexterm><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary>English legal establishment of
</secondary></indexterm>
5214 <!-- PAGE BREAK 105 -->
5215 <quote>Ruined
</quote> is a bit of an exaggeration. But it is not an exaggeration to
5216 say that the change was profound. The decision of the House of Lords
5217 meant that the booksellers could no longer control how culture in
5218 England would grow and develop. Culture in England was thereafter
5219 <emphasis>free
</emphasis>. Not in the sense that copyrights would not
5220 be respected, for of course, for a limited time after a work was
5221 published, the bookseller had an exclusive right to control the
5222 publication of that book. And not in the sense that books could be
5223 stolen, for even after a copyright expired, you still had to buy the
5224 book from someone. But
<emphasis>free
</emphasis> in the sense that the
5225 culture and its growth would no longer be controlled by a small group
5226 of publishers. As every free market does, this free market of free
5227 culture would grow as the consumers and producers chose. English
5228 culture would develop as the many English readers chose to let it
5229 develop
— chose in the books they bought and wrote; chose in the
5230 memes they repeated and endorsed. Chose in a
<emphasis>competitive
5231 context
</emphasis>, not a context in which the choices about what
5232 culture is available to people and how they get access to it are made
5233 by the few despite the wishes of the many.
5235 <indexterm startref='idxbooksellersenglish' class='endofrange'
/>
5236 <indexterm><primary>British Parliament
</primary></indexterm>
5238 At least, this was the rule in a world where the Parliament is
5239 antimonopoly, resistant to the protectionist pleas of publishers. In a
5240 world where the Parliament is more pliant, free culture would be less
5243 <indexterm startref='idxbooksenglishcopyrightlawdevelopedfor' class='endofrange'
/>
5244 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawdevelopmentof' class='endofrange'
/>
5245 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawenglish' class='endofrange'
/>
5246 <indexterm startref='idxenglandcopyrightlawsdevelopedin' class='endofrange'
/>
5247 <indexterm startref='idxunitedkingdomhistoryofcopyrightlawin' class='endofrange'
/>
5248 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightasnarrowmonopolyright' class='endofrange'
/>
5249 <indexterm startref='idxmonopolycopyrightas' class='endofrange'
/>
5250 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof3' class='endofrange'
/>
5251 <indexterm startref='idxdonaldsonvbeckett' class='endofrange'
/>
5252 <!-- PAGE BREAK 106 -->
5254 <chapter label=
"7" id=
"recorders">
5255 <title>CHAPTER SEVEN: Recorders
</title>
5256 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>fair use and
</secondary></indexterm>
5257 <indexterm id='idxdocumentaryfilm' class='startofrange'
><primary>documentary film
</primary></indexterm>
5258 <indexterm id='idxelsejon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Else, Jon
</primary></indexterm>
5259 <indexterm id='idxfairuseindocumentaryfilm' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>in documentary film
</secondary></indexterm>
5260 <indexterm id='idxfilmsfairuseofcopyrightedmaterialin' class='startofrange'
><primary>films
</primary><secondary>fair use of copyrighted material in
</secondary></indexterm>
5262 <emphasis role='strong'
>Jon Else
</emphasis> is a filmmaker. He is best
5263 known for his documentaries and has been very successful in spreading
5264 his art. He is also a teacher, and as a teacher myself, I envy the
5265 loyalty and admiration that his students feel for him. (I met, by
5266 accident, two of his students at a dinner party. He was their god.)
5269 Else worked on a documentary that I was involved in. At a break,
5270 he told me a story about the freedom to create with film in America
5273 <indexterm id='idxwagnerrichard' class='startofrange'
><primary>Wagner, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
5274 <indexterm><primary>San Francisco Opera
</primary></indexterm>
5276 In
1990, Else was working on a documentary about Wagner's Ring
5277 Cycle. The focus was stagehands at the San Francisco Opera.
5278 Stagehands are a particularly funny and colorful element of an opera.
5279 During a show, they hang out below the stage in the grips' lounge and
5280 in the lighting loft. They make a perfect contrast to the art on the
5283 <indexterm id='idxsimpsonsthe' class='startofrange'
><primary>Simpsons, The
</primary></indexterm>
5285 During one of the performances, Else was shooting some stagehands
5286 playing checkers. In one corner of the room was a television set.
5287 Playing on the television set, while the stagehands played checkers
5288 and the opera company played Wagner, was
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle>. As Else judged
5289 <!-- PAGE BREAK 107 -->
5290 it, this touch of cartoon helped capture the flavor of what was special
5293 <indexterm startref='idxwagnerrichard' class='endofrange'
/>
5294 <indexterm><primary>films
</primary><secondary>multiple copyrights associated with
</secondary></indexterm>
5296 Years later, when he finally got funding to complete the film, Else
5297 attempted to clear the rights for those few seconds of
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle>.
5298 For of course, those few seconds are copyrighted; and of course, to use
5299 copyrighted material you need the permission of the copyright owner,
5300 unless
<quote>fair use
</quote> or some other privilege applies.
5302 <indexterm id='idxgraciefilms' class='startofrange'
><primary>Gracie Films
</primary></indexterm>
5303 <indexterm id='idxgroeningmatt' class='startofrange'
><primary>Groening, Matt
</primary></indexterm>
5305 Else called
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> creator Matt Groening's office to get permission.
5306 Groening approved the shot. The shot was a four-and-a-halfsecond image
5307 on a tiny television set in the corner of the room. How could it hurt?
5308 Groening was happy to have it in the film, but he told Else to contact
5309 Gracie Films, the company that produces the program.
5311 <indexterm id='idxfoxfilmcompany' class='startofrange'
><primary>Fox (film company)
</primary></indexterm>
5313 Gracie Films was okay with it, too, but they, like Groening, wanted
5314 to be careful. So they told Else to contact Fox, Gracie's parent company.
5315 Else called Fox and told them about the clip in the corner of the one
5316 room shot of the film. Matt Groening had already given permission,
5317 Else said. He was just confirming the permission with Fox.
5319 <indexterm startref='idxgraciefilms' class='endofrange'
/>
5321 Then, as Else told me,
<quote>two things happened. First we discovered
5322 … that Matt Groening doesn't own his own creation
—or at
5323 least that someone [at Fox] believes he doesn't own his own creation.
</quote>
5324 And second, Fox
<quote>wanted ten thousand dollars as a licensing fee for us
5325 to use this four-point-five seconds of
… entirely unsolicited
5326 <citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> which was in the corner of the shot.
</quote>
5328 <indexterm startref='idxgroeningmatt' class='endofrange'
/>
5329 <indexterm startref='idxfoxfilmcompany' class='endofrange'
/>
5330 <indexterm id='idxherrerarebecca' class='startofrange'
><primary>Herrera, Rebecca
</primary></indexterm>
5332 Else was certain there was a mistake. He worked his way up to someone
5333 he thought was a vice president for licensing, Rebecca Herrera. He
5334 explained to her,
<quote>There must be some mistake here.
… We're
5335 asking for your educational rate on this.
</quote> That was the educational
5336 rate, Herrera told Else. A day or so later, Else called again to
5337 confirm what he had been told.
5339 <indexterm><primary>Wagner, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
5341 <quote>I wanted to make sure I had my facts straight,
</quote> he told me.
<quote>Yes, you
5342 have your facts straight,
</quote> she said. It would cost $
10,
000 to use the
5343 clip of
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle> in the corner of a shot in a documentary film
5346 <!-- PAGE BREAK 108 -->
5347 Wagner's Ring Cycle. And then, astonishingly, Herrera told Else,
<quote>And
5348 if you quote me, I'll turn you over to our attorneys.
</quote> As an assistant
5349 to Herrera told Else later on,
<quote>They don't give a shit. They just want
5352 <indexterm startref='idxherrerarebecca' class='endofrange'
/>
5353 <indexterm><primary>San Francisco Opera
</primary></indexterm>
5354 <indexterm><primary>Day After Trinity, The
</primary></indexterm>
5356 Else didn't have the money to buy the right to replay what was playing
5357 on the television backstage at the San Francisco Opera. To reproduce
5358 this reality was beyond the documentary filmmaker's budget. At the
5359 very last minute before the film was to be released, Else digitally
5360 replaced the shot with a clip from another film that he had worked on,
5361 <citetitle>The Day After Trinity
</citetitle>, from ten years before.
5363 <indexterm id='idxfoxfilmcompany2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Fox (film company)
</primary></indexterm>
5364 <indexterm id='idxgroeningmatt2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Groening, Matt
</primary></indexterm>
5366 There's no doubt that someone, whether Matt Groening or Fox, owns the
5367 copyright to
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle>. That copyright is their property. To use
5368 that copyrighted material thus sometimes requires the permission of
5369 the copyright owner. If the use that Else wanted to make of the
5370 <citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> copyright were one of the uses restricted by the law, then he
5371 would need to get the permission of the copyright owner before he
5372 could use the work in that way. And in a free market, it is the owner
5373 of the copyright who gets to set the price for any use that the law
5374 says the owner gets to control.
5377 For example,
<quote>public performance
</quote> is a use of
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle> that the
5378 copyright owner gets to control. If you take a selection of favorite
5379 episodes, rent a movie theater, and charge for tickets to come see
<quote>My
5380 Favorite
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle>,
</quote> then you need to get permission from the copyright
5381 owner. And the copyright owner (rightly, in my view) can charge
5382 whatever she wants
—$
10 or $
1,
000,
000. That's her right, as set
5386 But when lawyers hear this story about Jon Else and Fox, their first
5387 thought is
<quote>fair use.
</quote><footnote><para>
5389 For an excellent argument that such use is
<quote>fair use,
</quote> but that
5390 lawyers don't permit recognition that it is
<quote>fair use,
</quote> see Richard
5391 A. Posner with William F. Patry,
<quote>Fair Use and Statutory Reform in the
5392 Wake of
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle></quote> (draft on file with author), University of Chicago
5393 Law School,
5 August
2003.
5395 Else's use of just
4.5 seconds of an indirect shot of a
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle>
5396 episode is clearly a fair use of
<citetitle>The Simpsons
</citetitle>—and fair use does
5397 not require the permission of anyone.
5399 <indexterm startref='idxfoxfilmcompany2' class='endofrange'
/>
5400 <indexterm startref='idxgroeningmatt2' class='endofrange'
/>
5402 <!-- PAGE BREAK 109 -->
5403 So I asked Else why he didn't just rely upon
<quote>fair use.
</quote> Here's his reply:
5406 <indexterm id='idxfairuselegalintimidationtacticsagainst' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>legal intimidation tactics against
</secondary></indexterm>
5408 The
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> fiasco was for me a great lesson in the gulf between what
5409 lawyers find irrelevant in some abstract sense, and what is crushingly
5410 relevant in practice to those of us actually trying to make and
5411 broadcast documentaries. I never had any doubt that it was
<quote>clearly
5412 fair use
</quote> in an absolute legal sense. But I couldn't rely on the
5413 concept in any concrete way. Here's why:
5415 <orderedlist numeration=
"arabic">
5417 <indexterm><primary>Errors and Omissions insurance
</primary></indexterm>
5420 Before our films can be broadcast, the network requires that we buy
5421 Errors and Omissions insurance. The carriers require a detailed
5422 <quote>visual cue sheet
</quote> listing the source and licensing status of each
5423 shot in the film. They take a dim view of
<quote>fair use,
</quote> and a claim of
5424 <quote>fair use
</quote> can grind the application process to a halt.
5427 <indexterm id='idxfoxfilmcompany3' class='startofrange'
><primary>Fox (film company)
</primary></indexterm>
5428 <indexterm><primary>Groening, Matt
</primary></indexterm>
5429 <indexterm><primary>Lucas, George
</primary></indexterm>
5430 <indexterm><primary><citetitle>Star Wars
</citetitle></primary></indexterm>
5433 I probably never should have asked Matt Groening in the first
5434 place. But I knew (at least from folklore) that Fox had a history of
5435 tracking down and stopping unlicensed
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle> usage, just as George
5436 Lucas had a very high profile litigating
<citetitle>Star Wars
</citetitle> usage. So I decided
5437 to play by the book, thinking that we would be granted free or cheap
5438 license to four seconds of
<citetitle>Simpsons
</citetitle>. As a documentary producer working
5439 to exhaustion on a shoestring, the last thing I wanted was to risk
5440 legal trouble, even nuisance legal trouble, and even to defend a
5445 I did, in fact, speak with one of your colleagues at Stanford Law
5446 School
… who confirmed that it was fair use. He also confirmed
5447 that Fox would
<quote>depose and litigate you to within an inch of your
5448 life,
</quote> regardless of the merits of my claim. He made clear that it
5449 would boil down to who had the bigger legal department and the deeper
5450 pockets, me or them.
5451 <!-- PAGE BREAK 110 -->
5453 <indexterm startref='idxfoxfilmcompany3' class='endofrange'
/>
5457 The question of fair use usually comes up at the end of the
5458 project, when we are up against a release deadline and out of
5463 <indexterm startref='idxsimpsonsthe' class='endofrange'
/>
5465 In theory, fair use means you need no permission. The theory therefore
5466 supports free culture and insulates against a permission culture. But
5467 in practice, fair use functions very differently. The fuzzy lines of
5468 the law, tied to the extraordinary liability if lines are crossed,
5469 means that the effective fair use for many types of creators is
5470 slight. The law has the right aim; practice has defeated the aim.
5473 This practice shows just how far the law has come from its
5474 eighteenth-century roots. The law was born as a shield to protect
5475 publishers' profits against the unfair competition of a pirate. It has
5476 matured into a sword that interferes with any use, transformative or
5479 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand' class='endofrange'
/>
5480 <indexterm startref='idxdocumentaryfilm' class='endofrange'
/>
5481 <indexterm startref='idxelsejon' class='endofrange'
/>
5482 <indexterm startref='idxfairuseindocumentaryfilm' class='endofrange'
/>
5483 <indexterm startref='idxfilmsfairuseofcopyrightedmaterialin' class='endofrange'
/>
5484 <indexterm startref='idxfairuselegalintimidationtacticsagainst' class='endofrange'
/>
5485 <!-- PAGE BREAK 111 -->
5487 <chapter label=
"8" id=
"transformers">
5488 <title>CHAPTER EIGHT: Transformers
</title>
5489 <indexterm><primary>Allen, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
5490 <indexterm id='idxalbenalex1' class='startofrange'
><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
5491 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary></indexterm>
5493 <emphasis role='strong'
>In
1993</emphasis>, Alex Alben was a lawyer
5494 working at Starwave, Inc. Starwave was an innovative company founded
5495 by Microsoft cofounder Paul Allen to develop digital
5496 entertainment. Long before the Internet became popular, Starwave began
5497 investing in new technology for delivering entertainment in
5498 anticipation of the power of networks.
5500 <indexterm id='idxartistsretrospective' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>retrospective compilations on
</secondary></indexterm>
5501 <indexterm id='idxcdroms' class='startofrange'
><primary>CD-ROMs, film clips used in
</primary></indexterm>
5503 Alben had a special interest in new technology. He was intrigued by
5504 the emerging market for CD-ROM technology
—not to distribute
5505 film, but to do things with film that otherwise would be very
5506 difficult. In
1993, he launched an initiative to develop a product to
5507 build retrospectives on the work of particular actors. The first actor
5508 chosen was Clint Eastwood. The idea was to showcase all of the work of
5509 Eastwood, with clips from his films and interviews with figures
5510 important to his career.
5513 At that time, Eastwood had made more than fifty films, as an actor and
5514 as a director. Alben began with a series of interviews with Eastwood,
5515 asking him about his career. Because Starwave produced those
5516 interviews, it was free to include them on the CD.
5519 <!-- PAGE BREAK 112 -->
5520 That alone would not have made a very interesting product, so
5521 Starwave wanted to add content from the movies in Eastwood's career:
5522 posters, scripts, and other material relating to the films Eastwood
5523 made. Most of his career was spent at Warner Brothers, and so it was
5524 relatively easy to get permission for that content.
5527 Then Alben and his team decided to include actual film clips.
<quote>Our
5528 goal was that we were going to have a clip from every one of
5529 Eastwood's films,
</quote> Alben told me. It was here that the problem
5530 arose.
<quote>No one had ever really done this before,
</quote> Alben explained.
<quote>No
5531 one had ever tried to do this in the context of an artistic look at an
5532 actor's career.
</quote>
5535 Alben brought the idea to Michael Slade, the CEO of Starwave.
5536 Slade asked,
<quote>Well, what will it take?
</quote>
5539 Alben replied,
<quote>Well, we're going to have to clear rights from
5540 everyone who appears in these films, and the music and everything
5541 else that we want to use in these film clips.
</quote> Slade said,
<quote>Great! Go
5542 for it.
</quote><footnote>
5545 Technically, the rights that Alben had to clear were mainly those of
5546 publicity
—rights an artist has to control the commercial
5547 exploitation of his image. But these rights, too, burden
<quote>Rip, Mix,
5548 Burn
</quote> creativity, as this chapter evinces.
5549 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>publicity rights on images of
</secondary></indexterm>
5550 <indexterm><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
5554 The problem was that neither Alben nor Slade had any idea what
5555 clearing those rights would mean. Every actor in each of the films
5556 could have a claim to royalties for the reuse of that film. But CD-
5557 ROMs had not been specified in the contracts for the actors, so there
5558 was no clear way to know just what Starwave was to do.
5561 I asked Alben how he dealt with the problem. With an obvious
5562 pride in his resourcefulness that obscured the obvious bizarreness of his
5563 tale, Alben recounted just what they did:
5567 So we very mechanically went about looking up the film clips. We made
5568 some artistic decisions about what film clips to include
—of
5569 course we were going to use the
<quote>Make my day
</quote> clip from
<citetitle>Dirty
5570 Harry
</citetitle>. But you then need to get the guy on the ground who's wiggling
5571 under the gun and you need to get his permission. And then you have
5572 to decide what you are going to pay him.
5575 <!-- PAGE BREAK 113 -->
5576 We decided that it would be fair if we offered them the dayplayer rate
5577 for the right to reuse that performance. We're talking about a clip of
5578 less than a minute, but to reuse that performance in the CD-ROM the
5579 rate at the time was about $
600. So we had to identify the
5580 people
—some of them were hard to identify because in Eastwood
5581 movies you can't tell who's the guy crashing through the
5582 glass
—is it the actor or is it the stuntman? And then we just,
5583 we put together a team, my assistant and some others, and we just
5584 started calling people.
5587 <indexterm><primary>Sutherland, Donald
</primary></indexterm>
5589 Some actors were glad to help
—Donald Sutherland, for example,
5590 followed up himself to be sure that the rights had been cleared.
5591 Others were dumbfounded at their good fortune. Alben would ask,
5592 <quote>Hey, can I pay you $
600 or maybe if you were in two films, you
5593 know, $
1,
200?
</quote> And they would say,
<quote>Are you for real? Hey, I'd love
5594 to get $
1,
200.
</quote> And some of course were a bit difficult (estranged
5595 ex-wives, in particular). But eventually, Alben and his team had
5596 cleared the rights to this retrospective CD-ROM on Clint Eastwood's
5600 It was one
<emphasis>year
</emphasis> later
—<quote>and even then we
5601 weren't sure whether we were totally in the clear.
</quote>
5604 Alben is proud of his work. The project was the first of its kind and
5605 the only time he knew of that a team had undertaken such a massive
5606 project for the purpose of releasing a retrospective.
5610 Everyone thought it would be too hard. Everyone just threw up their
5611 hands and said,
<quote>Oh, my gosh, a film, it's so many copyrights, there's
5612 the music, there's the screenplay, there's the director, there's the
5613 actors.
</quote> But we just broke it down. We just put it into its
5614 constituent parts and said,
<quote>Okay, there's this many actors, this many
5615 directors,
… this many musicians,
</quote> and we just went at it very
5616 systematically and cleared the rights.
5621 <!-- PAGE BREAK 114 -->
5622 And no doubt, the product itself was exceptionally good. Eastwood
5623 loved it, and it sold very well.
5625 <indexterm><primary>Drucker, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
5627 But I pressed Alben about how weird it seems that it would have to
5628 take a year's work simply to clear rights. No doubt Alben had done
5629 this efficiently, but as Peter Drucker has famously quipped,
<quote>There is
5630 nothing so useless as doing efficiently that which should not be done
5631 at all.
</quote><footnote><para>
5633 U.S. Department of Commerce Office of Acquisition Management,
<citetitle>Seven
5634 Steps to Performance-Based Services Acquisition
</citetitle>, available at
5635 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
22</ulink>.
5637 Did it make sense, I asked Alben, that this is the way a new work
5641 For, as he acknowledged,
<quote>very few
… have the time and resources,
5642 and the will to do this,
</quote> and thus, very few such works would ever be
5643 made. Does it make sense, I asked him, from the standpoint of what
5644 anybody really thought they were ever giving rights for originally, that
5645 you would have to go clear rights for these kinds of clips?
5649 I don't think so. When an actor renders a performance in a movie,
5650 he or she gets paid very well.
… And then when
30 seconds of
5651 that performance is used in a new product that is a retrospective
5652 of somebody's career, I don't think that that person
… should be
5653 compensated for that.
5657 Or at least, is this
<emphasis>how
</emphasis> the artist should be
5658 compensated? Would it make sense, I asked, for there to be some kind
5659 of statutory license that someone could pay and be free to make
5660 derivative use of clips like this? Did it really make sense that a
5661 follow-on creator would have to track down every artist, actor,
5662 director, musician, and get explicit permission from each? Wouldn't a
5663 lot more be created if the legal part of the creative process could be
5664 made to be more clean?
5668 Absolutely. I think that if there were some fair-licensing
5669 mechanism
—where you weren't subject to hold-ups and you weren't
5670 subject to estranged former spouses
—you'd see a lot more of this
5671 work, because it wouldn't be so daunting to try to put together a
5672 <!-- PAGE BREAK 115 -->
5673 retrospective of someone's career and meaningfully illustrate it with
5674 lots of media from that person's career. You'd build in a cost as the
5675 producer of one of these things. You'd build in a cost of paying X
5676 dollars to the talent that performed. But it would be a known
5677 cost. That's the thing that trips everybody up and makes this kind of
5678 product hard to get off the ground. If you knew I have a hundred
5679 minutes of film in this product and it's going to cost me X, then you
5680 build your budget around it, and you can get investments and
5681 everything else that you need to produce it. But if you say,
<quote>Oh, I
5682 want a hundred minutes of something and I have no idea what it's going
5683 to cost me, and a certain number of people are going to hold me up for
5684 money,
</quote> then it becomes difficult to put one of these things together.
5688 Alben worked for a big company. His company was backed by some of the
5689 richest investors in the world. He therefore had authority and access
5690 that the average Web designer would not have. So if it took him a
5691 year, how long would it take someone else? And how much creativity is
5692 never made just because the costs of clearing the rights are so high?
5694 <indexterm startref='idxcdroms' class='endofrange'
/>
5695 <indexterm startref='idxartistsretrospective' class='endofrange'
/>
5697 These costs are the burdens of a kind of regulation. Put on a
5698 Republican hat for a moment, and get angry for a bit. The government
5699 defines the scope of these rights, and the scope defined determines
5700 how much it's going to cost to negotiate them. (Remember the idea that
5701 land runs to the heavens, and imagine the pilot purchasing flythrough
5702 rights as he negotiates to fly from Los Angeles to San Francisco.)
5703 These rights might well have once made sense; but as circumstances
5704 change, they make no sense at all. Or at least, a well-trained,
5705 regulationminimizing Republican should look at the rights and ask,
5706 <quote>Does this still make sense?
</quote>
5708 <indexterm startref='idxalbenalex1' class='endofrange'
/>
5710 I've seen the flash of recognition when people get this point, but only
5711 a few times. The first was at a conference of federal judges in California.
5712 The judges were gathered to discuss the emerging topic of cyber-law. I
5713 was asked to be on the panel. Harvey Saferstein, a well-respected lawyer
5715 <!-- PAGE BREAK 116 -->
5716 from an L.A. firm, introduced the panel with a video that he and a
5717 friend, Robert Fairbank, had produced.
5720 The video was a brilliant collage of film from every period in the
5721 twentieth century, all framed around the idea of a
<citetitle>60 Minutes
</citetitle> episode.
5722 The execution was perfect, down to the sixty-minute stopwatch. The
5723 judges loved every minute of it.
5725 <indexterm><primary>Nimmer, David
</primary></indexterm>
5727 When the lights came up, I looked over to my copanelist, David
5728 Nimmer, perhaps the leading copyright scholar and practitioner in the
5729 nation. He had an astonished look on his face, as he peered across the
5730 room of over
250 well-entertained judges. Taking an ominous tone, he
5731 began his talk with a question:
<quote>Do you know how many federal laws
5732 were just violated in this room?
</quote>
5734 <indexterm><primary>Boies, David
</primary></indexterm>
5735 <indexterm><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
5737 For of course, the two brilliantly talented creators who made this
5738 film hadn't done what Alben did. They hadn't spent a year clearing the
5739 rights to these clips; technically, what they had done violated the
5740 law. Of course, it wasn't as if they or anyone were going to be
5741 prosecuted for this violation (the presence of
250 judges and a gaggle
5742 of federal marshals notwithstanding). But Nimmer was making an
5743 important point: A year before anyone would have heard of the word
5744 Napster, and two years before another member of our panel, David
5745 Boies, would defend Napster before the Ninth Circuit Court of Appeals,
5746 Nimmer was trying to get the judges to see that the law would not be
5747 friendly to the capacities that this technology would
5748 enable. Technology means you can now do amazing things easily; but you
5749 couldn't easily do them legally.
5752 We live in a
<quote>cut and paste
</quote> culture enabled by technology. Anyone
5753 building a presentation knows the extraordinary freedom that the cut
5754 and paste architecture of the Internet created
—in a second you can
5755 find just about any image you want; in another second, you can have it
5756 planted in your presentation.
5758 <indexterm><primary>Camp Chaos
</primary></indexterm>
5760 But presentations are just a tiny beginning. Using the Internet and
5761 <!-- PAGE BREAK 117 -->
5762 its archives, musicians are able to string together mixes of sound
5763 never before imagined; filmmakers are able to build movies out of
5764 clips on computers around the world. An extraordinary site in Sweden
5765 takes images of politicians and blends them with music to create
5766 biting political commentary. A site called Camp Chaos has produced
5767 some of the most biting criticism of the record industry that there is
5768 through the mixing of Flash! and music.
5771 All of these creations are technically illegal. Even if the creators
5772 wanted to be
<quote>legal,
</quote> the cost of complying with the law is impossibly
5773 high. Therefore, for the law-abiding sorts, a wealth of creativity is
5774 never made. And for that part that is made, if it doesn't follow the
5775 clearance rules, it doesn't get released.
5778 To some, these stories suggest a solution: Let's alter the mix of
5779 rights so that people are free to build upon our culture. Free to add
5780 or mix as they see fit. We could even make this change without
5781 necessarily requiring that the
<quote>free
</quote> use be free as in
<quote>free beer.
</quote>
5782 Instead, the system could simply make it easy for follow-on creators
5783 to compensate artists without requiring an army of lawyers to come
5784 along: a rule, for example, that says
<quote>the royalty owed the copyright
5785 owner of an unregistered work for the derivative reuse of his work
5786 will be a flat
1 percent of net revenues, to be held in escrow for the
5787 copyright owner.
</quote> Under this rule, the copyright owner could benefit
5788 from some royalty, but he would not have the benefit of a full
5789 property right (meaning the right to name his own price) unless he
5793 Who could possibly object to this? And what reason would there be
5794 for objecting? We're talking about work that is not now being made;
5795 which if made, under this plan, would produce new income for artists.
5796 What reason would anyone have to oppose it?
5799 <emphasis role='strong'
>In February
2003</emphasis>, DreamWorks
5800 studios announced an agreement with Mike Myers, the comic genius of
5801 <citetitle>Saturday Night Live
</citetitle> and
5802 <!-- PAGE BREAK 118 -->
5803 Austin Powers. According to the announcement, Myers and Dream-Works
5804 would work together to form a
<quote>unique filmmaking pact.
</quote> Under the
5805 agreement, DreamWorks
<quote>will acquire the rights to existing motion
5806 picture hits and classics, write new storylines and
—with the use
5807 of stateof-the-art digital technology
—insert Myers and other
5808 actors into the film, thereby creating an entirely new piece of
5809 entertainment.
</quote>
5812 The announcement called this
<quote>film sampling.
</quote> As Myers explained,
5813 <quote>Film Sampling is an exciting way to put an original spin on existing
5814 films and allow audiences to see old movies in a new light. Rap
5815 artists have been doing this for years with music and now we are able
5816 to take that same concept and apply it to film.
</quote> Steven Spielberg is
5817 quoted as saying,
<quote>If anyone can create a way to bring old films to
5818 new audiences, it is Mike.
</quote>
5821 Spielberg is right. Film sampling by Myers will be brilliant. But if
5822 you don't think about it, you might miss the truly astonishing point
5823 about this announcement. As the vast majority of our film heritage
5824 remains under copyright, the real meaning of the DreamWorks
5825 announcement is just this: It is Mike Myers and only Mike Myers who is
5826 free to sample. Any general freedom to build upon the film archive of
5827 our culture, a freedom in other contexts presumed for us all, is now a
5828 privilege reserved for the funny and famous
—and presumably rich.
5831 This privilege becomes reserved for two sorts of reasons. The first
5832 continues the story of the last chapter: the vagueness of
<quote>fair use.
</quote>
5833 Much of
<quote>sampling
</quote> should be considered
<quote>fair use.
</quote> But few would
5834 rely upon so weak a doctrine to create. That leads to the second reason
5835 that the privilege is reserved for the few: The costs of negotiating the
5836 legal rights for the creative reuse of content are astronomically high.
5837 These costs mirror the costs with fair use: You either pay a lawyer to
5838 defend your fair use rights or pay a lawyer to track down permissions
5839 so you don't have to rely upon fair use rights. Either way, the creative
5840 process is a process of paying lawyers
—again a privilege, or perhaps a
5841 curse, reserved for the few.
5843 <!-- PAGE BREAK 119 -->
5845 <chapter label=
"9" id=
"collectors">
5846 <title>CHAPTER NINE: Collectors
</title>
5847 <indexterm id='idxarchivesdigital1' class='startofrange'
><primary>archives, digital
</primary></indexterm>
5848 <indexterm><primary>bots
</primary></indexterm>
5850 <emphasis role='strong'
>In April
1996</emphasis>, millions of
5851 <quote>bots
</quote>—computer codes designed to
5852 <quote>spider,
</quote> or automatically search the Internet and copy
5853 content
—began running across the Net. Page by page, these bots
5854 copied Internet-based information onto a small set of computers
5855 located in a basement in San Francisco's Presidio. Once the bots
5856 finished the whole of the Internet, they started again. Over and over
5857 again, once every two months, these bits of code took copies of the
5858 Internet and stored them.
5860 <indexterm><primary>Way Back Machine
</primary></indexterm>
5862 By October
2001, the bots had collected more than five years of
5863 copies. And at a small announcement in Berkeley, California, the
5864 archive that these copies created, the Internet Archive, was opened to
5865 the world. Using a technology called
<quote>the Way Back Machine,
</quote> you could
5866 enter a Web page, and see all of its copies going back to
1996, as
5867 well as when those pages changed.
5869 <indexterm id='idxorwellgeorge' class='startofrange'
><primary>Orwell, George
</primary></indexterm>
5871 This is the thing about the Internet that Orwell would have
5872 appreciated. In the dystopia described in
<citetitle>1984</citetitle>, old newspapers were
5873 constantly updated to assure that the current view of the world,
5874 approved of by the government, was not contradicted by previous news
5878 <!-- PAGE BREAK 120 -->
5879 Thousands of workers constantly reedited the past, meaning there was
5880 no way ever to know whether the story you were reading today was the
5881 story that was printed on the date published on the paper.
5884 It's the same with the Internet. If you go to a Web page today,
5885 there's no way for you to know whether the content you are reading is
5886 the same as the content you read before. The page may seem the same,
5887 but the content could easily be different. The Internet is Orwell's
5888 library
—constantly updated, without any reliable memory.
5890 <indexterm startref='idxorwellgeorge' class='endofrange'
/>
5891 <indexterm><primary>Way Back Machine
</primary></indexterm>
5893 Until the Way Back Machine, at least. With the Way Back Machine, and
5894 the Internet Archive underlying it, you can see what the Internet
5895 was. You have the power to see what you remember. More importantly,
5896 perhaps, you also have the power to find what you don't remember and
5897 what others might prefer you forget.
<footnote><para>
5899 <indexterm><primary>Iraq war
</primary></indexterm>
5900 <indexterm><primary>White House press releases
</primary></indexterm>
5901 The temptations remain, however. Brewster Kahle reports that the White
5902 House changes its own press releases without notice. A May
13,
2003,
5903 press release stated,
<quote>Combat Operations in Iraq Have Ended.
</quote> That was
5904 later changed, without notice, to
<quote>Major Combat Operations in Iraq
5905 Have Ended.
</quote> E-mail from Brewster Kahle,
1 December
2003.
5908 <indexterm><primary>history, records of
</primary></indexterm>
5910 <emphasis role='strong'
>We take it
</emphasis> for granted that we can
5911 go back to see what we remember reading. Think about newspapers. If
5912 you wanted to study the reaction of your hometown newspaper to the
5913 race riots in Watts in
1965, or to Bull Connor's water cannon in
1963,
5914 you could go to your public library and look at the newspapers. Those
5915 papers probably exist on microfiche. If you're lucky, they exist in
5916 paper, too. Either way, you are free, using a library, to go back and
5917 remember
—not just what it is convenient to remember, but
5918 remember something close to the truth.
5921 It is said that those who fail to remember history are doomed to
5922 repeat it. That's not quite correct. We
<emphasis>all
</emphasis>
5923 forget history. The key is whether we have a way to go back to
5924 rediscover what we forget. More directly, the key is whether an
5925 objective past can keep us honest. Libraries help do that, by
5926 collecting content and keeping it, for schoolchildren, for
5927 researchers, for grandma. A free society presumes this knowedge.
5930 The Internet was an exception to this presumption. Until the Internet
5931 Archive, there was no way to go back. The Internet was the
5932 quintessentially transitory medium. And yet, as it becomes more
5933 important in forming and reforming society, it becomes more and more
5934 <!-- PAGE BREAK 121 -->
5935 important to maintain in some historical form. It's just bizarre to
5936 think that we have scads of archives of newspapers from tiny towns
5937 around the world, yet there is but one copy of the Internet
—the
5938 one kept by the Internet Archive.
5941 Brewster Kahle is the founder of the Internet Archive. He was a very
5942 successful Internet entrepreneur after he was a successful computer
5943 researcher. In the
1990s, Kahle decided he had had enough business
5944 success. It was time to become a different kind of success. So he
5945 launched a series of projects designed to archive human knowledge. The
5946 Internet Archive was just the first of the projects of this Andrew
5947 Carnegie of the Internet. By December of
2002, the archive had over
10
5948 billion pages, and it was growing at about a billion pages a month.
5950 <indexterm><primary>Library of Congress
</primary></indexterm>
5951 <indexterm><primary>Television Archive
</primary></indexterm>
5952 <indexterm><primary>Vanderbilt University
</primary></indexterm>
5953 <indexterm><primary>Way Back Machine
</primary></indexterm>
5954 <indexterm><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>archival function of
</secondary></indexterm>
5955 <indexterm id='idxnewscoverage2' class='startofrange'
><primary>news coverage
</primary></indexterm>
5957 The Way Back Machine is the largest archive of human knowledge in
5958 human history. At the end of
2002, it held
<quote>two hundred and thirty
5959 terabytes of material
</quote>—and was
<quote>ten times larger than the
5960 Library of Congress.
</quote> And this was just the first of the archives that
5961 Kahle set out to build. In addition to the Internet Archive, Kahle has
5962 been constructing the Television Archive. Television, it turns out, is
5963 even more ephemeral than the Internet. While much of twentieth-century
5964 culture was constructed through television, only a tiny proportion of
5965 that culture is available for anyone to see today. Three hours of news
5966 are recorded each evening by Vanderbilt University
—thanks to a
5967 specific exemption in the copyright law. That content is indexed, and
5968 is available to scholars for a very low fee.
<quote>But other than that,
5969 [television] is almost unavailable,
</quote> Kahle told me.
<quote>If you were
5970 Barbara Walters you could get access to [the archives], but if you are
5971 just a graduate student?
</quote> As Kahle put it,
5974 <indexterm><primary>Quayle, Dan
</primary></indexterm>
5975 <indexterm><primary>60 Minutes
</primary></indexterm>
5977 Do you remember when Dan Quayle was interacting with Murphy Brown?
5978 Remember that back and forth surreal experience of a politician
5979 interacting with a fictional television character? If you were a
5980 graduate student wanting to study that, and you wanted to get those
5981 original back and forth exchanges between the two, the
5983 <!-- PAGE BREAK 122 -->
5984 <citetitle>60 Minutes
</citetitle> episode that came out after it
… it would be almost
5985 impossible.
… Those materials are almost unfindable.
…
5988 <indexterm><primary>newspapers
</primary><secondary>archives of
</secondary></indexterm>
5990 Why is that? Why is it that the part of our culture that is recorded
5991 in newspapers remains perpetually accessible, while the part that is
5992 recorded on videotape is not? How is it that we've created a world
5993 where researchers trying to understand the effect of media on
5994 nineteenthcentury America will have an easier time than researchers
5995 trying to understand the effect of media on twentieth-century America?
5998 In part, this is because of the law. Early in American copyright law,
5999 copyright owners were required to deposit copies of their work in
6000 libraries. These copies were intended both to facilitate the spread
6001 of knowledge and to assure that a copy of the work would be around
6002 once the copyright expired, so that others might access and copy the
6005 <indexterm><primary>Library of Congress
</primary></indexterm>
6006 <indexterm><primary>films
</primary><secondary>archive of
</secondary></indexterm>
6008 These rules applied to film as well. But in
1915, the Library
6009 of Congress made an exception for film. Film could be copyrighted so
6010 long as such deposits were made. But the filmmaker was then allowed to
6011 borrow back the deposits
—for an unlimited time at no cost. In
6012 1915 alone, there were more than
5,
475 films deposited and
<quote>borrowed
6013 back.
</quote> Thus, when the copyrights to films expire, there is no copy
6014 held by any library. The copy exists
—if it exists at
6015 all
—in the library archive of the film company.
<footnote><para>
6017 Doug Herrick,
<quote>Toward a National Film Collection: Motion Pictures at
6018 the Library of Congress,
</quote> <citetitle>Film Library Quarterly
</citetitle> 13 nos.
2–3
6019 (
1980):
5; Anthony Slide,
<citetitle>Nitrate Won't Wait: A History of Film
6020 Preservation in the United States
</citetitle> (Jefferson, N.C.: McFarland
&
6025 The same is generally true about television. Television broadcasts
6026 were originally not copyrighted
—there was no way to capture the
6027 broadcasts, so there was no fear of
<quote>theft.
</quote> But as technology enabled
6028 capturing, broadcasters relied increasingly upon the law. The law
6029 required they make a copy of each broadcast for the work to be
6030 <quote>copyrighted.
</quote> But those copies were simply kept by the
6031 broadcasters. No library had any right to them; the government didn't
6032 demand them. The content of this part of American culture is
6033 practically invisible to anyone who would look.
6035 <indexterm><primary>September
11,
2001, terrorist attacks of
</primary></indexterm>
6037 Kahle was eager to correct this. Before September
11,
2001, he and
6038 <!-- PAGE BREAK 123 -->
6039 his allies had started capturing television. They selected twenty
6040 stations from around the world and hit the Record button. After
6041 September
11, Kahle, working with dozens of others, selected twenty
6042 stations from around the world and, beginning October
11,
2001, made
6043 their coverage during the week of September
11 available free on-line.
6044 Anyone could see how news reports from around the world covered the
6047 <indexterm><primary>Movie Archive
</primary></indexterm>
6048 <indexterm><primary>archive.org
</primary><seealso>Internet Archive
</seealso></indexterm>
6049 <indexterm startref='idxnewscoverage2' class='endofrange'
/>
6050 <indexterm><primary>films
</primary><secondary>archive of
</secondary></indexterm>
6051 <indexterm><primary>Internet Archive
</primary></indexterm>
6052 <indexterm><primary>Duck and Cover film
</primary></indexterm>
6053 <indexterm><primary>ephemeral films
</primary></indexterm>
6054 <indexterm><primary>Prelinger, Rick
</primary></indexterm>
6056 Kahle had the same idea with film. Working with Rick Prelinger, whose
6057 archive of film includes close to
45,
000 <quote>ephemeral films
</quote> (meaning
6058 films other than Hollywood movies, films that were never copyrighted),
6059 Kahle established the Movie Archive. Prelinger let Kahle digitize
6060 1,
300 films in this archive and post those films on the Internet to be
6061 downloaded for free. Prelinger's is a for-profit company. It sells
6062 copies of these films as stock footage. What he has discovered is that
6063 after he made a significant chunk available for free, his stock
6064 footage sales went up dramatically. People could easily find the
6065 material they wanted to use. Some downloaded that material and made
6066 films on their own. Others purchased copies to enable other films to
6067 be made. Either way, the archive enabled access to this important
6068 part of our culture. Want to see a copy of the
<quote>Duck and Cover
</quote> film
6069 that instructed children how to save themselves in the middle of
6070 nuclear attack? Go to archive.org, and you can download the film in a
6071 few minutes
—for free.
6074 Here again, Kahle is providing access to a part of our culture that we
6075 otherwise could not get easily, if at all. It is yet another part of
6076 what defines the twentieth century that we have lost to history. The
6077 law doesn't require these copies to be kept by anyone, or to be
6078 deposited in an archive by anyone. Therefore, there is no simple way
6082 The key here is access, not price. Kahle wants to enable free access
6083 to this content, but he also wants to enable others to sell access to
6084 it. His aim is to ensure competition in access to this important part
6085 of our culture. Not during the commercial life of a bit of creative
6086 property, but during a second life that all creative property
6087 has
—a noncommercial life.
6090 For here is an idea that we should more clearly recognize. Every bit
6091 of creative property goes through different
<quote>lives.
</quote> In its first
6094 <!-- PAGE BREAK 124 -->
6095 creator is lucky, the content is sold. In such cases the commercial
6096 market is successful for the creator. The vast majority of creative
6097 property doesn't enjoy such success, but some clearly does. For that
6098 content, commercial life is extremely important. Without this
6099 commercial market, there would be, many argue, much less creativity.
6102 After the commercial life of creative property has ended, our
6103 tradition has always supported a second life as well. A newspaper
6104 delivers the news every day to the doorsteps of America. The very next
6105 day, it is used to wrap fish or to fill boxes with fragile gifts or to
6106 build an archive of knowledge about our history. In this second life,
6107 the content can continue to inform even if that information is no
6110 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
6112 The same has always been true about books. A book goes out of print
6113 very quickly (the average today is after about a year
<footnote><para>
6115 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
6116 Dave Barns,
<quote>Fledgling Career in Antique Books: Woodstock Landlord,
6117 Bar Owner Starts a New Chapter by Adopting Business,
</quote> <citetitle>Chicago Tribune
</citetitle>,
6118 5 September
1997, at Metro Lake
1L. Of books published between
1927
6119 and
1946, only
2.2 percent were in print in
2002. R. Anthony Reese,
6120 <quote>The First Sale Doctrine in the Era of Digital Networks,
</quote> <citetitle>Boston
6121 College Law Review
</citetitle> 44 (
2003):
593 n.
51.
6122 </para></footnote>). After
6123 it is out of print, it can be sold in used book stores without the
6124 copyright owner getting anything and stored in libraries, where many
6125 get to read the book, also for free. Used book stores and libraries
6126 are thus the second life of a book. That second life is extremely
6127 important to the spread and stability of culture.
6130 Yet increasingly, any assumption about a stable second life for
6131 creative property does not hold true with the most important
6132 components of popular culture in the twentieth and twenty-first
6133 centuries. For these
—television, movies, music, radio, the
6134 Internet
—there is no guarantee of a second life. For these sorts
6135 of culture, it is as if we've replaced libraries with Barnes
&
6136 Noble superstores. With this culture, what's accessible is nothing but
6137 what a certain limited market demands. Beyond that, culture
6141 <emphasis role='strong'
>For most of
</emphasis> the twentieth century,
6142 it was economics that made this so. It would have been insanely
6143 expensive to collect and make accessible all television and film and
6144 music: The cost of analog copies is extraordinarily high. So even
6145 though the law in principle would have restricted the ability of a
6146 Brewster Kahle to copy culture generally, the
6147 <!-- PAGE BREAK 125 -->
6148 real restriction was economics. The market made it impossibly
6149 difficult to do anything about this ephemeral culture; the law had
6150 little practical effect.
6153 Perhaps the single most important feature of the digital revolution is
6154 that for the first time since the Library of Alexandria, it is
6155 feasible to imagine constructing archives that hold all culture
6156 produced or distributed publicly. Technology makes it possible to
6157 imagine an archive of all books published, and increasingly makes it
6158 possible to imagine an archive of all moving images and sound.
6161 The scale of this potential archive is something we've never imagined
6162 before. The Brewster Kahles of our history have dreamed about it; but
6163 we are for the first time at a point where that dream is possible. As
6167 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>total number of
</secondary></indexterm>
6169 It looks like there's about two to three million recordings of music.
6170 Ever. There are about a hundred thousand theatrical releases of
6171 movies,
… and about one to two million movies [distributed] during
6172 the twentieth century. There are about twenty-six million different
6173 titles of books. All of these would fit on computers that would fit in
6174 this room and be able to be afforded by a small company. So we're at
6175 a turning point in our history. Universal access is the goal. And the
6176 opportunity of leading a different life, based on this, is
6177 … thrilling. It could be one of the things humankind would be most
6178 proud of. Up there with the Library of Alexandria, putting a man on
6179 the moon, and the invention of the printing press.
6182 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
6184 Kahle is not the only librarian. The Internet Archive is not the only
6185 archive. But Kahle and the Internet Archive suggest what the future of
6186 libraries or archives could be.
<emphasis>When
</emphasis> the
6187 commercial life of creative property ends, I don't know. But it
6188 does. And whenever it does, Kahle and his archive hint at a world
6189 where this knowledge, and culture, remains perpetually available. Some
6190 will draw upon it to understand it;
6191 <!-- PAGE BREAK 126 -->
6192 some to criticize it. Some will use it, as Walt Disney did, to
6193 re-create the past for the future. These technologies promise
6194 something that had become unimaginable for much of our past
—a
6195 future
<emphasis>for
</emphasis> our past. The technology of digital
6196 arts could make the dream of the Library of Alexandria real again.
6199 Technologists have thus removed the economic costs of building such an
6200 archive. But lawyers' costs remain. For as much as we might like to
6201 call these
<quote>archives,
</quote> as warm as the idea of a
<quote>library
</quote> might seem,
6202 the
<quote>content
</quote> that is collected in these digital spaces is also
6203 someone's
<quote>property.
</quote> And the law of property restricts the freedoms
6204 that Kahle and others would exercise.
6206 <indexterm startref='idxarchivesdigital1' class='endofrange'
/>
6207 <!-- PAGE BREAK 127 -->
6209 <chapter label=
"10" id=
"property-i">
6210 <title>CHAPTER TEN:
<quote>Property
</quote></title>
6211 <indexterm><primary>Johnson, Lyndon
</primary></indexterm>
6212 <indexterm><primary>Kennedy, John F.
</primary></indexterm>
6214 <emphasis role='strong'
>Jack Valenti
</emphasis> has been the president
6215 of the Motion Picture Association of America since
1966. He first came
6216 to Washington, D.C., with Lyndon Johnson's
6217 administration
—literally. The famous picture of Johnson's
6218 swearing-in on Air Force One after the assassination of President
6219 Kennedy has Valenti in the background. In his almost forty years of
6220 running the MPAA, Valenti has established himself as perhaps the most
6221 prominent and effective lobbyist in Washington.
6223 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Inc.
</primary></indexterm>
6224 <indexterm><primary>Sony Pictures Entertainment
</primary></indexterm>
6225 <indexterm><primary>MGM
</primary></indexterm>
6226 <indexterm><primary>Paramount Pictures
</primary></indexterm>
6227 <indexterm><primary>Twentieth Century Fox
</primary></indexterm>
6228 <indexterm><primary>Universal Pictures
</primary></indexterm>
6229 <indexterm><primary>Warner Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
6231 The MPAA is the American branch of the international Motion Picture
6232 Association. It was formed in
1922 as a trade association whose goal
6233 was to defend American movies against increasing domestic criticism.
6234 The organization now represents not only filmmakers but producers and
6235 distributors of entertainment for television, video, and cable. Its
6236 board is made up of the chairmen and presidents of the seven major
6237 producers and distributors of motion picture and television programs
6238 in the United States: Walt Disney, Sony Pictures Entertainment, MGM,
6239 Paramount Pictures, Twentieth Century Fox, Universal Studios, and
6243 <!-- PAGE BREAK 128 -->
6244 Valenti is only the third president of the MPAA. No president before
6245 him has had as much influence over that organization, or over
6246 Washington. As a Texan, Valenti has mastered the single most important
6247 political skill of a Southerner
—the ability to appear simple and
6248 slow while hiding a lightning-fast intellect. To this day, Valenti
6249 plays the simple, humble man. But this Harvard MBA, and author of four
6250 books, who finished high school at the age of fifteen and flew more
6251 than fifty combat missions in World War II, is no Mr. Smith. When
6252 Valenti went to Washington, he mastered the city in a quintessentially
6256 In defending artistic liberty and the freedom of speech that our
6257 culture depends upon, the MPAA has done important good. In crafting
6258 the MPAA rating system, it has probably avoided a great deal of
6259 speech-regulating harm. But there is an aspect to the organization's
6260 mission that is both the most radical and the most important. This is
6261 the organization's effort, epitomized in Valenti's every act, to
6262 redefine the meaning of
<quote>creative property.
</quote>
6265 In
1982, Valenti's testimony to Congress captured the strategy
6270 No matter the lengthy arguments made, no matter the charges and the
6271 counter-charges, no matter the tumult and the shouting, reasonable men
6272 and women will keep returning to the fundamental issue, the central
6273 theme which animates this entire debate:
<emphasis>Creative property
6274 owners must be accorded the same rights and protection resident in all
6275 other property owners in the nation
</emphasis>. That is the issue.
6276 That is the question. And that is the rostrum on which this entire
6277 hearing and the debates to follow must rest.
<footnote><para>
6279 Home Recording of Copyrighted Works: Hearings on H.R.
4783, H.R.
6280 4794, H.R.
4808, H.R.
5250, H.R.
5488, and H.R.
5705 Before the
6281 Subcommittee on Courts, Civil Liberties, and the Administration of
6282 Justice of the Committee on the Judiciary of the House of
6283 Representatives,
97th Cong.,
2nd sess. (
1982):
65 (testimony of Jack
6289 The strategy of this rhetoric, like the strategy of most of Valenti's
6290 rhetoric, is brilliant and simple and brilliant because simple. The
6291 <quote>central theme
</quote> to which
<quote>reasonable men and women
</quote> will return is
6293 <!-- PAGE BREAK 129 -->
6294 <quote>Creative property owners must be accorded the same rights and
6295 protections resident in all other property owners in the nation.
</quote>
6296 There are no second-class citizens, Valenti might have
6297 continued. There should be no second-class property owners.
6300 This claim has an obvious and powerful intuitive pull. It is stated
6301 with such clarity as to make the idea as obvious as the notion that we
6302 use elections to pick presidents. But in fact, there is no more
6303 extreme a claim made by
<emphasis>anyone
</emphasis> who is serious in
6304 this debate than this claim of Valenti's. Jack Valenti, however sweet
6305 and however brilliant, is perhaps the nation's foremost extremist when
6306 it comes to the nature and scope of
<quote>creative property.
</quote> His views
6307 have
<emphasis>no
</emphasis> reasonable connection to our actual legal
6308 tradition, even if the subtle pull of his Texan charm has slowly
6309 redefined that tradition, at least in Washington.
6312 While
<quote>creative property
</quote> is certainly
<quote>property
</quote> in a nerdy and
6313 precise sense that lawyers are trained to understand,
<footnote><para>
6315 Lawyers speak of
<quote>property
</quote> not as an absolute thing, but as a bundle
6316 of rights that are sometimes associated with a particular
6317 object. Thus, my
<quote>property right
</quote> to my car gives me the right to
6318 exclusive use, but not the right to drive at
150 miles an hour. For
6319 the best effort to connect the ordinary meaning of
<quote>property
</quote> to
6320 <quote>lawyer talk,
</quote> see Bruce Ackerman,
<citetitle>Private Property and the
6321 Constitution
</citetitle> (New Haven: Yale University Press,
1977),
26–27.
6322 </para></footnote> it has never been the case, nor should it be, that
6323 <quote>creative property owners
</quote> have been
<quote>accorded the same rights and
6324 protection resident in all other property owners.
</quote> Indeed, if creative
6325 property owners were given the same rights as all other property
6326 owners, that would effect a radical, and radically undesirable, change
6330 Valenti knows this. But he speaks for an industry that cares squat for
6331 our tradition and the values it represents. He speaks for an industry
6332 that is instead fighting to restore the tradition that the British
6333 overturned in
1710. In the world that Valenti's changes would create,
6334 a powerful few would exercise powerful control over how our creative
6335 culture would develop.
6338 I have two purposes in this chapter. The first is to convince you
6339 that, historically, Valenti's claim is absolutely wrong. The second is
6340 to convince you that it would be terribly wrong for us to reject our
6341 history. We have always treated rights in creative property
6342 differently from the rights resident in all other property
6343 owners. They have never been the same. And they should never be the
6344 same, because, however counterintuitive this may seem, to make them
6345 the same would be to
6347 <!-- PAGE BREAK 130 -->
6348 fundamentally weaken the opportunity for new creators to create.
6349 Creativity depends upon the owners of creativity having less than
6353 Organizations such as the MPAA, whose board includes the most powerful
6354 of the old guard, have little interest, their rhetoric
6355 notwithstanding, in assuring that the new can displace them. No
6356 organization does. No person does. (Ask me about tenure, for example.)
6357 But what's good for the MPAA is not necessarily good for America. A
6358 society that defends the ideals of free culture must preserve
6359 precisely the opportunity for new creativity to threaten the old.
6362 <emphasis role='strong'
>To get
</emphasis> just a hint that there is
6363 something fundamentally wrong in Valenti's argument, we need look no
6364 further than the United States Constitution itself.
6367 The framers of our Constitution loved
<quote>property.
</quote> Indeed, so strongly
6368 did they love property that they built into the Constitution an
6369 important requirement. If the government takes your property
—if
6370 it condemns your house, or acquires a slice of land from your
6371 farm
—it is required, under the Fifth Amendment's
<quote>Takings
6372 Clause,
</quote> to pay you
<quote>just compensation
</quote> for that taking. The
6373 Constitution thus guarantees that property is, in a certain sense,
6374 sacred. It cannot
<emphasis>ever
</emphasis> be taken from the property
6375 owner unless the government pays for the privilege.
6378 Yet the very same Constitution speaks very differently about what
6379 Valenti calls
<quote>creative property.
</quote> In the clause granting Congress the
6380 power to create
<quote>creative property,
</quote> the Constitution
6381 <emphasis>requires
</emphasis> that after a
<quote>limited time,
</quote> Congress
6382 take back the rights that it has granted and set the
<quote>creative
6383 property
</quote> free to the public domain. Yet when Congress does this, when
6384 the expiration of a copyright term
<quote>takes
</quote> your copyright and turns it
6385 over to the public domain, Congress does not have any obligation to
6386 pay
<quote>just compensation
</quote> for this
<quote>taking.
</quote> Instead, the same
6387 Constitution that requires compensation for your land
6388 <!-- PAGE BREAK 131 -->
6389 requires that you lose your
<quote>creative property
</quote> right without any
6390 compensation at all.
6393 The Constitution thus on its face states that these two forms of
6394 property are not to be accorded the same rights. They are plainly to
6395 be treated differently. Valenti is therefore not just asking for a
6396 change in our tradition when he argues that creative-property owners
6397 should be accorded the same rights as every other property-right
6398 owner. He is effectively arguing for a change in our Constitution
6401 <indexterm id='idxjeffersonthomas' class='startofrange'
><primary>Jefferson, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
6403 Arguing for a change in our Constitution is not necessarily wrong.
6404 There was much in our original Constitution that was plainly wrong.
6405 The Constitution of
1789 entrenched slavery; it left senators to be
6406 appointed rather than elected; it made it possible for the electoral
6407 college to produce a tie between the president and his own vice
6408 president (as it did in
1800). The framers were no doubt
6409 extraordinary, but I would be the first to admit that they made big
6410 mistakes. We have since rejected some of those mistakes; no doubt
6411 there could be others that we should reject as well. So my argument is
6412 not simply that because Jefferson did it, we should, too.
6415 Instead, my argument is that because Jefferson did it, we should at
6416 least try to understand
<emphasis>why
</emphasis>. Why did the framers,
6417 fanatical property types that they were, reject the claim that
6418 creative property be given the same rights as all other property? Why
6419 did they require that for creative property there must be a public
6422 <indexterm startref='idxjeffersonthomas' class='endofrange'
/>
6425 To answer this question, we need to get some perspective on the
6426 history of these
<quote>creative property
</quote> rights, and the control that they
6427 enabled. Once we see clearly how differently these rights have been
6428 defined, we will be in a better position to ask the question that
6429 should be at the core of this war: Not
<emphasis>whether
</emphasis>
6430 creative property should be protected, but how. Not
6431 <emphasis>whether
</emphasis> we will enforce the rights the law gives
6432 to creative-property owners, but what the particular mix of rights
6433 ought to be. Not
<emphasis>whether
</emphasis> artists should be paid,
6434 but whether institutions designed to assure that artists get paid need
6435 also control how culture develops.
6437 <indexterm id='idxfreeculturefourmodalitiesofconstrainton' class='startofrange'
><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary>four modalities of constraint on
</secondary></indexterm>
6438 <indexterm id='idxregulationfourmodalitiesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>regulation
</primary><secondary>four modalities of
</secondary></indexterm>
6439 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawasexpostregulationmodality' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>as ex post regulation modality
</secondary></indexterm>
6440 <indexterm id='idxlawasconstraintmodality' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>as constraint modality
</secondary></indexterm>
6443 <!-- PAGE BREAK 132 -->
6444 To answer these questions, we need a more general way to talk about
6445 how property is protected. More precisely, we need a more general way
6446 than the narrow language of the law allows. In
<citetitle>Code and Other Laws of
6447 Cyberspace
</citetitle>, I used a simple model to capture this more general
6448 perspective. For any particular right or regulation, this model asks
6449 how four different modalities of regulation interact to support or
6450 weaken the right or regulation. I represented it with this diagram:
6452 <figure id=
"fig-1331">
6453 <title>How four different modalities of regulation interact to support or weaken the right or regulation.
</title>
6454 <graphic fileref=
"images/1331.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
6456 <indexterm><primary>Madonna
</primary></indexterm>
6458 At the center of this picture is a regulated dot: the individual or
6459 group that is the target of regulation, or the holder of a right. (In
6460 each case throughout, we can describe this either as regulation or as
6461 a right. For simplicity's sake, I will speak only of regulations.)
6462 The ovals represent four ways in which the individual or group might
6463 be regulated
— either constrained or, alternatively, enabled. Law
6464 is the most obvious constraint (to lawyers, at least). It constrains
6465 by threatening punishments after the fact if the rules set in advance
6466 are violated. So if, for example, you willfully infringe Madonna's
6467 copyright by copying a song from her latest CD and posting it on the
6468 Web, you can be punished
6469 <!-- PAGE BREAK 133 -->
6470 with a $
150,
000 fine. The fine is an ex post punishment for violating
6471 an ex ante rule. It is imposed by the state.
6472 <indexterm><primary>Madonna
</primary></indexterm>
6474 <indexterm><primary>norms, regulatory influence of
</primary></indexterm>
6476 Norms are a different kind of constraint. They, too, punish an
6477 individual for violating a rule. But the punishment of a norm is
6478 imposed by a community, not (or not only) by the state. There may be
6479 no law against spitting, but that doesn't mean you won't be punished
6480 if you spit on the ground while standing in line at a movie. The
6481 punishment might not be harsh, though depending upon the community, it
6482 could easily be more harsh than many of the punishments imposed by the
6483 state. The mark of the difference is not the severity of the rule, but
6484 the source of the enforcement.
6486 <indexterm id='idxmarketconstraints' class='startofrange'
><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
6488 The market is a third type of constraint. Its constraint is effected
6489 through conditions: You can do X if you pay Y; you'll be paid M if you
6490 do N. These constraints are obviously not independent of law or
6491 norms
—it is property law that defines what must be bought if it
6492 is to be taken legally; it is norms that say what is appropriately
6493 sold. But given a set of norms, and a background of property and
6494 contract law, the market imposes a simultaneous constraint upon how an
6495 individual or group might behave.
6497 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6499 Finally, and for the moment, perhaps, most mysteriously,
6500 <quote>architecture
</quote>—the physical world as one finds it
—is a
6501 constraint on behavior. A fallen bridge might constrain your ability
6502 to get across a river. Railroad tracks might constrain the ability of
6503 a community to integrate its social life. As with the market,
6504 architecture does not effect its constraint through ex post
6505 punishments. Instead, also as with the market, architecture effects
6506 its constraint through simultaneous conditions. These conditions are
6507 imposed not by courts enforcing contracts, or by police punishing
6508 theft, but by nature, by
<quote>architecture.
</quote> If a
500-pound boulder
6509 blocks your way, it is the law of gravity that enforces this
6510 constraint. If a $
500 airplane ticket stands between you and a flight
6511 to New York, it is the market that enforces this constraint.
6513 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawasexpostregulationmodality' class='endofrange'
/>
6514 <indexterm startref='idxlawasconstraintmodality' class='endofrange'
/>
6515 <indexterm startref='idxmarketconstraints' class='endofrange'
/>
6516 <indexterm id='idxlawasconstraintmodality2' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>as constraint modality
</secondary></indexterm>
6519 <!-- PAGE BREAK 134 -->
6520 So the first point about these four modalities of regulation is
6521 obvious: They interact. Restrictions imposed by one might be
6522 reinforced by another. Or restrictions imposed by one might be
6523 undermined by another.
6526 The second point follows directly: If we want to understand the
6527 effective freedom that anyone has at a given moment to do any
6528 particular thing, we have to consider how these four modalities
6529 interact. Whether or not there are other constraints (there may well
6530 be; my claim is not about comprehensiveness), these four are among the
6531 most significant, and any regulator (whether controlling or freeing)
6532 must consider how these four in particular interact.
6534 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6535 <indexterm><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
6536 <indexterm><primary>norms, regulatory influence of
</primary></indexterm>
6537 <indexterm id='idxdrivingspeedconstraintson' class='startofrange'
><primary>driving speed, constraints on
</primary></indexterm>
6538 <indexterm id='idxspeedingconstraintson' class='startofrange'
><primary>speeding, constraints on
</primary></indexterm>
6540 So, for example, consider the
<quote>freedom
</quote> to drive a car at a high
6541 speed. That freedom is in part restricted by laws: speed limits that
6542 say how fast you can drive in particular places at particular
6543 times. It is in part restricted by architecture: speed bumps, for
6544 example, slow most rational drivers; governors in buses, as another
6545 example, set the maximum rate at which the driver can drive. The
6546 freedom is in part restricted by the market: Fuel efficiency drops as
6547 speed increases, thus the price of gasoline indirectly constrains
6548 speed. And finally, the norms of a community may or may not constrain
6549 the freedom to speed. Drive at
50 mph by a school in your own
6550 neighborhood and you're likely to be punished by the neighbors. The
6551 same norm wouldn't be as effective in a different town, or at night.
6554 The final point about this simple model should also be fairly clear:
6555 While these four modalities are analytically independent, law has a
6556 special role in affecting the three.
<footnote><para>
6558 By describing the way law affects the other three modalities, I don't
6559 mean to suggest that the other three don't affect law. Obviously, they
6560 do. Law's only distinction is that it alone speaks as if it has a
6561 right self-consciously to change the other three. The right of the
6562 other three is more timidly expressed. See Lawrence Lessig,
<citetitle>Code: And
6563 Other Laws of Cyberspace
</citetitle> (New York: Basic Books,
1999):
90–95;
6564 Lawrence Lessig,
<quote>The New Chicago School,
</quote> <citetitle>Journal of Legal Studies
</citetitle>,
6567 The law, in other words, sometimes operates to increase or decrease
6568 the constraint of a particular modality. Thus, the law might be used
6569 to increase taxes on gasoline, so as to increase the incentives to
6570 drive more slowly. The law might be used to mandate more speed bumps,
6571 so as to increase the difficulty of driving rapidly. The law might be
6572 used to fund ads that stigmatize reckless driving. Or the law might be
6573 used to require that other laws be more
6574 <!-- PAGE BREAK 135 -->
6575 strict
—a federal requirement that states decrease the speed
6576 limit, for example
—so as to decrease the attractiveness of fast
6579 <indexterm startref='idxdrivingspeedconstraintson' class='endofrange'
/>
6580 <indexterm startref='idxspeedingconstraintson' class='endofrange'
/>
6581 <figure id=
"fig-1361">
6582 <title>Law has a special role in affecting the three.
</title>
6583 <graphic fileref=
"images/1361.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
6586 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6588 These constraints can thus change, and they can be changed. To
6589 understand the effective protection of liberty or protection of
6590 property at any particular moment, we must track these changes over
6591 time. A restriction imposed by one modality might be erased by
6592 another. A freedom enabled by one modality might be displaced by
6596 Some people object to this way of talking about
<quote>liberty.
</quote> They object
6597 because their focus when considering the constraints that exist at any
6598 particular moment are constraints imposed exclusively by the
6599 government. For instance, if a storm destroys a bridge, these people
6600 think it is meaningless to say that one's liberty has been
6601 restrained. A bridge has washed out, and it's harder to get from one
6602 place to another. To talk about this as a loss of freedom, they say,
6603 is to confuse the stuff of politics with the vagaries of ordinary
6604 life. I don't mean to deny the value in this narrower view, which
6605 depends upon the context of the inquiry. I do, however, mean to argue
6606 against any insistence that this narrower view is the only proper view
6607 of liberty. As I argued in
<citetitle>Code
</citetitle>, we come from a
6608 long tradition of political thought with a broader focus than the
6609 narrow question of what the government did when. John Stuart Mill
6610 defended freedom of speech, for example, from the tyranny of narrow
6611 minds, not from the fear of government prosecution; John Stuart Mill,
6612 <citetitle>On Liberty
</citetitle> (Indiana: Hackett Publishing Co.,
6613 1978),
19. John R. Commons famously defended the economic freedom of
6614 labor from constraints imposed by the market; John R. Commons,
<quote>The
6615 Right to Work,
</quote> in Malcom Rutherford and Warren J. Samuels, eds.,
6616 <citetitle>John R. Commons: Selected Essays
</citetitle> (London:
6617 Routledge:
1997),
62. The Americans with Disabilities Act increases
6618 the liberty of people with physical disabilities by changing the
6619 architecture of certain public places, thereby making access to those
6620 places easier;
42 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, section
6621 12101 (
2000). Each of these interventions to change existing
6622 conditions changes the liberty of a particular group. The effect of
6623 those interventions should be accounted for in order to understand the
6624 effective liberty that each of these groups might face.
6625 <indexterm><primary>Americans with Disabilities Act (
1990)
</primary></indexterm>
6626 <indexterm><primary>Commons, John R.
</primary></indexterm>
6627 <indexterm><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6628 <indexterm><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
6631 <indexterm startref='idxlawasconstraintmodality2' class='endofrange'
/>
6632 <section id=
"hollywood">
6633 <title>Why Hollywood Is Right
</title>
6634 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightfourregulatorymodalitieson' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>four regulatory modalities on
</secondary></indexterm>
6636 The most obvious point that this model reveals is just why, or just
6637 how, Hollywood is right. The copyright warriors have rallied Congress
6638 and the courts to defend copyright. This model helps us see why that
6639 rallying makes sense.
6642 Let's say this is the picture of copyright's regulation before the
6645 <figure id=
"fig-1371">
6646 <title>Copyright's regulation before the Internet.
</title>
6647 <graphic fileref=
"images/1331.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
6650 <indexterm id='idxarchitectureconstrainteffectedthrough' class='startofrange'
><primary>architecture, constraint effected through
</primary></indexterm>
6651 <indexterm><primary>law
</primary><secondary>as constraint modality
</secondary></indexterm>
6652 <indexterm id='idxnormsregulatoryinfluenceof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>norms, regulatory influence of
</primary></indexterm>
6654 <!-- PAGE BREAK 136 -->
6655 There is balance between law, norms, market, and architecture. The law
6656 limits the ability to copy and share content, by imposing penalties on
6657 those who copy and share content. Those penalties are reinforced by
6658 technologies that make it hard to copy and share content
6659 (architecture) and expensive to copy and share content
6660 (market). Finally, those penalties are mitigated by norms we all
6661 recognize
—kids, for example, taping other kids' records. These
6662 uses of copyrighted material may well be infringement, but the norms
6663 of our society (before the Internet, at least) had no problem with
6664 this form of infringement.
6666 <indexterm id='idxinternetcopyrightregulatorybalancelostwith' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>copyright regulatory balance lost with
</secondary></indexterm>
6667 <indexterm><primary>peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing
</primary><secondary>regulatory balance lost in
</secondary></indexterm>
6668 <indexterm><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
6669 <indexterm><primary>MP3s
</primary></indexterm>
6671 Enter the Internet, or, more precisely, technologies such as MP3s and
6672 p2p sharing. Now the constraint of architecture changes dramatically,
6673 as does the constraint of the market. And as both the market and
6674 architecture relax the regulation of copyright, norms pile on. The
6675 happy balance (for the warriors, at least) of life before the Internet
6676 becomes an effective state of anarchy after the Internet.
6678 <indexterm startref='idxarchitectureconstrainteffectedthrough' class='endofrange'
/>
6679 <indexterm startref='idxnormsregulatoryinfluenceof2' class='endofrange'
/>
6680 <indexterm><primary>technology
</primary><secondary>established industries threatened by changes in
</secondary></indexterm>
6682 Thus the sense of, and justification for, the warriors' response.
6683 Technology has changed, the warriors say, and the effect of this
6684 change, when ramified through the market and norms, is that a balance
6685 of protection for the copyright owners' rights has been lost. This is
6687 <!-- PAGE BREAK 137 -->
6688 after the fall of Saddam, but this time no government is justifying the
6689 looting that results.
6691 <figure id=
"fig-1381">
6692 <title>effective state of anarchy after the Internet.
</title>
6693 <graphic fileref=
"images/1381.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
6696 <indexterm><primary>Commerce, U.S. Department of
</primary></indexterm>
6697 <indexterm id='idxregulationasestablishmentprotectionism' class='startofrange'
><primary>regulation
</primary><secondary>as establishment protectionism
</secondary></indexterm>
6699 Neither this analysis nor the conclusions that follow are new to the
6700 warriors. Indeed, in a
<quote>White Paper
</quote> prepared by the Commerce
6701 Department (one heavily influenced by the copyright warriors) in
1995,
6702 this mix of regulatory modalities had already been identified and the
6703 strategy to respond already mapped. In response to the changes the
6704 Internet had effected, the White Paper argued (
1) Congress should
6705 strengthen intellectual property law, (
2) businesses should adopt
6706 innovative marketing techniques, (
3) technologists should push to
6707 develop code to protect copyrighted material, and (
4) educators should
6708 educate kids to better protect copyright.
6710 <indexterm startref='idxfreeculturefourmodalitiesofconstrainton' class='endofrange'
/>
6711 <indexterm startref='idxregulationfourmodalitiesof' class='endofrange'
/>
6712 <indexterm><primary>farming
</primary></indexterm>
6713 <indexterm><primary>steel industry
</primary></indexterm>
6715 This mixed strategy is just what copyright needed
—if it was to
6716 preserve the particular balance that existed before the change induced
6717 by the Internet. And it's just what we should expect the content
6718 industry to push for. It is as American as apple pie to consider the
6719 happy life you have as an entitlement, and to look to the law to
6720 protect it if something comes along to change that happy
6721 life. Homeowners living in a
6723 <!-- PAGE BREAK 138 -->
6724 flood plain have no hesitation appealing to the government to rebuild
6725 (and rebuild again) when a flood (architecture) wipes away their
6726 property (law). Farmers have no hesitation appealing to the government
6727 to bail them out when a virus (architecture) devastates their
6728 crop. Unions have no hesitation appealing to the government to bail
6729 them out when imports (market) wipe out the U.S. steel industry.
6731 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightfourregulatorymodalitieson' class='endofrange'
/>
6732 <indexterm startref='idxinternetcopyrightregulatorybalancelostwith' class='endofrange'
/>
6733 <indexterm><primary>Brown, John Seely
</primary></indexterm>
6735 Thus, there's nothing wrong or surprising in the content industry's
6736 campaign to protect itself from the harmful consequences of a
6737 technological innovation. And I would be the last person to argue that
6738 the changing technology of the Internet has not had a profound effect
6739 on the content industry's way of doing business, or as John Seely
6740 Brown describes it, its
<quote>architecture of revenue.
</quote>
6742 <indexterm><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
6743 <indexterm><primary>television
</primary><secondary>advertising on
</secondary></indexterm>
6744 <indexterm><primary>commercials
</primary></indexterm>
6745 <indexterm><primary>camera technology
</primary></indexterm>
6746 <indexterm><primary>digital cameras
</primary></indexterm>
6747 <indexterm><primary>Kodak cameras
</primary></indexterm>
6748 <indexterm><primary>railroad industry
</primary></indexterm>
6749 <indexterm><primary>remote channel changers
</primary></indexterm>
6751 But just because a particular interest asks for government support, it
6752 doesn't follow that support should be granted. And just because
6753 technology has weakened a particular way of doing business, it doesn't
6754 follow that the government should intervene to support that old way of
6755 doing business. Kodak, for example, has lost perhaps as much as
20
6756 percent of their traditional film market to the emerging technologies
6757 of digital cameras.
<footnote><para>
6759 See Geoffrey Smith,
<quote>Film vs. Digital: Can Kodak Build a Bridge?
</quote>
6760 BusinessWeek online,
2 August
1999, available at
6761 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
23</ulink>. For a more
6762 recent analysis of Kodak's place in the market, see Chana
6763 R. Schoenberger,
<quote>Can Kodak Make Up for Lost Moments?
</quote> Forbes.com,
6
6764 October
2003, available at
6765 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
24</ulink>.
6768 Does anyone believe the government should ban digital cameras just to
6769 support Kodak? Highways have weakened the freight business for
6770 railroads. Does anyone think we should ban trucks from roads
6771 <emphasis>for the purpose of
</emphasis> protecting the railroads?
6772 Closer to the subject of this book, remote channel changers have
6773 weakened the
<quote>stickiness
</quote> of television advertising (if a boring
6774 commercial comes on the TV, the remote makes it easy to surf), and it
6775 may well be that this change has weakened the television advertising
6776 market. But does anyone believe we should regulate remotes to
6777 reinforce commercial television? (Maybe by limiting them to function
6778 only once a second, or to switch to only ten channels within an hour?)
6780 <indexterm id='idxfreemarkettechnologicalchangesin' class='startofrange'
><primary>free market, technological changes in
</primary></indexterm>
6781 <indexterm><primary>Brezhnev, Leonid
</primary></indexterm>
6782 <indexterm><primary>FM radio
</primary></indexterm>
6783 <indexterm><primary>radio
</primary><secondary>FM spectrum of
</secondary></indexterm>
6784 <indexterm><primary>Gates, Bill
</primary></indexterm>
6785 <indexterm><primary>market competition
</primary></indexterm>
6786 <indexterm><primary>RCA
</primary></indexterm>
6788 The obvious answer to these obviously rhetorical questions is no.
6789 In a free society, with a free market, supported by free enterprise and
6790 free trade, the government's role is not to support one way of doing
6791 <!-- PAGE BREAK 139 -->
6792 business against others. Its role is not to pick winners and protect
6793 them against loss. If the government did this generally, then we would
6794 never have any progress. As Microsoft chairman Bill Gates wrote in
6795 1991, in a memo criticizing software patents,
<quote>established companies
6796 have an interest in excluding future competitors.
</quote><footnote><para>
6798 Fred Warshofsky,
<citetitle>The Patent Wars
</citetitle> (New York: Wiley,
1994),
170–71.
6801 startup, established companies also have the means. (Think RCA and
6802 FM radio.) A world in which competitors with new ideas must fight
6803 not only the market but also the government is a world in which
6804 competitors with new ideas will not succeed. It is a world of stasis and
6805 increasingly concentrated stagnation. It is the Soviet Union under
6809 Thus, while it is understandable for industries threatened with new
6810 technologies that change the way they do business to look to the
6811 government for protection, it is the special duty of policy makers to
6812 guarantee that that protection not become a deterrent to progress. It
6813 is the duty of policy makers, in other words, to assure that the
6814 changes they create, in response to the request of those hurt by
6815 changing technology, are changes that preserve the incentives and
6816 opportunities for innovation and change.
6818 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>First Amendment to
</secondary></indexterm>
6819 <indexterm><primary>First Amendment
</primary></indexterm>
6820 <indexterm><primary>speech, freedom of
</primary><secondary>constitutional guarantee of
</secondary></indexterm>
6822 In the context of laws regulating speech
—which include,
6823 obviously, copyright law
—that duty is even stronger. When the
6824 industry complaining about changing technologies is asking Congress to
6825 respond in a way that burdens speech and creativity, policy makers
6826 should be especially wary of the request. It is always a bad deal for
6827 the government to get into the business of regulating speech
6828 markets. The risks and dangers of that game are precisely why our
6829 framers created the First Amendment to our Constitution:
<quote>Congress
6830 shall make no law
… abridging the freedom of speech.
</quote> So when
6831 Congress is being asked to pass laws that would
<quote>abridge
</quote> the freedom
6832 of speech, it should ask
— carefully
—whether such
6833 regulation is justified.
6835 <indexterm startref='idxregulationasestablishmentprotectionism' class='endofrange'
/>
6836 <indexterm startref='idxfreemarkettechnologicalchangesin' class='endofrange'
/>
6838 My argument just now, however, has nothing to do with whether
6839 <!-- PAGE BREAK 140 -->
6840 the changes that are being pushed by the copyright warriors are
6841 <quote>justified.
</quote> My argument is about their effect. For before we get to
6842 the question of justification, a hard question that depends a great
6843 deal upon your values, we should first ask whether we understand the
6844 effect of the changes the content industry wants.
6847 Here's the metaphor that will capture the argument to follow.
6849 <indexterm id='idxmllerpaulhermann' class='startofrange'
><primary>Müller, Paul Hermann
</primary></indexterm>
6850 <indexterm id='idxddt' class='startofrange'
><primary>DDT
</primary></indexterm>
6851 <indexterm id='idxinsecticideenvironmentalconsequencesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>insecticide, environmental consequences of
</primary></indexterm>
6852 <indexterm id='idxfarming' class='startofrange'
><primary>farming
</primary></indexterm>
6854 In
1873, the chemical DDT was first synthesized. In
1948, Swiss
6855 chemist Paul Hermann Müller won the Nobel Prize for his work
6856 demonstrating the insecticidal properties of DDT. By the
1950s, the
6857 insecticide was widely used around the world to kill disease-carrying
6858 pests. It was also used to increase farm production.
6861 No one doubts that killing disease-carrying pests or increasing crop
6862 production is a good thing. No one doubts that the work of Müller was
6863 important and valuable and probably saved lives, possibly millions.
6865 <indexterm><primary>Carson, Rachel
</primary></indexterm>
6866 <indexterm><primary>Silent Spring (Carson)
</primary></indexterm>
6867 <indexterm id='idxenvironmentalism' class='startofrange'
><primary>environmentalism
</primary></indexterm>
6869 But in
1962, Rachel Carson published
<citetitle>Silent Spring
</citetitle>, which argued that
6870 DDT, whatever its primary benefits, was also having unintended
6871 environmental consequences. Birds were losing the ability to
6872 reproduce. Whole chains of the ecology were being destroyed.
6875 No one set out to destroy the environment. Paul Müller certainly did
6876 not aim to harm any birds. But the effort to solve one set of problems
6877 produced another set which, in the view of some, was far worse than
6878 the problems that were originally attacked. Or more accurately, the
6879 problems DDT caused were worse than the problems it solved, at least
6880 when considering the other, more environmentally friendly ways to
6881 solve the problems that DDT was meant to solve.
6883 <indexterm startref='idxmllerpaulhermann' class='endofrange'
/>
6884 <indexterm><primary>Boyle, James
</primary></indexterm>
6885 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawinnovativefreedombalancedwithfaircompensationin2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>innovative freedom balanced with fair compensation in
</secondary></indexterm>
6887 It is to this image precisely that Duke University law professor James
6888 Boyle appeals when he argues that we need an
<quote>environmentalism
</quote> for
6889 culture.
<footnote><para>
6891 See, for example, James Boyle,
<quote>A Politics of Intellectual Property:
6892 Environmentalism for the Net?
</quote> <citetitle>Duke Law Journal
</citetitle> 47 (
1997):
87.
6894 His point, and the point I want to develop in the balance of this
6895 chapter, is not that the aims of copyright are flawed. Or that authors
6896 should not be paid for their work. Or that music should be given away
6897 <quote>for free.
</quote> The point is that some of the ways in which we might
6898 protect authors will have unintended consequences for the cultural
6899 environment, much like DDT had for the natural environment. And just
6900 <!-- PAGE BREAK 141 -->
6901 as criticism of DDT is not an endorsement of malaria or an attack on
6902 farmers, so, too, is criticism of one particular set of regulations
6903 protecting copyright not an endorsement of anarchy or an attack on
6904 authors. It is an environment of creativity that we seek, and we
6905 should be aware of our actions' effects on the environment.
6907 <indexterm startref='idxfarming' class='endofrange'
/>
6909 My argument, in the balance of this chapter, tries to map exactly
6910 this effect. No doubt the technology of the Internet has had a dramatic
6911 effect on the ability of copyright owners to protect their content. But
6912 there should also be little doubt that when you add together the
6913 changes in copyright law over time, plus the change in technology that
6914 the Internet is undergoing just now, the net effect of these changes will
6915 not be only that copyrighted work is effectively protected. Also, and
6916 generally missed, the net effect of this massive increase in protection
6917 will be devastating to the environment for creativity.
6919 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawinnovativefreedombalancedwithfaircompensationin2' class='endofrange'
/>
6921 In a line: To kill a gnat, we are spraying DDT with consequences
6922 for free culture that will be far more devastating than that this gnat will
6925 <indexterm startref='idxddt' class='endofrange'
/>
6926 <indexterm startref='idxinsecticideenvironmentalconsequencesof' class='endofrange'
/>
6927 <indexterm startref='idxenvironmentalism' class='endofrange'
/>
6929 <section id=
"beginnings">
6930 <title>Beginnings
</title>
6931 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on creative property
</secondary></indexterm>
6932 <indexterm id='idxconstitutionuscopyrightpurposeestablishedin' class='startofrange'
><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>copyright purpose established in
</secondary></indexterm>
6933 <indexterm id='idxconstitutionusprogressclauseof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>Progress Clause of
</secondary></indexterm>
6934 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>constitutional purpose of
</secondary></indexterm>
6935 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
6936 <indexterm id='idxcreativepropertyconstitutionaltraditionon2' class='startofrange'
><primary>creative property
</primary><secondary>constitutional tradition on
</secondary></indexterm>
6937 <indexterm id='idxprogressclause' class='startofrange'
><primary>Progress Clause
</primary></indexterm>
6938 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
6940 America copied English copyright law. Actually, we copied and improved
6941 English copyright law. Our Constitution makes the purpose of
<quote>creative
6942 property
</quote> rights clear; its express limitations reinforce the English
6943 aim to avoid overly powerful publishers.
6945 <indexterm id='idxcongressusinconstitutionalprogressclause' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>in constitutional Progress Clause
</secondary></indexterm>
6947 The power to establish
<quote>creative property
</quote> rights is granted to
6948 Congress in a way that, for our Constitution, at least, is very
6949 odd. Article I, section
8, clause
8 of our Constitution states that:
6952 Congress has the power to promote the Progress of Science and
6953 useful Arts, by securing for limited Times to Authors and Inventors
6954 the exclusive Right to their respective Writings and Discoveries.
6956 <!-- PAGE BREAK 142 -->
6957 We can call this the
<quote>Progress Clause,
</quote> for notice what this clause
6958 does not say. It does not say Congress has the power to grant
6959 <quote>creative property rights.
</quote> It says that Congress has the power
6960 <emphasis>to promote progress
</emphasis>. The grant of power is its
6961 purpose, and its purpose is a public one, not the purpose of enriching
6962 publishers, nor even primarily the purpose of rewarding authors.
6964 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusinconstitutionalprogressclause' class='endofrange'
/>
6965 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawasprotectionofcreators' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>as protection of creators
</secondary></indexterm>
6966 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawhistoryofamerican' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>history of American
</secondary></indexterm>
6968 The Progress Clause expressly limits the term of copyrights. As we saw
6969 in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"founders"/>,
6970 the English limited the term of copyright so as to assure that a few
6971 would not exercise disproportionate control over culture by exercising
6972 disproportionate control over publishing. We can assume the framers
6973 followed the English for a similar purpose. Indeed, unlike the
6974 English, the framers reinforced that objective, by requiring that
6975 copyrights extend
<quote>to Authors
</quote> only.
6977 <indexterm><primary>Senate, U.S.
</primary></indexterm>
6978 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>structural checks and balances of
</secondary></indexterm>
6979 <indexterm><primary>electoral college
</primary></indexterm>
6981 The design of the Progress Clause reflects something about the
6982 Constitution's design in general. To avoid a problem, the framers
6983 built structure. To prevent the concentrated power of publishers, they
6984 built a structure that kept copyrights away from publishers and kept
6985 them short. To prevent the concentrated power of a church, they banned
6986 the federal government from establishing a church. To prevent
6987 concentrating power in the federal government, they built structures
6988 to reinforce the power of the states
—including the Senate, whose
6989 members were at the time selected by the states, and an electoral
6990 college, also selected by the states, to select the president. In each
6991 case, a
<emphasis>structure
</emphasis> built checks and balances into
6992 the constitutional frame, structured to prevent otherwise inevitable
6993 concentrations of power.
6995 <indexterm startref='idxconstitutionusprogressclauseof' class='endofrange'
/>
6996 <indexterm startref='idxprogressclause' class='endofrange'
/>
6998 I doubt the framers would recognize the regulation we call
<quote>copyright
</quote>
6999 today. The scope of that regulation is far beyond anything they ever
7000 considered. To begin to understand what they did, we need to put our
7001 <quote>copyright
</quote> in context: We need to see how it has changed in the
210
7002 years since they first struck its design.
7004 <indexterm startref='idxconstitutionuscopyrightpurposeestablishedin' class='endofrange'
/>
7005 <indexterm startref='idxcreativepropertyconstitutionaltraditionon2' class='endofrange'
/>
7006 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawasprotectionofcreators' class='endofrange'
/>
7007 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>four regulatory modalities on
</secondary></indexterm>
7009 Some of these changes come from the law: some in light of changes
7010 in technology, and some in light of changes in technology given a
7011 <!-- PAGE BREAK 143 -->
7012 particular concentration of market power. In terms of our model, we
7015 <figure id=
"fig-1441">
7016 <title>Copyright's regulation before the Internet.
</title>
7017 <graphic fileref=
"images/1331.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7022 <figure id=
"fig-1442">
7023 <title><quote>Copyright
</quote> today.
</title>
7024 <graphic fileref=
"images/1442.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7028 <!-- PAGE BREAK 144 -->
7031 <section id=
"lawduration">
7032 <title>Law: Duration
</title>
7033 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof4' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
7034 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws5' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
7035 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightact' class='startofrange'
><primary>Copyright Act (
1790)
</primary></indexterm>
7036 <indexterm><primary>creative property
</primary><secondary>common law protections of
</secondary></indexterm>
7037 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainbalanceofuscontentin' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>balance of U.S. content in
</secondary></indexterm>
7039 When the first Congress enacted laws to protect creative property, it
7040 faced the same uncertainty about the status of creative property that
7041 the English had confronted in
1774. Many states had passed laws
7042 protecting creative property, and some believed that these laws simply
7043 supplemented common law rights that already protected creative
7044 authorship.
<footnote>
7047 William W. Crosskey,
<citetitle>Politics and the Constitution in the History of
7048 the United States
</citetitle> (London: Cambridge University Press,
1953), vol.
1,
7049 485–86:
<quote>extinguish[ing], by plain implication of `the supreme
7050 Law of the Land,'
<emphasis>the perpetual rights which authors had, or
7051 were supposed by some to have, under the Common Law
</emphasis></quote>
7053 <indexterm><primary>Crosskey, William W.
</primary></indexterm>
7055 This meant that there was no guaranteed public domain in the United
7056 States in
1790. If copyrights were protected by the common law, then
7057 there was no simple way to know whether a work published in the United
7058 States was controlled or free. Just as in England, this lingering
7059 uncertainty would make it hard for publishers to rely upon a public
7060 domain to reprint and distribute works.
7062 <indexterm><primary>Statute of Anne (
1710)
</primary></indexterm>
7063 <indexterm id='idxlawfederalvsstate' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>federal vs. state
</secondary></indexterm>
7065 That uncertainty ended after Congress passed legislation granting
7066 copyrights. Because federal law overrides any contrary state law,
7067 federal protections for copyrighted works displaced any state law
7068 protections. Just as in England the Statute of Anne eventually meant
7069 that the copyrights for all English works expired, a federal statute
7070 meant that any state copyrights expired as well.
7072 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightrenewabilityof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>renewability of
</secondary></indexterm>
7074 In
1790, Congress enacted the first copyright law. It created a
7075 federal copyright and secured that copyright for fourteen years. If
7076 the author was alive at the end of that fourteen years, then he could
7077 opt to renew the copyright for another fourteen years. If he did not
7078 renew the copyright, his work passed into the public domain.
7080 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws5' class='endofrange'
/>
7082 While there were many works created in the United States in the first
7083 ten years of the Republic, only
5 percent of the works were actually
7084 registered under the federal copyright regime. Of all the work created
7085 in the United States both before
1790 and from
1790 through
1800,
95
7086 percent immediately passed into the public domain; the balance would
7087 pass into the pubic domain within twenty-eight years at most, and more
7088 likely within fourteen years.
<footnote><para>
7090 Although
13,
000 titles were published in the United States from
1790
7091 to
1799, only
556 copyright registrations were filed; John Tebbel,
<citetitle>A
7092 History of Book Publishing in the United States
</citetitle>, vol.
1,
<citetitle>The Creation
7093 of an Industry,
1630–1865</citetitle> (New York: Bowker,
1972),
141. Of the
21,
000
7094 imprints recorded before
1790, only twelve were copyrighted under the
7095 1790 act; William J. Maher,
<citetitle>Copyright Term, Retrospective Extension
7096 and the Copyright Law of
1790 in Historical Context
</citetitle>,
7–10 (
2002),
7097 available at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
7098 #
25</ulink>. Thus, the overwhelming majority of works fell
7099 immediately into the public domain. Even those works that were
7100 copyrighted fell into the public domain quickly, because the term of
7101 copyright was short. The initial term of copyright was fourteen years,
7102 with the option of renewal for an additional fourteen years. Copyright
7103 Act of May
31,
1790, §
1,
1 stat.
124.
</para></footnote>
7105 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightact' class='endofrange'
/>
7106 <indexterm startref='idxlawfederalvsstate' class='endofrange'
/>
7108 This system of renewal was a crucial part of the American system
7109 of copyright. It assured that the maximum terms of copyright would be
7110 <!-- PAGE BREAK 145 -->
7111 granted only for works where they were wanted. After the initial term
7112 of fourteen years, if it wasn't worth it to an author to renew his
7113 copyright, then it wasn't worth it to society to insist on the
7117 Fourteen years may not seem long to us, but for the vast majority of
7118 copyright owners at that time, it was long enough: Only a small
7119 minority of them renewed their copyright after fourteen years; the
7120 balance allowed their work to pass into the public
7121 domain.
<footnote><para>
7123 Few copyright holders ever chose to renew their copyrights. For
7124 instance, of the
25,
006 copyrights registered in
1883, only
894 were
7125 renewed in
1910. For a year-by-year analysis of copyright renewal
7126 rates, see Barbara A. Ringer,
<quote>Study No.
31: Renewal of Copyright,
</quote>
7127 <citetitle>Studies on Copyright
</citetitle>, vol.
1 (New York: Practicing Law Institute,
7128 1963),
618. For a more recent and comprehensive analysis, see William
7129 M. Landes and Richard A. Posner,
<quote>Indefinitely Renewable Copyright,
</quote>
7130 <citetitle>University of Chicago Law Review
</citetitle> 70 (
2003):
471,
498–501, and
7131 accompanying figures.
</para></footnote>
7133 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainbalanceofuscontentin' class='endofrange'
/>
7134 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>resales of
</secondary></indexterm>
7135 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
7137 Even today, this structure would make sense. Most creative work
7138 has an actual commercial life of just a couple of years. Most books fall
7139 out of print after one year.
<footnote><para>
7141 See Ringer, ch.
9, n.
2.
</para></footnote> When that happens, the
7142 used books are traded free of copyright regulation. Thus the books are
7143 no longer
<emphasis>effectively
</emphasis> controlled by
7144 copyright. The only practical commercial use of the books at that time
7145 is to sell the books as used books; that use
—because it does not
7146 involve publication
—is effectively free.
7148 <indexterm id='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws6' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
7149 <indexterm id='idxcongressuscopyrighttermsextendedby' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>copyright terms extended by
</secondary></indexterm>
7150 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawtermextensionsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>term extensions in
</secondary></indexterm>
7152 In the first hundred years of the Republic, the term of copyright was
7153 changed once. In
1831, the term was increased from a maximum of
28
7154 years to a maximum of
42 by increasing the initial term of copyright
7155 from
14 years to
28 years. In the next fifty years of the Republic,
7156 the term increased once again. In
1909, Congress extended the renewal
7157 term of
14 years to
28 years, setting a maximum term of
56 years.
7159 <indexterm id='idxsonnybonocopyrighttermextensionactctea' class='startofrange'
><primary>Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act (CTEA) (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
7160 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainfuturepatentsvsfuturecopyrightsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>future patents vs. future copyrights in
</secondary></indexterm>
7162 Then, beginning in
1962, Congress started a practice that has defined
7163 copyright law since. Eleven times in the last forty years, Congress
7164 has extended the terms of existing copyrights; twice in those forty
7165 years, Congress extended the term of future copyrights. Initially, the
7166 extensions of existing copyrights were short, a mere one to two years.
7167 In
1976, Congress extended all existing copyrights by nineteen years.
7168 And in
1998, in the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act, Congress
7169 extended the term of existing and future copyrights by twenty years.
7171 <indexterm><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>in public domain
</secondary></indexterm>
7173 The effect of these extensions is simply to toll, or delay, the passing
7174 of works into the public domain. This latest extension means that the
7175 public domain will have been tolled for thirty-nine out of fifty-five
7176 years, or
70 percent of the time since
1962. Thus, in the twenty years
7178 <!-- PAGE BREAK 146 -->
7179 after the Sonny Bono Act, while one million patents will pass into the
7180 public domain, zero copyrights will pass into the public domain by virtue
7181 of the expiration of a copyright term.
7183 <indexterm startref='idxsonnybonocopyrighttermextensionactctea' class='endofrange'
/>
7185 The effect of these extensions has been exacerbated by another,
7186 little-noticed change in the copyright law. Remember I said that the
7187 framers established a two-part copyright regime, requiring a copyright
7188 owner to renew his copyright after an initial term. The requirement of
7189 renewal meant that works that no longer needed copyright protection
7190 would pass more quickly into the public domain. The works remaining
7191 under protection would be those that had some continuing commercial
7194 <indexterm><primary>Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act (CTEA) (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
7195 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>of natural authors vs. corporations
</secondary></indexterm>
7196 <indexterm><primary>corporations
</primary><secondary>copyright terms for
</secondary></indexterm>
7198 The United States abandoned this sensible system in
1976. For
7199 all works created after
1978, there was only one copyright term
—the
7200 maximum term. For
<quote>natural
</quote> authors, that term was life plus fifty
7201 years. For corporations, the term was seventy-five years. Then, in
1992,
7202 Congress abandoned the renewal requirement for all works created
7203 before
1978. All works still under copyright would be accorded the
7204 maximum term then available. After the Sonny Bono Act, that term
7205 was ninety-five years.
7208 This change meant that American law no longer had an automatic way to
7209 assure that works that were no longer exploited passed into the public
7210 domain. And indeed, after these changes, it is unclear whether it is
7211 even possible to put works into the public domain. The public domain
7212 is orphaned by these changes in copyright law. Despite the requirement
7213 that terms be
<quote>limited,
</quote> we have no evidence that anything will limit
7216 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawhistoryofamerican' class='endofrange'
/>
7217 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainfuturepatentsvsfuturecopyrightsin' class='endofrange'
/>
7219 The effect of these changes on the average duration of copyright is
7220 dramatic. In
1973, more than
85 percent of copyright owners failed to
7221 renew their copyright. That meant that the average term of copyright
7222 in
1973 was just
32.2 years. Because of the elimination of the renewal
7223 requirement, the average term of copyright is now the maximum term.
7224 In thirty years, then, the average term has tripled, from
32.2 years to
95
7225 years.
<footnote><para>
7227 These statistics are understated. Between the years
1910 and
1962 (the
7228 first year the renewal term was extended), the average term was never
7229 more than thirty-two years, and averaged thirty years. See Landes and
7230 Posner,
<quote>Indefinitely Renewable Copyright,
</quote> loc. cit.
7233 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof4' class='endofrange'
/>
7234 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightrenewabilityof' class='endofrange'
/>
7235 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusoncopyrightlaws6' class='endofrange'
/>
7236 <indexterm startref='idxcongressuscopyrighttermsextendedby' class='endofrange'
/>
7237 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawtermextensionsin' class='endofrange'
/>
7238 <!-- PAGE BREAK 147 -->
7240 <section id=
"lawscope">
7241 <title>Law: Scope
</title>
7242 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightscopeof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>scope of
</secondary></indexterm>
7244 The
<quote>scope
</quote> of a copyright is the range of rights granted by the law.
7245 The scope of American copyright has changed dramatically. Those
7246 changes are not necessarily bad. But we should understand the extent
7247 of the changes if we're to keep this debate in context.
7249 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work
</secondary></indexterm>
7250 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkshistoricalshiftincopyrightcoverageof' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>historical shift in copyright coverage of
</secondary></indexterm>
7252 In
1790, that scope was very narrow. Copyright covered only
<quote>maps,
7253 charts, and books.
</quote> That means it didn't cover, for example, music or
7254 architecture. More significantly, the right granted by a copyright gave
7255 the author the exclusive right to
<quote>publish
</quote> copyrighted works. That
7256 means someone else violated the copyright only if he republished the
7257 work without the copyright owner's permission. Finally, the right granted
7258 by a copyright was an exclusive right to that particular book. The right
7259 did not extend to what lawyers call
<quote>derivative works.
</quote> It would not,
7260 therefore, interfere with the right of someone other than the author to
7261 translate a copyrighted book, or to adapt the story to a different form
7262 (such as a drama based on a published book).
7265 This, too, has changed dramatically. While the contours of copyright
7266 today are extremely hard to describe simply, in general terms, the
7267 right covers practically any creative work that is reduced to a
7268 tangible form. It covers music as well as architecture, drama as well
7269 as computer programs. It gives the copyright owner of that creative
7270 work not only the exclusive right to
<quote>publish
</quote> the work, but also the
7271 exclusive right of control over any
<quote>copies
</quote> of that work. And most
7272 significant for our purposes here, the right gives the copyright owner
7273 control over not only his or her particular work, but also any
7274 <quote>derivative work
</quote> that might grow out of the original work. In this
7275 way, the right covers more creative work, protects the creative work
7276 more broadly, and protects works that are based in a significant way
7277 on the initial creative work.
7279 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightmarkingof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>marking of
</secondary></indexterm>
7280 <indexterm id='idxformalities' class='startofrange'
><primary>formalities
</primary></indexterm>
7281 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawregistrationrequirementof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>registration requirement of
</secondary></indexterm>
7283 At the same time that the scope of copyright has expanded, procedural
7284 limitations on the right have been relaxed. I've already described the
7285 complete removal of the renewal requirement in
1992. In addition
7286 <!-- PAGE BREAK 148 -->
7287 to the renewal requirement, for most of the history of American
7288 copyright law, there was a requirement that a work be registered
7289 before it could receive the protection of a copyright. There was also
7290 a requirement that any copyrighted work be marked either with that
7291 famous
© or the word
<emphasis>copyright
</emphasis>. And for most
7292 of the history of American copyright law, there was a requirement that
7293 works be deposited with the government before a copyright could be
7296 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkshistoricalshiftincopyrightcoverageof' class='endofrange'
/>
7298 The reason for the registration requirement was the sensible
7299 understanding that for most works, no copyright was required. Again,
7300 in the first ten years of the Republic,
95 percent of works eligible
7301 for copyright were never copyrighted. Thus, the rule reflected the
7302 norm: Most works apparently didn't need copyright, so registration
7303 narrowed the regulation of the law to the few that did. The same
7304 reasoning justified the requirement that a work be marked as
7305 copyrighted
—that way it was easy to know whether a copyright was
7306 being claimed. The requirement that works be deposited was to assure
7307 that after the copyright expired, there would be a copy of the work
7308 somewhere so that it could be copied by others without locating the
7311 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>European
</secondary></indexterm>
7313 All of these
<quote>formalities
</quote> were abolished in the American system when
7314 we decided to follow European copyright law. There is no requirement
7315 that you register a work to get a copyright; the copyright now is
7316 automatic; the copyright exists whether or not you mark your work with
7317 a
©; and the copyright exists whether or not you actually make a
7318 copy available for others to copy.
7320 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightmarkingof' class='endofrange'
/>
7321 <indexterm startref='idxformalities' class='endofrange'
/>
7322 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawregistrationrequirementof' class='endofrange'
/>
7324 Consider a practical example to understand the scope of these
7327 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightact2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Copyright Act (
1790)
</primary></indexterm>
7329 If, in
1790, you wrote a book and you were one of the
5 percent who
7330 actually copyrighted that book, then the copyright law protected you
7331 against another publisher's taking your book and republishing it
7332 without your permission. The aim of the act was to regulate publishers
7333 so as to prevent that kind of unfair competition. In
1790, there were
7334 174 publishers in the United States.
<footnote><para>
7336 See Thomas Bender and David Sampliner,
<quote>Poets, Pirates, and the
7337 Creation of American Literature,
</quote> 29 <citetitle>New York University Journal of
7338 International Law and Politics
</citetitle> 255 (
1997), and James Gilraeth, ed.,
7339 Federal Copyright Records,
1790–1800 (U.S. G.P.O.,
1987).
7342 The Copyright Act was thus a tiny
7343 regulation of a tiny proportion of a tiny part of the creative market in
7344 the United States
—publishers.
7346 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work
</secondary></indexterm>
7347 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs3' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>piracy vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7348 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs3' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7350 <!-- PAGE BREAK 149 -->
7351 The act left other creators totally unregulated. If I copied your poem
7352 by hand, over and over again, as a way to learn it by heart, my act
7353 was totally unregulated by the
1790 act. If I took your novel and made
7354 a play based upon it, or if I translated it or abridged it, none of
7355 those activities were regulated by the original copyright act. These
7356 creative activities remained free, while the activities of publishers
7359 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightact2' class='endofrange'
/>
7361 Today the story is very different: If you write a book, your book is
7362 automatically protected. Indeed, not just your book. Every e-mail,
7363 every note to your spouse, every doodle,
<emphasis>every
</emphasis>
7364 creative act that's reduced to a tangible form
—all of this is
7365 automatically copyrighted. There is no need to register or mark your
7366 work. The protection follows the creation, not the steps you take to
7370 That protection gives you the right (subject to a narrow range of
7371 fair use exceptions) to control how others copy the work, whether they
7372 copy it to republish it or to share an excerpt.
7375 That much is the obvious part. Any system of copyright would
7377 competing publishing. But there's a second part to the copyright of
7378 today that is not at all obvious. This is the protection of
<quote>derivative
7379 rights.
</quote> If you write a book, no one can make a movie out of your
7380 book without permission. No one can translate it without permission.
7381 CliffsNotes can't make an abridgment unless permission is granted. All
7382 of these derivative uses of your original work are controlled by the
7383 copyright holder. The copyright, in other words, is now not just an
7385 right to your writings, but an exclusive right to your writings
7386 and a large proportion of the writings inspired by them.
7388 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs3' class='endofrange'
/>
7390 It is this derivative right that would seem most bizarre to our
7391 framers, though it has become second nature to us. Initially, this
7393 was created to deal with obvious evasions of a narrower
7395 If I write a book, can you change one word and then claim a
7396 copyright in a new and different book? Obviously that would make a
7397 joke of the copyright, so the law was properly expanded to include
7398 those slight modifications as well as the verbatim original work.
7401 <!-- PAGE BREAK 150 -->
7402 In preventing that joke, the law created an astonishing power
7403 within a free culture
—at least, it's astonishing when you
7404 understand that the law applies not just to the commercial publisher
7405 but to anyone with a computer. I understand the wrong in duplicating
7406 and selling someone else's work. But whatever
7407 <emphasis>that
</emphasis> wrong is, transforming someone else's work
7408 is a different wrong. Some view transformation as no wrong at
7409 all
—they believe that our law, as the framers penned it, should
7410 not protect derivative rights at all.
<footnote><para>
7412 Jonathan Zittrain,
<quote>The Copyright Cage,
</quote> <citetitle>Legal
7413 Affairs
</citetitle>, July/August
2003, available at
7414 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
26</ulink>.
7415 <indexterm><primary>Zittrain, Jonathan
</primary></indexterm>
7417 Whether or not you go that far, it seems
7418 plain that whatever wrong is involved is fundamentally different from
7419 the wrong of direct piracy.
7422 Yet copyright law treats these two different wrongs in the same way. I
7423 can go to court and get an injunction against your pirating my book. I
7424 can go to court and get an injunction against your transformative use
7425 of my book.
<footnote><para>
7427 Professor Rubenfeld has presented a powerful constitutional argument
7428 about the difference that copyright law should draw (from the
7429 perspective of the First Amendment) between mere
<quote>copies
</quote> and
7430 derivative works. See Jed Rubenfeld,
<quote>The Freedom of Imagination:
7431 Copyright's Constitutionality,
</quote> <citetitle>Yale Law
7432 Journal
</citetitle> 112 (
2002):
1–60 (see especially
7434 <indexterm><primary>Rubenfeld, Jeb
</primary></indexterm>
7436 These two different uses of my creative work are treated the same.
7438 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs3' class='endofrange'
/>
7439 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
7440 <indexterm><primary>Mickey Mouse
</primary></indexterm>
7442 This again may seem right to you. If I wrote a book, then why should
7443 you be able to write a movie that takes my story and makes money from
7444 it without paying me or crediting me? Or if Disney creates a creature
7445 called
<quote>Mickey Mouse,
</quote> why should you be able to make Mickey Mouse
7446 toys and be the one to trade on the value that Disney originally
7450 These are good arguments, and, in general, my point is not that the
7451 derivative right is unjustified. My aim just now is much narrower:
7452 simply to make clear that this expansion is a significant change from
7453 the rights originally granted.
7455 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightscopeof' class='endofrange'
/>
7456 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork2' class='endofrange'
/>
7458 <section id=
"lawreach">
7459 <title>Law and Architecture: Reach
</title>
7460 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>copies as core issue of
</secondary></indexterm>
7461 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawscopeof' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>scope of
</secondary></indexterm>
7463 Whereas originally the law regulated only publishers, the change in
7464 copyright's scope means that the law today regulates publishers, users,
7465 and authors. It regulates them because all three are capable of making
7466 copies, and the core of the regulation of copyright law is copies.
<footnote><para>
7468 This is a simplification of the law, but not much of one. The law
7469 certainly regulates more than
<quote>copies
</quote>—a public performance of a
7470 copyrighted song, for example, is regulated even though performance
7471 per se doesn't make a copy;
17 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, section
7472 106(
4). And it certainly sometimes doesn't regulate a
<quote>copy
</quote>;
17
7473 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, section
112(a). But the presumption under the
7474 existing law (which regulates
<quote>copies;
</quote> 17 <citetitle>United States Code
</citetitle>, section
7475 102) is that if there is a copy, there is a right.
7478 <indexterm><primary>Valenti, Jack
</primary><secondary>on creative property rights
</secondary></indexterm>
7479 <indexterm id='idxcreativepropertyotherpropertyrightsvs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>creative property
</primary><secondary>other property rights vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7481 <!-- PAGE BREAK 151 -->
7482 <quote>Copies.
</quote> That certainly sounds like the obvious thing for
7483 <emphasis>copy
</emphasis>right law to regulate. But as with Jack
7484 Valenti's argument at the start of this chapter, that
<quote>creative
7485 property
</quote> deserves the
<quote>same rights
</quote> as all other property, it is the
7486 <emphasis>obvious
</emphasis> that we need to be most careful
7487 about. For while it may be obvious that in the world before the
7488 Internet, copies were the obvious trigger for copyright law, upon
7489 reflection, it should be obvious that in the world with the Internet,
7490 copies should
<emphasis>not
</emphasis> be the trigger for copyright
7491 law. More precisely, they should not
<emphasis>always
</emphasis> be
7492 the trigger for copyright law.
7494 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof' class='endofrange'
/>
7496 This is perhaps the central claim of this book, so let me take this
7497 very slowly so that the point is not easily missed. My claim is that the
7498 Internet should at least force us to rethink the conditions under which
7499 the law of copyright automatically applies,
<footnote><para>
7501 Thus, my argument is not that in each place that copyright law
7502 extends, we should repeal it. It is instead that we should have a good
7503 argument for its extending where it does, and should not determine its
7504 reach on the basis of arbitrary and automatic changes caused by
7507 because it is clear that the
7508 current reach of copyright was never contemplated, much less chosen,
7509 by the legislators who enacted copyright law.
7511 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawscopeof' class='endofrange'
/>
7512 <indexterm startref='idxcreativepropertyotherpropertyrightsvs2' class='endofrange'
/>
7514 We can see this point abstractly by beginning with this largely
7517 <figure id=
"fig-1521">
7518 <title>All potential uses of a book.
</title>
7519 <graphic fileref=
"images/1521.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7521 <indexterm id='idxbooksthreetypesofusesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>three types of uses of
</secondary></indexterm>
7522 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>copies as core issue of
</secondary></indexterm>
7523 <indexterm id='idxinternetcopyrightapplicabilityalteredbytechnologyof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>copyright applicability altered by technology of
</secondary></indexterm>
7524 <indexterm id='idxtechnologycopyrightintentalteredby' class='startofrange'
><primary>technology
</primary><secondary>copyright intent altered by
</secondary></indexterm>
7525 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs4' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>piracy vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7526 <indexterm id='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs4' class='startofrange'
><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>derivative work vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7528 <!-- PAGE BREAK 152 -->
7529 Think about a book in real space, and imagine this circle to represent
7530 all its potential
<emphasis>uses
</emphasis>. Most of these uses are
7531 unregulated by copyright law, because the uses don't create a copy. If
7532 you read a book, that act is not regulated by copyright law. If you
7533 give someone the book, that act is not regulated by copyright law. If
7534 you resell a book, that act is not regulated (copyright law expressly
7535 states that after the first sale of a book, the copyright owner can
7536 impose no further conditions on the disposition of the book). If you
7537 sleep on the book or use it to hold up a lamp or let your puppy chew
7538 it up, those acts are not regulated by copyright law, because those
7539 acts do not make a copy.
7541 <figure id=
"fig-1531">
7542 <title>Examples of unregulated uses of a book.
</title>
7543 <graphic fileref=
"images/1531.svg" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7546 Obviously, however, some uses of a copyrighted book are regulated
7547 by copyright law. Republishing the book, for example, makes a copy. It
7548 is therefore regulated by copyright law. Indeed, this particular use stands
7549 at the core of this circle of possible uses of a copyrighted work. It is the
7550 paradigmatic use properly regulated by copyright regulation (see first
7551 diagram on next page).
7553 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkspiracyvs4' class='endofrange'
/>
7554 <indexterm startref='idxpiracyderivativeworkvs4' class='endofrange'
/>
7555 <indexterm id='idxfairuse' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary></indexterm>
7556 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>fair use and
</secondary></indexterm>
7558 Finally, there is a tiny sliver of otherwise regulated copying uses
7559 that remain unregulated because the law considers these
<quote>fair uses.
</quote>
7561 <!-- PAGE BREAK 153 -->
7562 <figure id=
"fig-1541">
7563 <title>Republishing stands at the core of this circle of possible uses of a copyrighted work.
</title>
7564 <graphic fileref=
"images/1541.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7566 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>First Amendment to
</secondary></indexterm>
7567 <indexterm><primary>First Amendment
</primary></indexterm>
7569 These are uses that themselves involve copying, but which the law
7570 treats as unregulated because public policy demands that they remain
7571 unregulated. You are free to quote from this book, even in a review
7572 that is quite negative, without my permission, even though that
7573 quoting makes a copy. That copy would ordinarily give the copyright
7574 owner the exclusive right to say whether the copy is allowed or not,
7575 but the law denies the owner any exclusive right over such
<quote>fair uses
</quote>
7576 for public policy (and possibly First Amendment) reasons.
7578 <figure id=
"fig-1542">
7579 <title>Unregulated copying considered
<quote>fair uses.
</quote></title>
7580 <graphic fileref=
"images/1542.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7583 <figure id=
"fig-1551">
7584 <title>Uses that before were presumptively unregulated are now presumptively regulated.
</title>
7585 <graphic fileref=
"images/1551.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7587 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightusagerestrictionsattachedto' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>usage restrictions attached to
</secondary></indexterm>
7589 <!-- PAGE BREAK 154 -->
7590 In real space, then, the possible uses of a book are divided into three
7591 sorts: (
1) unregulated uses, (
2) regulated uses, and (
3) regulated uses that
7592 are nonetheless deemed
<quote>fair
</quote> regardless of the copyright owner's views.
7594 <indexterm startref='idxbooksthreetypesofusesof' class='endofrange'
/>
7595 <indexterm id='idxbooksoninternet' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>on Internet
</secondary></indexterm>
7596 <indexterm id='idxinternetbookson2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>books on
</secondary></indexterm>
7597 <indexterm><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>Internet burdens on
</secondary></indexterm>
7599 Enter the Internet
—a distributed, digital network where every use
7600 of a copyrighted work produces a copy.
<footnote><para>
7602 I don't mean
<quote>nature
</quote> in the sense that it couldn't be different, but
7603 rather that its present instantiation entails a copy. Optical networks
7604 need not make copies of content they transmit, and a digital network
7605 could be designed to delete anything it copies so that the same number
7608 And because of this single, arbitrary feature of the design of a
7609 digital network, the scope of category
1 changes dramatically. Uses
7610 that before were presumptively unregulated are now presumptively
7611 regulated. No longer is there a set of presumptively unregulated uses
7612 that define a freedom associated with a copyrighted work. Instead,
7613 each use is now subject to the copyright, because each use also makes
7614 a copy
—category
1 gets sucked into category
2. And those who
7615 would defend the unregulated uses of copyrighted work must look
7616 exclusively to category
3, fair uses, to bear the burden of this
7619 <indexterm startref='idxfairuse' class='endofrange'
/>
7620 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand2' class='endofrange'
/>
7622 So let's be very specific to make this general point clear. Before the
7623 Internet, if you purchased a book and read it ten times, there would
7624 be no plausible
<emphasis>copyright
</emphasis>-related argument that
7625 the copyright owner could make to control that use of her
7626 book. Copyright law would have nothing to say about whether you read
7627 the book once, ten times, or every
7628 <!-- PAGE BREAK 155 -->
7629 night before you went to bed. None of those instances of
7630 use
—reading
— could be regulated by copyright law because
7631 none of those uses produced a copy.
7633 <indexterm id='idxebooks' class='startofrange'
><primary>e-books
</primary></indexterm>
7634 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworkstechnologicaldevelopmentsand' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>technological developments and
</secondary></indexterm>
7636 But the same book as an e-book is effectively governed by a different
7637 set of rules. Now if the copyright owner says you may read the book
7638 only once or only once a month, then
<emphasis>copyright
7639 law
</emphasis> would aid the copyright owner in exercising this degree
7640 of control, because of the accidental feature of copyright law that
7641 triggers its application upon there being a copy. Now if you read the
7642 book ten times and the license says you may read it only five times,
7643 then whenever you read the book (or any portion of it) beyond the
7644 fifth time, you are making a copy of the book contrary to the
7645 copyright owner's wish.
7648 There are some people who think this makes perfect sense. My aim
7649 just now is not to argue about whether it makes sense or not. My aim
7650 is only to make clear the change. Once you see this point, a few other
7651 points also become clear:
7654 First, making category
1 disappear is not anything any policy maker
7655 ever intended. Congress did not think through the collapse of the
7656 presumptively unregulated uses of copyrighted works. There is no
7657 evidence at all that policy makers had this idea in mind when they
7658 allowed our policy here to shift. Unregulated uses were an important
7659 part of free culture before the Internet.
7661 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>on republishing vs. transformation of original work
</secondary></indexterm>
7663 Second, this shift is especially troubling in the context of
7664 transformative uses of creative content. Again, we can all understand
7665 the wrong in commercial piracy. But the law now purports to regulate
7666 <emphasis>any
</emphasis> transformation you make of creative work
7667 using a machine.
<quote>Copy and paste
</quote> and
<quote>cut and paste
</quote> become
7668 crimes. Tinkering with a story and releasing it to others exposes the
7669 tinkerer to at least a requirement of justification. However
7670 troubling the expansion with respect to copying a particular work, it
7671 is extraordinarily troubling with respect to transformative uses of
7674 <indexterm id='idxfairuseinternetburdenson' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>Internet burdens on
</secondary></indexterm>
7675 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>fair use and
</secondary></indexterm>
7676 <indexterm id='idxderivativeworksfairusevs' class='startofrange'
><primary>derivative works
</primary><secondary>fair use vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
7678 Third, this shift from category
1 to category
2 puts an extraordinary
7680 <!-- PAGE BREAK 156 -->
7681 burden on category
3 (
<quote>fair use
</quote>) that fair use never before had to
7682 bear. If a copyright owner now tried to control how many times I
7683 could read a book on-line, the natural response would be to argue that
7684 this is a violation of my fair use rights. But there has never been
7685 any litigation about whether I have a fair use right to read, because
7686 before the Internet, reading did not trigger the application of
7687 copyright law and hence the need for a fair use defense. The right to
7688 read was effectively protected before because reading was not
7691 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof2' class='endofrange'
/>
7692 <indexterm startref='idxinternetcopyrightapplicabilityalteredbytechnologyof' class='endofrange'
/>
7693 <indexterm startref='idxtechnologycopyrightintentalteredby' class='endofrange'
/>
7694 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworkstechnologicaldevelopmentsand' class='endofrange'
/>
7695 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawonrepublishingvstransformationoforiginalwork3' class='endofrange'
/>
7697 This point about fair use is totally ignored, even by advocates for
7698 free culture. We have been cornered into arguing that our rights
7699 depend upon fair use
—never even addressing the earlier question
7700 about the expansion in effective regulation. A thin protection
7701 grounded in fair use makes sense when the vast majority of uses are
7702 <emphasis>unregulated
</emphasis>. But when everything becomes
7703 presumptively regulated, then the protections of fair use are not
7706 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightusagerestrictionsattachedto' class='endofrange'
/>
7707 <indexterm startref='idxbooksoninternet' class='endofrange'
/>
7708 <indexterm startref='idxinternetbookson2' class='endofrange'
/>
7709 <indexterm startref='idxebooks' class='endofrange'
/>
7710 <indexterm startref='idxfairuseinternetburdenson' class='endofrange'
/>
7711 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawfairuseand3' class='endofrange'
/>
7712 <indexterm startref='idxderivativeworksfairusevs' class='endofrange'
/>
7713 <indexterm id='idxvideopipeline' class='startofrange'
><primary>Video Pipeline
</primary></indexterm>
7714 <indexterm id='idxadvertising' class='startofrange'
><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
7715 <indexterm id='idxfilmindustrytraileradvertisementsof' class='startofrange'
><primary>film industry
</primary><secondary>trailer advertisements of
</secondary></indexterm>
7717 The case of Video Pipeline is a good example. Video Pipeline was
7718 in the business of making
<quote>trailer
</quote> advertisements for movies available
7719 to video stores. The video stores displayed the trailers as a way to sell
7720 videos. Video Pipeline got the trailers from the film distributors, put
7721 the trailers on tape, and sold the tapes to the retail stores.
7723 <indexterm><primary>browsing
</primary></indexterm>
7725 The company did this for about fifteen years. Then, in
1997, it began
7726 to think about the Internet as another way to distribute these
7727 previews. The idea was to expand their
<quote>selling by sampling
</quote>
7728 technique by giving on-line stores the same ability to enable
7729 <quote>browsing.
</quote> Just as in a bookstore you can read a few pages of a book
7730 before you buy the book, so, too, you would be able to sample a bit
7731 from the movie on-line before you bought it.
7733 <indexterm id='idxdisneyinc2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Inc.
</primary></indexterm>
7734 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>fair use and
</secondary></indexterm>
7735 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>copies as core issue of
</secondary></indexterm>
7736 <indexterm id='idxfairuselegalintimidationtacticsagainst2' class='startofrange'
><primary>fair use
</primary><secondary>legal intimidation tactics against
</secondary></indexterm>
7738 In
1998, Video Pipeline informed Disney and other film distributors
7739 that it intended to distribute the trailers through the Internet
7740 (rather than sending the tapes) to distributors of their videos. Two
7741 years later, Disney told Video Pipeline to stop. The owner of Video
7742 <!-- PAGE BREAK 157 -->
7743 Pipeline asked Disney to talk about the matter
—he had built a
7744 business on distributing this content as a way to help sell Disney
7745 films; he had customers who depended upon his delivering this
7746 content. Disney would agree to talk only if Video Pipeline stopped the
7747 distribution immediately. Video Pipeline thought it was within their
7748 <quote>fair use
</quote> rights to distribute the clips as they had. So they filed a
7749 lawsuit to ask the court to declare that these rights were in fact
7752 <indexterm startref='idxadvertising' class='endofrange'
/>
7753 <indexterm startref='idxfilmindustrytraileradvertisementsof' class='endofrange'
/>
7754 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightusagerestrictionsattachedto2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>usage restrictions attached to
</secondary></indexterm>
7755 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitswillfulinfringementfindingsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>willful infringement findings in
</secondary></indexterm>
7756 <indexterm><primary>willful infringement
</primary></indexterm>
7758 Disney countersued
—for $
100 million in damages. Those damages
7759 were predicated upon a claim that Video Pipeline had
<quote>willfully
7760 infringed
</quote> on Disney's copyright. When a court makes a finding of
7761 willful infringement, it can award damages not on the basis of the
7762 actual harm to the copyright owner, but on the basis of an amount set
7763 in the statute. Because Video Pipeline had distributed seven hundred
7764 clips of Disney movies to enable video stores to sell copies of those
7765 movies, Disney was now suing Video Pipeline for $
100 million.
7768 Disney has the right to control its property, of course. But the video
7769 stores that were selling Disney's films also had some sort of right to be
7770 able to sell the films that they had bought from Disney. Disney's claim
7771 in court was that the stores were allowed to sell the films and they were
7772 permitted to list the titles of the films they were selling, but they were
7773 not allowed to show clips of the films as a way of selling them without
7774 Disney's permission.
7776 <indexterm><primary>first-sale doctrine
</primary></indexterm>
7778 Now, you might think this is a close case, and I think the courts
7779 would consider it a close case. My point here is to map the change
7780 that gives Disney this power. Before the Internet, Disney couldn't
7781 really control how people got access to their content. Once a video
7782 was in the marketplace, the
<quote>first-sale doctrine
</quote> would free the
7783 seller to use the video as he wished, including showing portions of it
7784 in order to engender sales of the entire movie video. But with the
7785 Internet, it becomes possible for Disney to centralize control over
7786 access to this content. Because each use of the Internet produces a
7787 copy, use on the Internet becomes subject to the copyright owner's
7788 control. The technology expands the scope of effective control,
7789 because the technology builds a copy into every transaction.
7791 <indexterm startref='idxvideopipeline' class='endofrange'
/>
7792 <indexterm startref='idxdisneyinc2' class='endofrange'
/>
7793 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawcopiesascoreissueof3' class='endofrange'
/>
7794 <indexterm startref='idxfairuselegalintimidationtacticsagainst2' class='endofrange'
/>
7795 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightusagerestrictionsattachedto2' class='endofrange'
/>
7796 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitswillfulinfringementfindingsin' class='endofrange'
/>
7797 <indexterm><primary>Barnes
& Noble
</primary></indexterm>
7798 <indexterm><primary>browsing
</primary></indexterm>
7799 <indexterm><primary>market competition
</primary></indexterm>
7801 <!-- PAGE BREAK 158 -->
7802 No doubt, a potential is not yet an abuse, and so the potential for
7803 control is not yet the abuse of control. Barnes
& Noble has the
7804 right to say you can't touch a book in their store; property law gives
7805 them that right. But the market effectively protects against that
7806 abuse. If Barnes
& Noble banned browsing, then consumers would
7807 choose other bookstores. Competition protects against the
7808 extremes. And it may well be (my argument so far does not even
7809 question this) that competition would prevent any similar danger when
7810 it comes to copyright. Sure, publishers exercising the rights that
7811 authors have assigned to them might try to regulate how many times you
7812 read a book, or try to stop you from sharing the book with anyone. But
7813 in a competitive market such as the book market, the dangers of this
7814 happening are quite slight.
7817 Again, my aim so far is simply to map the changes that this changed
7818 architecture enables. Enabling technology to enforce the control of
7819 copyright means that the control of copyright is no longer defined by
7820 balanced policy. The control of copyright is simply what private
7821 owners choose. In some contexts, at least, that fact is harmless. But
7822 in some contexts it is a recipe for disaster.
7825 <section id=
"lawforce">
7826 <title>Architecture and Law: Force
</title>
7828 The disappearance of unregulated uses would be change enough, but a
7829 second important change brought about by the Internet magnifies its
7830 significance. This second change does not affect the reach of copyright
7831 regulation; it affects how such regulation is enforced.
7833 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>technology as automatic enforcer of
</secondary></indexterm>
7834 <indexterm><primary>technology
</primary><secondary>copyright enforcement controlled by
</secondary></indexterm>
7836 In the world before digital technology, it was generally the law that
7837 controlled whether and how someone was regulated by copyright law.
7838 The law, meaning a court, meaning a judge: In the end, it was a human,
7839 trained in the tradition of the law and cognizant of the balances that
7840 tradition embraced, who said whether and how the law would restrict
7843 <indexterm><primary>Casablanca
</primary></indexterm>
7844 <indexterm id='idxmarxbrothers' class='startofrange'
><primary>Marx Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
7845 <indexterm id='idxwarnerbrothers' class='startofrange'
><primary>Warner Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
7847 There's a famous story about a battle between the Marx Brothers
7848 and Warner Brothers. The Marxes intended to make a parody of
7849 <!-- PAGE BREAK 159 -->
7850 <citetitle>Casablanca
</citetitle>. Warner Brothers objected. They
7851 wrote a nasty letter to the Marxes, warning them that there would be
7852 serious legal consequences if they went forward with their
7853 plan.
<footnote><para>
7855 See David Lange,
<quote>Recognizing the Public Domain,
</quote> <citetitle>Law and
7856 Contemporary Problems
</citetitle> 44 (
1981):
172–73.
7860 This led the Marx Brothers to respond in kind. They warned
7861 Warner Brothers that the Marx Brothers
<quote>were brothers long before
7862 you were.
</quote><footnote><para>
7864 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
7865 Ibid. See also Vaidhyanathan,
<citetitle>Copyrights and
7866 Copywrongs
</citetitle>,
1–3.
7868 The Marx Brothers therefore owned the word
7869 <citetitle>brothers
</citetitle>, and if Warner Brothers insisted on
7870 trying to control
<citetitle>Casablanca
</citetitle>, then the Marx
7871 Brothers would insist on control over
<citetitle>brothers
</citetitle>.
7874 An absurd and hollow threat, of course, because Warner Brothers,
7875 like the Marx Brothers, knew that no court would ever enforce such a
7876 silly claim. This extremism was irrelevant to the real freedoms anyone
7877 (including Warner Brothers) enjoyed.
7879 <indexterm id='idxbooksoninternet2' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>on Internet
</secondary></indexterm>
7881 On the Internet, however, there is no check on silly rules, because on
7882 the Internet, increasingly, rules are enforced not by a human but by a
7883 machine: Increasingly, the rules of copyright law, as interpreted by
7884 the copyright owner, get built into the technology that delivers
7885 copyrighted content. It is code, rather than law, that rules. And the
7886 problem with code regulations is that, unlike law, code has no
7887 shame. Code would not get the humor of the Marx Brothers. The
7888 consequence of that is not at all funny.
7890 <indexterm startref='idxwarnerbrothers' class='endofrange'
/>
7891 <indexterm startref='idxmarxbrothers' class='endofrange'
/>
7893 <indexterm id='idxadobeebookreader' class='startofrange'
><primary>Adobe eBook Reader
</primary></indexterm>
7895 Consider the life of my Adobe eBook Reader.
7898 An e-book is a book delivered in electronic form. An Adobe eBook is
7899 not a book that Adobe has published; Adobe simply produces the
7900 software that publishers use to deliver e-books. It provides the
7901 technology, and the publisher delivers the content by using the
7905 On the next page is a picture of an old version of my Adobe eBook
7909 As you can see, I have a small collection of e-books within this
7910 e-book library. Some of these books reproduce content that is in the
7911 public domain:
<citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle>, for example, is in
7912 the public domain. Some of them reproduce content that is not in the
7913 public domain: My own book
<citetitle>The Future of Ideas
</citetitle>
7914 is not yet within the public domain. Consider
7915 <citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle> first. If you click on my e-book
7917 <!-- PAGE BREAK 160 -->
7918 <citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle>, you'll see a fancy cover, and then
7919 a button at the bottom called Permissions.
7921 <figure id=
"fig-1611">
7922 <title>Picture of an old version of Adobe eBook Reader
</title>
7923 <graphic fileref=
"images/1611.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7926 If you click on the Permissions button, you'll see a list of the
7927 permissions that the publisher purports to grant with this book.
7929 <figure id=
"fig-1612">
7930 <title>List of the permissions that the publisher purports to grant.
</title>
7931 <graphic fileref=
"images/1612.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7934 <!-- PAGE BREAK 161 -->
7935 According to my eBook Reader, I have the permission to copy to the
7936 clipboard of the computer ten text selections every ten days. (So far,
7937 I've copied no text to the clipboard.) I also have the permission to
7938 print ten pages from the book every ten days. Lastly, I have the
7939 permission to use the Read Aloud button to hear
<citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle>
7940 read aloud through the computer.
7942 <indexterm><primary>Aristotle
</primary></indexterm>
7943 <indexterm><primary><citetitle>Politics
</citetitle>, (Aristotle)
</primary></indexterm>
7945 Here's the e-book for another work in the public domain (including the
7946 translation): Aristotle's
<citetitle>Politics
</citetitle>.
7948 <figure id=
"fig-1621">
7949 <title>E-book of Aristotle;s
<quote>Politics
</quote></title>
7950 <graphic fileref=
"images/1621.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7953 According to its permissions, no printing or copying is permitted
7954 at all. But fortunately, you can use the Read Aloud button to hear
7957 <figure id=
"fig-1622">
7958 <title>List of the permissions for Aristotle;s
<quote>Politics
</quote>.
</title>
7959 <graphic fileref=
"images/1622.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7961 <indexterm><primary>Future of Ideas, The (Lessig)
</primary></indexterm>
7962 <indexterm><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary></indexterm>
7964 Finally (and most embarrassingly), here are the permissions for the
7965 original e-book version of my last book,
<citetitle>The Future of
7968 <!-- PAGE BREAK 162 -->
7969 <figure id=
"fig-1631">
7970 <title>List of the permissions for
<quote>The Future of Ideas
</quote>.
</title>
7971 <graphic fileref=
"images/1631.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
7974 No copying, no printing, and don't you dare try to listen to this book!
7977 Now, the Adobe eBook Reader calls these controls
7978 <quote>permissions
</quote>— as if the publisher has the power to control how
7979 you use these works. For works under copyright, the copyright owner
7980 certainly does have the power
—up to the limits of the copyright
7981 law. But for work not under copyright, there is no such copyright
7982 power.
<footnote><para>
7984 In principle, a contract might impose a requirement on me. I might,
7985 for example, buy a book from you that includes a contract that says I
7986 will read it only three times, or that I promise to read it three
7987 times. But that obligation (and the limits for creating that
7988 obligation) would come from the contract, not from copyright law, and
7989 the obligations of contract would not necessarily pass to anyone who
7990 subsequently acquired the book.
7992 When my e-book of
<citetitle>Middlemarch
</citetitle> says I have the
7993 permission to copy only ten text selections into the memory every ten
7994 days, what that really means is that the eBook Reader has enabled the
7995 publisher to control how I use the book on my computer, far beyond the
7996 control that the law would enable.
7999 The control comes instead from the code
—from the technology
8000 within which the e-book
<quote>lives.
</quote> Though the e-book says that these are
8001 permissions, they are not the sort of
<quote>permissions
</quote> that most of us
8002 deal with. When a teenager gets
<quote>permission
</quote> to stay out till
8003 midnight, she knows (unless she's Cinderella) that she can stay out
8004 till
2 A.M., but will suffer a punishment if she's caught. But when
8005 the Adobe eBook Reader says I have the permission to make ten copies
8006 of the text into the computer's memory, that means that after I've
8007 made ten copies, the computer will not make any more. The same with
8008 the printing restrictions: After ten pages, the eBook Reader will not
8009 print any more pages. It's the same with the silly restriction that
8010 says that you can't use the Read Aloud button to read my book
8011 aloud
—it's not that the company will sue you if you do; instead,
8012 if you push the Read Aloud button with my book, the machine simply
8015 <indexterm><primary>Marx Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
8016 <indexterm><primary>Warner Brothers
</primary></indexterm>
8018 <!-- PAGE BREAK 163 -->
8019 These are
<emphasis>controls
</emphasis>, not permissions. Imagine a
8020 world where the Marx Brothers sold word processing software that, when
8021 you tried to type
<quote>Warner Brothers,
</quote> erased
<quote>Brothers
</quote> from the
8025 This is the future of copyright law: not so much copyright
8026 <emphasis>law
</emphasis> as copyright
<emphasis>code
</emphasis>. The
8027 controls over access to content will not be controls that are ratified
8028 by courts; the controls over access to content will be controls that
8029 are coded by programmers. And whereas the controls that are built into
8030 the law are always to be checked by a judge, the controls that are
8031 built into the technology have no similar built-in check.
8034 How significant is this? Isn't it always possible to get around the
8035 controls built into the technology? Software used to be sold with
8036 technologies that limited the ability of users to copy the software,
8037 but those were trivial protections to defeat. Why won't it be trivial
8038 to defeat these protections as well?
8041 We've only scratched the surface of this story. Return to the Adobe
8044 <indexterm id='idxalicesadventuresinwonderlandcarroll' class='startofrange'
><primary>Alice's Adventures in Wonderland (Carroll)
</primary></indexterm>
8045 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainebookrestrictionson2' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>e-book restrictions on
</secondary></indexterm>
8047 Early in the life of the Adobe eBook Reader, Adobe suffered a public
8048 relations nightmare. Among the books that you could download for free
8049 on the Adobe site was a copy of
<citetitle>Alice's Adventures in
8050 Wonderland
</citetitle>. This wonderful book is in the public
8051 domain. Yet when you clicked on Permissions for that book, you got the
8054 <figure id=
"fig-1641">
8055 <title>List of the permissions for
<quote>Alice's Adventures in
8056 Wonderland
</quote>.
</title>
8057 <graphic fileref=
"images/1641.png" align=
"center" width=
"50%"></graphic>
8059 <!-- PAGE BREAK 164-->
8061 Here was a public domain children's book that you were not allowed to
8062 copy, not allowed to lend, not allowed to give, and, as the
8063 <quote>permissions
</quote> indicated, not allowed to
<quote>read aloud
</quote>!
8066 The public relations nightmare attached to that final permission.
8067 For the text did not say that you were not permitted to use the Read
8068 Aloud button; it said you did not have the permission to read the book
8069 aloud. That led some people to think that Adobe was restricting the
8070 right of parents, for example, to read the book to their children, which
8071 seemed, to say the least, absurd.
8074 Adobe responded quickly that it was absurd to think that it was trying
8075 to restrict the right to read a book aloud. Obviously it was only
8076 restricting the ability to use the Read Aloud button to have the book
8077 read aloud. But the question Adobe never did answer is this: Would
8078 Adobe thus agree that a consumer was free to use software to hack
8079 around the restrictions built into the eBook Reader? If some company
8080 (call it Elcomsoft) developed a program to disable the technological
8081 protection built into an Adobe eBook so that a blind person, say,
8082 could use a computer to read the book aloud, would Adobe agree that
8083 such a use of an eBook Reader was fair? Adobe didn't answer because
8084 the answer, however absurd it might seem, is no.
8086 <indexterm startref='idxalicesadventuresinwonderlandcarroll' class='endofrange'
/>
8087 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainebookrestrictionson2' class='endofrange'
/>
8089 The point is not to blame Adobe. Indeed, Adobe is among the most
8090 innovative companies developing strategies to balance open access to
8091 content with incentives for companies to innovate. But Adobe's
8092 technology enables control, and Adobe has an incentive to defend this
8093 control. That incentive is understandable, yet what it creates is
8096 <indexterm startref='idxadobeebookreader' class='endofrange'
/>
8097 <indexterm startref='idxbooksoninternet2' class='endofrange'
/>
8099 To see the point in a particularly absurd context, consider a favorite
8100 story of mine that makes the same point.
8102 <indexterm id='idxaibo1' class='startofrange'
><primary>Aibo robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8103 <indexterm id='idxroboticdog1' class='startofrange'
><primary>robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8104 <indexterm id='idxsonyaibo1' class='startofrange'
><primary>Sony
</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by
</secondary></indexterm>
8106 Consider the robotic dog made by Sony named
<quote>Aibo.
</quote> The Aibo
8107 learns tricks, cuddles, and follows you around. It eats only electricity
8108 and that doesn't leave that much of a mess (at least in your house).
8111 The Aibo is expensive and popular. Fans from around the world
8112 have set up clubs to trade stories. One fan in particular set up a Web
8113 site to enable information about the Aibo dog to be shared. This fan set
8114 <!-- PAGE BREAK 165-->
8115 up aibopet.com (and aibohack.com, but that resolves to the same site),
8116 and on that site he provided information about how to teach an Aibo
8117 to do tricks in addition to the ones Sony had taught it.
8120 <quote>Teach
</quote> here has a special meaning. Aibos are just cute computers.
8121 You teach a computer how to do something by programming it
8122 differently. So to say that aibopet.com was giving information about
8123 how to teach the dog to do new tricks is just to say that aibopet.com
8124 was giving information to users of the Aibo pet about how to hack
8125 their computer
<quote>dog
</quote> to make it do new tricks (thus, aibohack.com).
8127 <indexterm><primary>hacks
</primary></indexterm>
8129 If you're not a programmer or don't know many programmers, the word
8130 <citetitle>hack
</citetitle> has a particularly unfriendly
8131 connotation. Nonprogrammers hack bushes or weeds. Nonprogrammers in
8132 horror movies do even worse. But to programmers, or coders, as I call
8133 them,
<citetitle>hack
</citetitle> is a much more positive
8134 term.
<citetitle>Hack
</citetitle> just means code that enables the
8135 program to do something it wasn't originally intended or enabled to
8136 do. If you buy a new printer for an old computer, you might find the
8137 old computer doesn't run, or
<quote>drive,
</quote> the printer. If you discovered
8138 that, you'd later be happy to discover a hack on the Net by someone
8139 who has written a driver to enable the computer to drive the printer
8143 Some hacks are easy. Some are unbelievably hard. Hackers as a
8144 community like to challenge themselves and others with increasingly
8145 difficult tasks. There's a certain respect that goes with the talent to hack
8146 well. There's a well-deserved respect that goes with the talent to hack
8150 The Aibo fan was displaying a bit of both when he hacked the program
8151 and offered to the world a bit of code that would enable the Aibo to
8152 dance jazz. The dog wasn't programmed to dance jazz. It was a clever
8153 bit of tinkering that turned the dog into a more talented creature
8154 than Sony had built.
8156 <indexterm startref='idxsonyaibo1' class='endofrange'
/>
8157 <indexterm startref='idxroboticdog1' class='endofrange'
/>
8158 <indexterm startref='idxaibo1' class='endofrange'
/>
8160 I've told this story in many contexts, both inside and outside the
8161 United States. Once I was asked by a puzzled member of the audience,
8162 is it permissible for a dog to dance jazz in the United States? We
8163 forget that stories about the backcountry still flow across much of
8166 <!-- PAGE BREAK 166 -->
8167 world. So let's just be clear before we continue: It's not a crime
8168 anywhere (anymore) to dance jazz. Nor is it a crime to teach your dog
8169 to dance jazz. Nor should it be a crime (though we don't have a lot to
8170 go on here) to teach your robot dog to dance jazz. Dancing jazz is a
8171 completely legal activity. One imagines that the owner of aibopet.com
8172 thought,
<emphasis>What possible problem could there be with teaching
8173 a robot dog to dance?
</emphasis>
8175 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>government case against
</secondary></indexterm>
8177 Let's put the dog to sleep for a minute, and turn to a pony show
—
8178 not literally a pony show, but rather a paper that a Princeton academic
8179 named Ed Felten prepared for a conference. This Princeton academic
8180 is well known and respected. He was hired by the government in the
8181 Microsoft case to test Microsoft's claims about what could and could
8182 not be done with its own code. In that trial, he demonstrated both his
8183 brilliance and his coolness. Under heavy badgering by Microsoft
8184 lawyers, Ed Felten stood his ground. He was not about to be bullied
8185 into being silent about something he knew very well.
8188 But Felten's bravery was really tested in April
2001.
<footnote><para>
8190 See Pamela Samuelson,
<quote>Anticircumvention Rules: Threat to Science,
</quote>
8191 <citetitle>Science
</citetitle> 293 (
2001):
2028; Brendan I. Koerner,
<quote>Play Dead: Sony Muzzles
8192 the Techies Who Teach a Robot Dog New Tricks,
</quote> <citetitle>American Prospect
</citetitle>,
8193 January
2002;
<quote>Court Dismisses Computer Scientists' Challenge to
8194 DMCA,
</quote> <citetitle>Intellectual Property Litigation Reporter
</citetitle>,
11 December
2001; Bill
8195 Holland,
<quote>Copyright Act Raising Free-Speech Concerns,
</quote> <citetitle>Billboard
</citetitle>,
8196 May
2001; Janelle Brown,
<quote>Is the RIAA Running Scared?
</quote> Salon.com,
8197 April
2001; Electronic Frontier Foundation,
<quote>Frequently Asked
8198 Questions about
<citetitle>Felten and USENIX
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>RIAA
</citetitle> Legal Case,
</quote> available at
8199 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
27</ulink>.
8200 <indexterm><primary>Electronic Frontier Foundation
</primary></indexterm>
8202 He and a group of colleagues were working on a paper to be submitted
8203 at conference. The paper was intended to describe the weakness in an
8204 encryption system being developed by the Secure Digital Music
8205 Initiative as a technique to control the distribution of music.
8208 The SDMI coalition had as its goal a technology to enable content
8209 owners to exercise much better control over their content than the
8210 Internet, as it originally stood, granted them. Using encryption, SDMI
8211 hoped to develop a standard that would allow the content owner to say
8212 <quote>this music cannot be copied,
</quote> and have a computer respect that
8213 command. The technology was to be part of a
<quote>trusted system
</quote> of
8214 control that would get content owners to trust the system of the
8218 When SDMI thought it was close to a standard, it set up a competition.
8219 In exchange for providing contestants with the code to an
8220 SDMI-encrypted bit of content, contestants were to try to crack it
8221 and, if they did, report the problems to the consortium.
8224 <!-- PAGE BREAK 167 -->
8225 Felten and his team figured out the encryption system quickly. He and
8226 the team saw the weakness of this system as a type: Many encryption
8227 systems would suffer the same weakness, and Felten and his team
8228 thought it worthwhile to point this out to those who study encryption.
8231 Let's review just what Felten was doing. Again, this is the United
8232 States. We have a principle of free speech. We have this principle not
8233 just because it is the law, but also because it is a really great
8234 idea. A strongly protected tradition of free speech is likely to
8235 encourage a wide range of criticism. That criticism is likely, in
8236 turn, to improve the systems or people or ideas criticized.
8239 What Felten and his colleagues were doing was publishing a paper
8240 describing the weakness in a technology. They were not spreading free
8241 music, or building and deploying this technology. The paper was an
8242 academic essay, unintelligible to most people. But it clearly showed the
8243 weakness in the SDMI system, and why SDMI would not, as presently
8244 constituted, succeed.
8246 <indexterm id='idxaibo2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Aibo robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8247 <indexterm id='idxroboticdog2' class='startofrange'
><primary>robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8248 <indexterm id='idxsonyaibo2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Sony
</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by
</secondary></indexterm>
8250 What links these two, aibopet.com and Felten, is the letters they
8251 then received. Aibopet.com received a letter from Sony about the
8252 aibopet.com hack. Though a jazz-dancing dog is perfectly legal, Sony
8257 Your site contains information providing the means to circumvent
8258 AIBO-ware's copy protection protocol constituting a violation of the
8259 anti-circumvention provisions of the Digital Millennium Copyright Act.
8262 <indexterm startref='idxsonyaibo2' class='endofrange'
/>
8263 <indexterm startref='idxroboticdog2' class='endofrange'
/>
8264 <indexterm startref='idxaibo2' class='endofrange'
/>
8266 And though an academic paper describing the weakness in a system
8267 of encryption should also be perfectly legal, Felten received a letter
8268 from an RIAA lawyer that read:
8272 Any disclosure of information gained from participating in the
8273 <!-- PAGE BREAK 168 -->
8274 Public Challenge would be outside the scope of activities permitted by
8275 the Agreement and could subject you and your research team to actions
8276 under the Digital Millennium Copyright Act (
<quote>DMCA
</quote>).
8280 In both cases, this weirdly Orwellian law was invoked to control the
8281 spread of information. The Digital Millennium Copyright Act made
8282 spreading such information an offense.
8285 The DMCA was enacted as a response to copyright owners' first fear
8286 about cyberspace. The fear was that copyright control was effectively
8287 dead; the response was to find technologies that might compensate.
8288 These new technologies would be copyright protection
8289 technologies
— technologies to control the replication and
8290 distribution of copyrighted material. They were designed as
8291 <emphasis>code
</emphasis> to modify the original
8292 <emphasis>code
</emphasis> of the Internet, to reestablish some
8293 protection for copyright owners.
8296 The DMCA was a bit of law intended to back up the protection of this
8297 code designed to protect copyrighted material. It was, we could say,
8298 <emphasis>legal code
</emphasis> intended to buttress
8299 <emphasis>software code
</emphasis> which itself was intended to
8300 support the
<emphasis>legal code of copyright
</emphasis>.
8303 But the DMCA was not designed merely to protect copyrighted works to
8304 the extent copyright law protected them. Its protection, that is, did
8305 not end at the line that copyright law drew. The DMCA regulated
8306 devices that were designed to circumvent copyright protection
8307 measures. It was designed to ban those devices, whether or not the use
8308 of the copyrighted material made possible by that circumvention would
8309 have been a copyright violation.
8311 <indexterm><primary>Aibo robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8312 <indexterm><primary>robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8313 <indexterm><primary>Sony
</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by
</secondary></indexterm>
8315 Aibopet.com and Felten make the point. The Aibo hack circumvented a
8316 copyright protection system for the purpose of enabling the dog to
8317 dance jazz. That enablement no doubt involved the use of copyrighted
8318 material. But as aibopet.com's site was noncommercial, and the use did
8319 not enable subsequent copyright infringements, there's no doubt that
8320 aibopet.com's hack was fair use of Sony's copyrighted material. Yet
8321 fair use is not a defense to the DMCA. The question is not whether the
8322 <!-- PAGE BREAK 169 -->
8323 use of the copyrighted material was a copyright violation. The question
8324 is whether a copyright protection system was circumvented.
8327 The threat against Felten was more attenuated, but it followed the
8328 same line of reasoning. By publishing a paper describing how a
8329 copyright protection system could be circumvented, the RIAA lawyer
8330 suggested, Felten himself was distributing a circumvention technology.
8331 Thus, even though he was not himself infringing anyone's copyright,
8332 his academic paper was enabling others to infringe others' copyright.
8334 <indexterm><primary>Rogers, Fred
</primary></indexterm>
8335 <indexterm id='idxcassettevcrs2' class='startofrange'
><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
8337 The bizarreness of these arguments is captured in a cartoon drawn in
8338 1981 by Paul Conrad. At that time, a court in California had held that
8339 the VCR could be banned because it was a copyright-infringing
8340 technology: It enabled consumers to copy films without the permission
8341 of the copyright owner. No doubt there were uses of the technology
8342 that were legal: Fred Rogers, aka
<quote><citetitle>Mr. Rogers
</citetitle>,
</quote>
8343 for example, had testified in that case that he wanted people to feel
8344 free to tape Mr. Rogers' Neighborhood.
8345 <indexterm><primary>Conrad, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
8349 Some public stations, as well as commercial stations, program the
8350 <quote>Neighborhood
</quote> at hours when some children cannot use it. I think that
8351 it's a real service to families to be able to record such programs and
8352 show them at appropriate times. I have always felt that with the
8353 advent of all of this new technology that allows people to tape the
8354 <quote>Neighborhood
</quote> off-the-air, and I'm speaking for the
<quote>Neighborhood
</quote>
8355 because that's what I produce, that they then become much more active
8356 in the programming of their family's television life. Very frankly, I
8357 am opposed to people being programmed by others. My whole approach in
8358 broadcasting has always been
<quote>You are an important person just the way
8359 you are. You can make healthy decisions.
</quote> Maybe I'm going on too long,
8360 but I just feel that anything that allows a person to be more active
8361 in the control of his or her life, in a healthy way, is
8362 important.
<footnote><para>
8364 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
8365 <citetitle>Sony Corporation of America
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Universal City Studios, Inc
</citetitle>.,
464 U.S.
417,
8366 455 fn.
27 (
1984). Rogers never changed his view about the VCR. See
8367 James Lardner,
<citetitle>Fast Forward: Hollywood, the Japanese, and the Onslaught of
8368 the VCR
</citetitle> (New York: W. W. Norton,
1987),
270–71.
8369 <indexterm><primary>Rogers, Fred
</primary></indexterm>
8374 <!-- PAGE BREAK 170 -->
8375 Even though there were uses that were legal, because there were
8376 some uses that were illegal, the court held the companies producing
8377 the VCR responsible.
8380 This led Conrad to draw the cartoon below, which we can adopt to
8382 <indexterm><primary>Conrad, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
8385 No argument I have can top this picture, but let me try to get close.
8388 The anticircumvention provisions of the DMCA target copyright
8389 circumvention technologies. Circumvention technologies can be used for
8390 different ends. They can be used, for example, to enable massive
8391 pirating of copyrighted material
—a bad end. Or they can be used
8392 to enable the use of particular copyrighted materials in ways that
8393 would be considered fair use
—a good end.
8395 <indexterm id='idxhandguns' class='startofrange'
><primary>handguns
</primary></indexterm>
8397 A handgun can be used to shoot a police officer or a child. Most
8398 <!-- PAGE BREAK 171 -->
8399 would agree such a use is bad. Or a handgun can be used for target
8400 practice or to protect against an intruder. At least some would say that
8401 such a use would be good. It, too, is a technology that has both good
8404 <figure id=
"fig-1711-vcr-handgun-cartoonfig">
8405 <title>VCR/handgun cartoon.
</title>
8406 <graphic fileref=
"images/1711.png" align=
"center" width=
"70%"></graphic>
8408 <indexterm><primary>Conrad, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
8410 The obvious point of Conrad's cartoon is the weirdness of a world
8411 where guns are legal, despite the harm they can do, while VCRs (and
8412 circumvention technologies) are illegal. Flash:
<emphasis>No one ever
8413 died from copyright circumvention
</emphasis>. Yet the law bans circumvention
8414 technologies absolutely, despite the potential that they might do some
8415 good, but permits guns, despite the obvious and tragic harm they do.
8417 <indexterm startref='idxhandguns' class='endofrange'
/>
8418 <indexterm startref='idxcassettevcrs2' class='endofrange'
/>
8419 <indexterm><primary>Aibo robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8420 <indexterm><primary>robotic dog
</primary></indexterm>
8421 <indexterm><primary>Sony
</primary><secondary>Aibo robotic dog produced by
</secondary></indexterm>
8423 The Aibo and RIAA examples demonstrate how copyright owners are
8424 changing the balance that copyright law grants. Using code, copyright
8425 owners restrict fair use; using the DMCA, they punish those who would
8426 attempt to evade the restrictions on fair use that they impose through
8427 code. Technology becomes a means by which fair use can be erased; the
8428 law of the DMCA backs up that erasing.
8431 This is how
<emphasis>code
</emphasis> becomes
8432 <emphasis>law
</emphasis>. The controls built into the technology of
8433 copy and access protection become rules the violation of which is also
8434 a violation of the law. In this way, the code extends the
8435 law
—increasing its regulation, even if the subject it regulates
8436 (activities that would otherwise plainly constitute fair use) is
8437 beyond the reach of the law. Code becomes law; code extends the law;
8438 code thus extends the control that copyright owners effect
—at
8439 least for those copyright holders with the lawyers who can write the
8440 nasty letters that Felten and aibopet.com received.
8443 There is one final aspect of the interaction between architecture and
8444 law that contributes to the force of copyright's regulation. This is
8445 the ease with which infringements of the law can be detected. For
8446 contrary to the rhetoric common at the birth of cyberspace that on the
8447 Internet, no one knows you're a dog, increasingly, given changing
8448 technologies deployed on the Internet, it is easy to find the dog who
8449 committed a legal wrong. The technologies of the Internet are open to
8450 snoops as well as sharers, and the snoops are increasingly good at
8451 tracking down the identity of those who violate the rules.
8455 <!-- PAGE BREAK 172 -->
8456 For example, imagine you were part of a
<citetitle>Star Trek
</citetitle> fan club. You
8457 gathered every month to share trivia, and maybe to enact a kind of fan
8458 fiction about the show. One person would play Spock, another, Captain
8459 Kirk. The characters would begin with a plot from a real story, then
8460 simply continue it.
<footnote><para>
8462 For an early and prescient analysis, see Rebecca Tushnet,
<quote>Legal Fictions,
8463 Copyright, Fan Fiction, and a New Common Law,
</quote> <citetitle>Loyola of Los Angeles
8464 Entertainment Law Journal
</citetitle> 17 (
1997):
651.
8468 Before the Internet, this was, in effect, a totally unregulated
8469 activity. No matter what happened inside your club room, you would
8470 never be interfered with by the copyright police. You were free in
8471 that space to do as you wished with this part of our culture. You were
8472 allowed to build on it as you wished without fear of legal control.
8474 <indexterm><primary>bots
</primary></indexterm>
8476 But if you moved your club onto the Internet, and made it generally
8477 available for others to join, the story would be very different. Bots
8478 scouring the Net for trademark and copyright infringement would
8479 quickly find your site. Your posting of fan fiction, depending upon
8480 the ownership of the series that you're depicting, could well inspire
8481 a lawyer's threat. And ignoring the lawyer's threat would be extremely
8482 costly indeed. The law of copyright is extremely efficient. The
8483 penalties are severe, and the process is quick.
8486 This change in the effective force of the law is caused by a change
8487 in the ease with which the law can be enforced. That change too shifts
8488 the law's balance radically. It is as if your car transmitted the speed at
8489 which you traveled at every moment that you drove; that would be just
8490 one step before the state started issuing tickets based upon the data you
8491 transmitted. That is, in effect, what is happening here.
8494 <section id=
"marketconcentration">
8495 <title>Market: Concentration
</title>
8497 So copyright's duration has increased dramatically
—tripled in
8498 the past thirty years. And copyright's scope has increased as
8499 well
—from regulating only publishers to now regulating just
8500 about everyone. And copyright's reach has changed, as every action
8501 becomes a copy and hence presumptively regulated. And as technologists
8503 <!-- PAGE BREAK 173 -->
8504 to control the use of content, and as copyright is increasingly
8505 enforced through technology, copyright's force changes, too. Misuse is
8506 easier to find and easier to control. This regulation of the creative
8507 process, which began as a tiny regulation governing a tiny part of the
8508 market for creative work, has become the single most important
8509 regulator of creativity there is. It is a massive expansion in the
8510 scope of the government's control over innovation and creativity; it
8511 would be totally unrecognizable to those who gave birth to copyright's
8515 Still, in my view, all of these changes would not matter much if it
8516 weren't for one more change that we must also consider. This is a
8517 change that is in some sense the most familiar, though its significance
8518 and scope are not well understood. It is the one that creates precisely the
8519 reason to be concerned about all the other changes I have described.
8522 This is the change in the concentration and integration of the media.
8523 In the past twenty years, the nature of media ownership has undergone
8524 a radical alteration, caused by changes in legal rules governing the
8525 media. Before this change happened, the different forms of media were
8526 owned by separate media companies. Now, the media is increasingly
8527 owned by only a few companies. Indeed, after the changes that the FCC
8528 announced in June
2003, most expect that within a few years, we will
8529 live in a world where just three companies control more than
85 percent
8533 These changes are of two sorts: the scope of concentration, and its
8536 <indexterm><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
8537 <indexterm><primary>BMG
</primary></indexterm>
8538 <indexterm><primary>EMI
</primary></indexterm>
8539 <indexterm><primary>McCain, John
</primary></indexterm>
8540 <indexterm><primary>Universal Music Group
</primary></indexterm>
8541 <indexterm><primary>Warner Music Group
</primary></indexterm>
8543 Changes in scope are the easier ones to describe. As Senator John
8544 McCain summarized the data produced in the FCC's review of media
8545 ownership,
<quote>five companies control
85 percent of our media sources.
</quote><footnote><para>
8547 FCC Oversight: Hearing Before the Senate Commerce, Science and
8548 Transportation Committee,
108th Cong.,
1st sess. (
22 May
2003)
8549 (statement of Senator John McCain).
</para></footnote>
8550 The five recording labels of Universal Music Group, BMG, Sony Music
8551 Entertainment, Warner Music Group, and EMI control
84.8 percent of the
8552 U.S. music market.
<footnote><para>
8554 Lynette Holloway,
<quote>Despite a Marketing Blitz, CD Sales Continue to
8555 Slide,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
23 December
2002.
8557 The
<quote>five largest cable companies pipe
8558 programming to
74 percent of the cable subscribers nationwide.
</quote><footnote><para>
8560 Molly Ivins,
<quote>Media Consolidation Must Be Stopped,
</quote> <citetitle>Charleston Gazette
</citetitle>,
8565 The story with radio is even more dramatic. Before deregulation,
8566 the nation's largest radio broadcasting conglomerate owned fewer than
8567 <!-- PAGE BREAK 174 -->
8568 seventy-five stations. Today
<emphasis>one
</emphasis> company owns
8569 more than
1,
200 stations. During that period of consolidation, the
8570 total number of radio owners dropped by
34 percent. Today, in most
8571 markets, the two largest broadcasters control
74 percent of that
8572 market's revenues. Overall, just four companies control
90 percent of
8573 the nation's radio advertising revenues.
8575 <indexterm><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
8577 Newspaper ownership is becoming more concentrated as well. Today,
8578 there are six hundred fewer daily newspapers in the United States than
8579 there were eighty years ago, and ten companies control half of the
8580 nation's circulation. There are twenty major newspaper publishers in
8581 the United States. The top ten film studios receive
99 percent of all
8582 film revenue. The ten largest cable companies account for
85 percent
8583 of all cable revenue. This is a market far from the free press the
8584 framers sought to protect. Indeed, it is a market that is quite well
8585 protected
— by the market.
8587 <indexterm><primary>Fallows, James
</primary></indexterm>
8589 Concentration in size alone is one thing. The more invidious
8590 change is in the nature of that concentration. As author James Fallows
8591 put it in a recent article about Rupert Murdoch,
8595 Murdoch's companies now constitute a production system
8596 unmatched in its integration. They supply content
—Fox movies
8597 … Fox TV shows
… Fox-controlled sports broadcasts, plus
8598 newspapers and books. They sell the content to the public and to
8599 advertisers
—in newspapers, on the broadcast network, on the
8600 cable channels. And they operate the physical distribution system
8601 through which the content reaches the customers. Murdoch's satellite
8602 systems now distribute News Corp. content in Europe and Asia; if
8603 Murdoch becomes DirecTV's largest single owner, that system will serve
8604 the same function in the United States.
<footnote><para>
8606 James Fallows,
<quote>The Age of Murdoch,
</quote> <citetitle>Atlantic Monthly
</citetitle> (September
8608 <indexterm><primary>Fallows, James
</primary></indexterm>
8613 The pattern with Murdoch is the pattern of modern media. Not
8614 just large companies owning many radio stations, but a few companies
8615 owning as many outlets of media as possible. A picture describes this
8616 pattern better than a thousand words could do:
8618 <figure id=
"fig-1761-pattern-modern-media-ownership">
8619 <title>Pattern of modern media ownership.
</title>
8620 <graphic fileref=
"images/1761.png" align=
"center" width=
"90%"></graphic>
8623 <!-- PAGE BREAK 175 -->
8624 Does this concentration matter? Will it affect what is made, or
8625 what is distributed? Or is it merely a more efficient way to produce and
8629 My view was that concentration wouldn't matter. I thought it was
8630 nothing more than a more efficient financial structure. But now, after
8631 reading and listening to a barrage of creators try to convince me to the
8632 contrary, I am beginning to change my mind.
8635 Here's a representative story that begins to suggest how this
8636 integration may matter.
8638 <indexterm><primary>Lear, Norman
</primary></indexterm>
8639 <indexterm><primary>ABC
</primary></indexterm>
8640 <indexterm><primary>All in the Family
</primary></indexterm>
8642 In
1969, Norman Lear created a pilot for
<citetitle>All in the Family
</citetitle>. He took
8643 the pilot to ABC. The network didn't like it. It was too edgy, they told
8644 Lear. Make it again. Lear made a second pilot, more edgy than the
8645 first. ABC was exasperated. You're missing the point, they told Lear.
8646 We wanted less edgy, not more.
8649 Rather than comply, Lear simply took the show elsewhere. CBS
8650 was happy to have the series; ABC could not stop Lear from walking.
8651 The copyrights that Lear held assured an independence from network
8652 control.
<footnote><para>
8654 Leonard Hill,
<quote>The Axis of Access,
</quote> remarks before Weidenbaum Center
8655 Forum,
<quote>Entertainment Economics: The Movie Industry,
</quote> St. Louis,
8656 Missouri,
3 April
2003 (transcript of prepared remarks available at
8657 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
28</ulink>;
8658 for the Lear story, not included in the prepared remarks, see
8659 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
29</ulink>).
8664 <!-- PAGE BREAK 176 -->
8665 The network did not control those copyrights because the law forbade
8666 the networks from controlling the content they syndicated. The law
8667 required a separation between the networks and the content producers;
8668 that separation would guarantee Lear freedom. And as late as
1992,
8669 because of these rules, the vast majority of prime time
8670 television
—75 percent of it
—was
<quote>independent
</quote> of the
8674 In
1994, the FCC abandoned the rules that required this independence.
8675 After that change, the networks quickly changed the balance. In
1985,
8676 there were twenty-five independent television production studios; in
8677 2002, only five independent television studios remained.
<quote>In
1992,
8678 only
15 percent of new series were produced for a network by a company
8679 it controlled. Last year, the percentage of shows produced by
8680 controlled companies more than quintupled to
77 percent.
</quote> <quote>In
1992,
16
8681 new series were produced independently of conglomerate control, last
8682 year there was one.
</quote><footnote><para>
8684 NewsCorp./DirecTV Merger and Media Consolidation: Hearings on Media
8685 Ownership Before the Senate Commerce Committee,
108th Cong.,
1st
8686 sess. (
2003) (testimony of Gene Kimmelman on behalf of Consumers Union
8687 and the Consumer Federation of America), available at
8688 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
30</ulink>. Kimmelman
8689 quotes Victoria Riskin, president of Writers Guild of America, West,
8690 in her Remarks at FCC En Banc Hearing, Richmond, Virginia,
27 February
8693 In
2002,
75 percent of prime time television was owned by the networks
8694 that ran it.
<quote>In the ten-year period between
1992 and
2002, the number
8695 of prime time television hours per week produced by network studios
8696 increased over
200%, whereas the number of prime time television hours
8697 per week produced by independent studios decreased
8698 63%.
</quote><footnote><para>
8703 <indexterm><primary>All in the Family
</primary></indexterm>
8705 Today, another Norman Lear with another
<citetitle>All in the Family
</citetitle> would
8706 find that he had the choice either to make the show less edgy or to be
8707 fired: The content of any show developed for a network is increasingly
8708 owned by the network.
8710 <indexterm><primary>Diller, Barry
</primary></indexterm>
8711 <indexterm><primary>Moyers, Bill
</primary></indexterm>
8713 While the number of channels has increased dramatically, the ownership
8714 of those channels has narrowed to an ever smaller and smaller few. As
8715 Barry Diller said to Bill Moyers,
8719 Well, if you have companies that produce, that finance, that air on
8720 their channel and then distribute worldwide everything that goes
8721 through their controlled distribution system, then what you get is
8722 fewer and fewer actual voices participating in the process. [We
8723 <!-- PAGE BREAK 177 -->
8724 u]sed to have dozens and dozens of thriving independent production
8725 companies producing television programs. Now you have less than a
8726 handful.
<footnote><para>
8728 <quote>Barry Diller Takes on Media Deregulation,
</quote> <citetitle>Now with Bill Moyers
</citetitle>, Bill
8729 Moyers,
25 April
2003, edited transcript available at
8730 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
31</ulink>.
8735 This narrowing has an effect on what is produced. The product of such
8736 large and concentrated networks is increasingly homogenous.
8737 Increasingly safe. Increasingly sterile. The product of news shows
8738 from networks like this is increasingly tailored to the message the
8739 network wants to convey. This is not the communist party, though from
8740 the inside, it must feel a bit like the communist party. No one can
8741 question without risk of consequence
—not necessarily banishment
8742 to Siberia, but punishment nonetheless. Independent, critical,
8743 different views are quashed. This is not the environment for a
8746 <indexterm><primary>Clark, Kim B.
</primary></indexterm>
8748 Economics itself offers a parallel that explains why this integration
8749 affects creativity. Clay Christensen has written about the
<quote>Innovator's
8750 Dilemma
</quote>: the fact that large traditional firms find it rational to ignore
8751 new, breakthrough technologies that compete with their core business.
8752 The same analysis could help explain why large, traditional media
8753 companies would find it rational to ignore new cultural trends.
<footnote><para>
8755 Clayton M. Christensen,
<citetitle>The Innovator's Dilemma: The
8756 Revolutionary National Bestseller that Changed the Way We Do Business
</citetitle>
8757 (Cambridge: Harvard Business School Press,
1997). Christensen
8758 acknowledges that the idea was first suggested by Dean Kim Clark. See
8759 Kim B. Clark,
<quote>The Interaction of Design Hierarchies and Market
8760 Concepts in Technological Evolution,
</quote> <citetitle>Research Policy
</citetitle> 14 (
1985):
8761 235–51. For a more recent study, see Richard Foster and Sarah
8762 Kaplan,
<citetitle>Creative Destruction: Why Companies That Are Built to Last
8763 Underperform the Market
—and How to Successfully Transform Them
</citetitle>
8764 (New York: Currency/Doubleday,
2001).
</para></footnote>
8766 Lumbering giants not only don't, but should not, sprint. Yet if the
8767 field is only open to the giants, there will be far too little
8769 <indexterm><primary>Christensen, Clayton M.
</primary></indexterm>
8772 I don't think we know enough about the economics of the media
8773 market to say with certainty what concentration and integration will
8774 do. The efficiencies are important, and the effect on culture is hard to
8778 But there is a quintessentially obvious example that does strongly
8779 suggest the concern.
8782 In addition to the copyright wars, we're in the middle of the drug
8783 wars. Government policy is strongly directed against the drug cartels;
8784 criminal and civil courts are filled with the consequences of this battle.
8787 Let me hereby disqualify myself from any possible appointment to
8788 any position in government by saying I believe this war is a profound
8789 mistake. I am not pro drugs. Indeed, I come from a family once
8791 <!-- PAGE BREAK 178 -->
8792 wrecked by drugs
—though the drugs that wrecked my family were
8793 all quite legal. I believe this war is a profound mistake because the
8794 collateral damage from it is so great as to make waging the war
8795 insane. When you add together the burdens on the criminal justice
8796 system, the desperation of generations of kids whose only real
8797 economic opportunities are as drug warriors, the queering of
8798 constitutional protections because of the constant surveillance this
8799 war requires, and, most profoundly, the total destruction of the legal
8800 systems of many South American nations because of the power of the
8801 local drug cartels, I find it impossible to believe that the marginal
8802 benefit in reduced drug consumption by Americans could possibly
8803 outweigh these costs.
8806 You may not be convinced. That's fine. We live in a democracy, and it
8807 is through votes that we are to choose policy. But to do that, we
8808 depend fundamentally upon the press to help inform Americans about
8811 <indexterm id='idxadvertising3' class='startofrange'
><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
8812 <indexterm id='idxcommercials' class='startofrange'
><primary>commercials
</primary></indexterm>
8813 <indexterm id='idxtelevisionadvertisingon' class='startofrange'
><primary>television
</primary><secondary>advertising on
</secondary></indexterm>
8814 <indexterm><primary>Nick and Norm anti-drug campaign
</primary></indexterm>
8816 Beginning in
1998, the Office of National Drug Control Policy launched
8817 a media campaign as part of the
<quote>war on drugs.
</quote> The campaign produced
8818 scores of short film clips about issues related to illegal drugs. In
8819 one series (the Nick and Norm series) two men are in a bar, discussing
8820 the idea of legalizing drugs as a way to avoid some of the collateral
8821 damage from the war. One advances an argument in favor of drug
8822 legalization. The other responds in a powerful and effective way
8823 against the argument of the first. In the end, the first guy changes
8824 his mind (hey, it's television). The plug at the end is a damning
8825 attack on the pro-legalization campaign.
8828 Fair enough. It's a good ad. Not terribly misleading. It delivers its
8829 message well. It's a fair and reasonable message.
8832 But let's say you think it is a wrong message, and you'd like to run a
8833 countercommercial. Say you want to run a series of ads that try to
8834 demonstrate the extraordinary collateral harm that comes from the drug
8838 Well, obviously, these ads cost lots of money. Assume you raise the
8839 <!-- PAGE BREAK 179 -->
8840 money. Assume a group of concerned citizens donates all the money in
8841 the world to help you get your message out. Can you be sure your
8842 message will be heard then?
8844 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>First Amendment to
</secondary></indexterm>
8845 <indexterm><primary>First Amendment
</primary></indexterm>
8846 <indexterm><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on television advertising bans
</secondary></indexterm>
8847 <indexterm><primary>television
</primary><secondary>controversy avoided by
</secondary></indexterm>
8849 No. You cannot. Television stations have a general policy of avoiding
8850 <quote>controversial
</quote> ads. Ads sponsored by the government are deemed
8851 uncontroversial; ads disagreeing with the government are
8852 controversial. This selectivity might be thought inconsistent with
8853 the First Amendment, but the Supreme Court has held that stations have
8854 the right to choose what they run. Thus, the major channels of
8855 commercial media will refuse one side of a crucial debate the
8856 opportunity to present its case. And the courts will defend the
8857 rights of the stations to be this biased.
<footnote><para>
8859 <indexterm><primary>ABC
</primary></indexterm>
8860 <indexterm><primary>Comcast
</primary></indexterm>
8861 <indexterm><primary>Marijuana Policy Project
</primary></indexterm>
8862 <indexterm><primary>NBC
</primary></indexterm>
8863 <indexterm><primary>WJOA
</primary></indexterm>
8864 <indexterm><primary>WRC
</primary></indexterm>
8865 <indexterm><primary>advertising
</primary></indexterm>
8866 The Marijuana Policy Project, in February
2003, sought to place ads
8867 that directly responded to the Nick and Norm series on stations within
8868 the Washington, D.C., area. Comcast rejected the ads as
<quote>against
8869 [their] policy.
</quote> The local NBC affiliate, WRC, rejected the ads
8870 without reviewing them. The local ABC affiliate, WJOA, originally
8871 agreed to run the ads and accepted payment to do so, but later decided
8872 not to run the ads and returned the collected fees. Interview with
8873 Neal Levine,
15 October
2003. These restrictions are, of course, not
8874 limited to drug policy. See, for example, Nat Ives,
<quote>On the
8875 Issue of an Iraq War, Advocacy Ads Meet with Rejection from TV
8876 Networks,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
13 March
8877 2003, C4. Outside of election-related air time there is very little
8878 that the FCC or the courts are willing to do to even the playing
8879 field. For a general overview, see Rhonda Brown,
<quote>Ad Hoc Access:
8880 The Regulation of Editorial Advertising on Television and
8881 Radio,
</quote> <citetitle>Yale Law and Policy Review
</citetitle> 6
8882 (
1988):
449–79, and for a more recent summary of the stance of
8883 the FCC and the courts, see
<citetitle>Radio-Television News Directors
8884 Association
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>FCC
</citetitle>,
184 F.
3d
872
8885 (D.C. Cir.
1999). Municipal authorities exercise the same authority as
8886 the networks. In a recent example from San Francisco, the San
8887 Francisco transit authority rejected an ad that criticized its Muni
8888 diesel buses. Phillip Matier and Andrew Ross,
<quote>Antidiesel Group
8889 Fuming After Muni Rejects Ad,
</quote> SFGate.com,
16 June
2003,
8890 available at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
8891 #
32</ulink>. The ground was that the criticism was
<quote>too
8892 controversial.
</quote>
8895 <indexterm startref='idxcommercials' class='endofrange'
/>
8896 <indexterm startref='idxtelevisionadvertisingon' class='endofrange'
/>
8898 I'd be happy to defend the networks' rights, as well
—if we lived
8899 in a media market that was truly diverse. But concentration in the
8900 media throws that condition into doubt. If a handful of companies
8901 control access to the media, and that handful of companies gets to
8902 decide which political positions it will allow to be promoted on its
8903 channels, then in an obvious and important way, concentration
8904 matters. You might like the positions the handful of companies
8905 selects. But you should not like a world in which a mere few get to
8906 decide which issues the rest of us get to know about.
8908 <indexterm startref='idxadvertising3' class='endofrange'
/>
8910 <section id=
"together">
8911 <title>Together
</title>
8913 There is something innocent and obvious about the claim of the
8914 copyright warriors that the government should
<quote>protect my property.
</quote>
8915 In the abstract, it is obviously true and, ordinarily, totally
8916 harmless. No sane sort who is not an anarchist could disagree.
8919 But when we see how dramatically this
<quote>property
</quote> has changed
—
8920 when we recognize how it might now interact with both technology and
8921 markets to mean that the effective constraint on the liberty to
8922 cultivate our culture is dramatically different
—the claim begins
8925 <!-- PAGE BREAK 180 -->
8926 less innocent and obvious. Given (
1) the power of technology to
8927 supplement the law's control, and (
2) the power of concentrated
8928 markets to weaken the opportunity for dissent, if strictly enforcing
8929 the massively expanded
<quote>property
</quote> rights granted by copyright
8930 fundamentally changes the freedom within this culture to cultivate and
8931 build upon our past, then we have to ask whether this property should
8935 Not starkly. Or absolutely. My point is not that we should abolish
8936 copyright or go back to the eighteenth century. That would be a total
8937 mistake, disastrous for the most important creative enterprises within
8941 But there is a space between zero and one, Internet culture
8942 notwithstanding. And these massive shifts in the effective power of
8943 copyright regulation, tied to increased concentration of the content
8944 industry and resting in the hands of technology that will increasingly
8945 enable control over the use of culture, should drive us to consider
8946 whether another adjustment is called for. Not an adjustment that
8947 increases copyright's power. Not an adjustment that increases its
8948 term. Rather, an adjustment to restore the balance that has
8949 traditionally defined copyright's regulation
—a weakening of that
8950 regulation, to strengthen creativity.
8953 Copyright law has not been a rock of Gibraltar. It's not a set of
8954 constant commitments that, for some mysterious reason, teenagers and
8955 geeks now flout. Instead, copyright power has grown dramatically in a
8956 short period of time, as the technologies of distribution and creation
8957 have changed and as lobbyists have pushed for more control by
8958 copyright holders. Changes in the past in response to changes in
8959 technology suggest that we may well need similar changes in the
8960 future. And these changes have to be
<emphasis>reductions
</emphasis>
8961 in the scope of copyright, in response to the extraordinary increase
8962 in control that technology and the market enable.
8965 For the single point that is lost in this war on pirates is a point that
8966 we see only after surveying the range of these changes. When you add
8967 <!-- PAGE BREAK 181 -->
8968 together the effect of changing law, concentrated markets, and
8969 changing technology, together they produce an astonishing conclusion:
8970 <emphasis>Never in our history have fewer had a legal right to control
8971 more of the development of our culture than now
</emphasis>.
8974 Not when copyrights were perpetual, for when copyrights were
8975 perpetual, they affected only that precise creative work. Not when
8976 only publishers had the tools to publish, for the market then was much
8977 more diverse. Not when there were only three television networks, for
8978 even then, newspapers, film studios, radio stations, and publishers
8979 were independent of the networks.
<emphasis>Never
</emphasis> has
8980 copyright protected such a wide range of rights, against as broad a
8981 range of actors, for a term that was remotely as long. This form of
8982 regulation
—a tiny regulation of a tiny part of the creative
8983 energy of a nation at the founding
—is now a massive regulation
8984 of the overall creative process. Law plus technology plus the market
8985 now interact to turn this historically benign regulation into the most
8986 significant regulation of culture that our free society has
8987 known.
<footnote><para>
8989 <indexterm><primary>Vaidhyanathan, Siva
</primary></indexterm>
8990 Siva Vaidhyanathan captures a similar point in his
<quote>four surrenders
</quote> of
8991 copyright law in the digital age. See Vaidhyanathan,
159–60.
8995 <emphasis role='strong'
>This has been
</emphasis> a long chapter. Its
8996 point can now be briefly stated.
8999 At the start of this book, I distinguished between commercial and
9000 noncommercial culture. In the course of this chapter, I have
9001 distinguished between copying a work and transforming it. We can now
9002 combine these two distinctions and draw a clear map of the changes
9003 that copyright law has undergone. In
1790, the law looked like this:
9006 <informaltable id=
"t2">
9007 <tgroup cols=
"3" align=
"left">
9011 <entry>PUBLISH
</entry>
9012 <entry>TRANSFORM
</entry>
9017 <entry>Commercial
</entry>
9018 <entry>©</entry>
9022 <entry>Noncommercial
</entry>
9031 The act of publishing a map, chart, and book was regulated by
9032 copyright law. Nothing else was. Transformations were free. And as
9033 copyright attached only with registration, and only those who intended
9035 <!-- PAGE BREAK 182 -->
9036 to benefit commercially would register, copying through publishing of
9037 noncommercial work was also free.
9040 By the end of the nineteenth century, the law had changed to this:
9043 <informaltable id=
"t3">
9044 <tgroup cols=
"3" align=
"left">
9048 <entry>PUBLISH
</entry>
9049 <entry>TRANSFORM
</entry>
9054 <entry>Commercial
</entry>
9055 <entry>©</entry>
9056 <entry>©</entry>
9059 <entry>Noncommercial
</entry>
9068 Derivative works were now regulated by copyright law
—if
9069 published, which again, given the economics of publishing at the time,
9070 means if offered commercially. But noncommercial publishing and
9071 transformation were still essentially free.
9074 In
1909 the law changed to regulate copies, not publishing, and after
9075 this change, the scope of the law was tied to technology. As the
9076 technology of copying became more prevalent, the reach of the law
9077 expanded. Thus by
1975, as photocopying machines became more common,
9078 we could say the law began to look like this:
9081 <informaltable id=
"t4">
9082 <tgroup cols=
"3" align=
"left">
9087 <entry>TRANSFORM
</entry>
9092 <entry>Commercial
</entry>
9093 <entry>©</entry>
9094 <entry>©</entry>
9097 <entry>Noncommercial
</entry>
9098 <entry>©/Free
</entry>
9106 The law was interpreted to reach noncommercial copying through, say,
9107 copy machines, but still much of copying outside of the commercial
9108 market remained free. But the consequence of the emergence of digital
9109 technologies, especially in the context of a digital network, means
9110 that the law now looks like this:
9113 <informaltable id=
"t5">
9114 <tgroup cols=
"3" align=
"left">
9119 <entry>TRANSFORM
</entry>
9124 <entry>Commercial
</entry>
9125 <entry>©</entry>
9126 <entry>©</entry>
9129 <entry>Noncommercial
</entry>
9130 <entry>©</entry>
9131 <entry>©</entry>
9138 Every realm is governed by copyright law, whereas before most
9139 creativity was not. The law now regulates the full range of
9141 <!-- PAGE BREAK 183 -->
9142 commercial or not, transformative or not
—with the same rules
9143 designed to regulate commercial publishers.
9146 Obviously, copyright law is not the enemy. The enemy is regulation
9147 that does no good. So the question that we should be asking just now
9148 is whether extending the regulations of copyright law into each of
9149 these domains actually does any good.
9152 I have no doubt that it does good in regulating commercial copying.
9153 But I also have no doubt that it does more harm than good when
9154 regulating (as it regulates just now) noncommercial copying and,
9155 especially, noncommercial transformation. And increasingly, for the
9156 reasons sketched especially in chapters
9157 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"recorders"/> and
9158 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"transformers"/>, one
9159 might well wonder whether it does more harm than good for commercial
9160 transformation. More commercial transformative work would be created
9161 if derivative rights were more sharply restricted.
9164 The issue is therefore not simply whether copyright is property. Of
9165 course copyright is a kind of
<quote>property,
</quote> and of course, as with any
9166 property, the state ought to protect it. But first impressions
9167 notwithstanding, historically, this property right (as with all
9168 property rights
<footnote><para>
9170 <indexterm><primary>legal realist movement
</primary></indexterm>
9171 It was the single most important contribution of the legal realist
9172 movement to demonstrate that all property rights are always crafted to
9173 balance public and private interests. See Thomas C. Grey,
<quote>The
9174 Disintegration of Property,
</quote> in
<citetitle>Nomos XXII: Property
</citetitle>, J. Roland
9175 Pennock and John W. Chapman, eds. (New York: New York University
9178 has been crafted to balance the important need to give authors and
9179 artists incentives with the equally important need to assure access to
9180 creative work. This balance has always been struck in light of new
9181 technologies. And for almost half of our tradition, the
<quote>copyright
</quote>
9182 did not control
<emphasis>at all
</emphasis> the freedom of others to
9183 build upon or transform a creative work. American culture was born
9184 free, and for almost
180 years our country consistently protected a
9185 vibrant and rich free culture.
9187 <indexterm><primary>archives, digital
</primary></indexterm>
9189 We achieved that free culture because our law respected important
9190 limits on the scope of the interests protected by
<quote>property.
</quote> The very
9191 birth of
<quote>copyright
</quote> as a statutory right recognized those limits, by
9192 granting copyright owners protection for a limited time only (the
9193 story of chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
9194 linkend=
"founders"/>). The tradition of
<quote>fair use
</quote> is
9195 animated by a similar concern that is increasingly under strain as the
9196 costs of exercising any fair use right become unavoidably high (the
9197 story of chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
9198 linkend=
"recorders"/>). Adding
9199 <!-- PAGE BREAK 184 -->
9200 statutory rights where markets might stifle innovation is another
9201 familiar limit on the property right that copyright is (chapter
<xref
9202 xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"transformers"/>). And
9203 granting archives and libraries a broad freedom to collect, claims of
9204 property notwithstanding, is a crucial part of guaranteeing the soul
9205 of a culture (chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
9206 linkend=
"collectors"/>). Free cultures, like free markets, are built
9207 with property. But the nature of the property that builds a free
9208 culture is very different from the extremist vision that dominates the
9212 Free culture is increasingly the casualty in this war on piracy. In
9213 response to a real, if not yet quantified, threat that the
9214 technologies of the Internet present to twentieth-century business
9215 models for producing and distributing culture, the law and technology
9216 are being transformed in a way that will undermine our tradition of
9217 free culture. The property right that is copyright is no longer the
9218 balanced right that it was, or was intended to be. The property right
9219 that is copyright has become unbalanced, tilted toward an extreme. The
9220 opportunity to create and transform becomes weakened in a world in
9221 which creation requires permission and creativity must check with a
9224 <!-- PAGE BREAK 185 -->
9228 <part id=
"c-puzzles">
9229 <title>PUZZLES
</title>
9231 <!-- PAGE BREAK 186 -->
9232 <chapter label=
"11" id=
"chimera">
9233 <title>CHAPTER ELEVEN: Chimera
</title>
9234 <indexterm id='idxchimera' class='startofrange'
><primary>chimeras
</primary></indexterm>
9235 <indexterm id='idxwells' class='startofrange'
><primary>Wells, H. G.
</primary></indexterm>
9236 <indexterm id='idxtcotb' class='startofrange'
><primary><quote>Country of the Blind, The
</quote> (Wells)
</primary></indexterm>
9239 <emphasis role='strong'
>In a well-known
</emphasis> short story by
9240 H. G. Wells, a mountain climber named Nunez trips (literally, down an
9241 ice slope) into an unknown and isolated valley in the Peruvian
9242 Andes.
<footnote><para>
9244 H. G. Wells,
<quote>The Country of the Blind
</quote> (
1904,
1911). See H. G. Wells,
9245 <citetitle>The Country of the Blind and Other Stories
</citetitle>, Michael Sherborne, ed. (New
9246 York: Oxford University Press,
1996).
9248 The valley is extraordinarily beautiful, with
<quote>sweet water, pasture,
9249 an even climate, slopes of rich brown soil with tangles of a shrub
9250 that bore an excellent fruit.
</quote> But the villagers are all blind. Nunez
9251 takes this as an opportunity.
<quote>In the Country of the Blind,
</quote> he tells
9252 himself,
<quote>the One-Eyed Man is King.
</quote> So he resolves to live with the
9253 villagers to explore life as a king.
9256 Things don't go quite as he planned. He tries to explain the idea of
9257 sight to the villagers. They don't understand. He tells them they are
9258 <quote>blind.
</quote> They don't have the word
<citetitle>blind
</citetitle>. They think he's just thick.
9259 Indeed, as they increasingly notice the things he can't do (hear the
9260 sound of grass being stepped on, for example), they increasingly try
9261 to control him. He, in turn, becomes increasingly frustrated.
<quote>`You
9262 don't understand,' he cried, in a voice that was meant to be great and
9263 resolute, and which broke. `You are blind and I can see. Leave me
9267 <!-- PAGE BREAK 187 -->
9268 The villagers don't leave him alone. Nor do they see (so to speak) the
9269 virtue of his special power. Not even the ultimate target of his
9270 affection, a young woman who to him seems
<quote>the most beautiful thing in
9271 the whole of creation,
</quote> understands the beauty of sight. Nunez's
9272 description of what he sees
<quote>seemed to her the most poetical of
9273 fancies, and she listened to his description of the stars and the
9274 mountains and her own sweet white-lit beauty as though it was a guilty
9275 indulgence.
</quote> <quote>She did not believe,
</quote> Wells tells us, and
<quote>she could
9276 only half understand, but she was mysteriously delighted.
</quote>
9279 When Nunez announces his desire to marry his
<quote>mysteriously delighted
</quote>
9280 love, the father and the village object.
<quote>You see, my dear,
</quote> her
9281 father instructs,
<quote>he's an idiot. He has delusions. He can't do
9282 anything right.
</quote> They take Nunez to the village doctor.
9285 After a careful examination, the doctor gives his opinion.
<quote>His brain
9286 is affected,
</quote> he reports.
9289 <quote>What affects it?
</quote> the father asks.
<quote>Those queer things that are
9290 called the eyes
… are diseased
… in such a way as to affect
9294 The doctor continues:
<quote>I think I may say with reasonable certainty
9295 that in order to cure him completely, all that we need to do is a
9296 simple and easy surgical operation
—namely, to remove these
9297 irritant bodies [the eyes].
</quote>
9300 <quote>Thank Heaven for science!
</quote> says the father to the doctor. They inform
9301 Nunez of this condition necessary for him to be allowed his bride.
9302 (You'll have to read the original to learn what happens in the end. I
9303 believe in free culture, but never in giving away the end of a story.)
9306 <emphasis role='strong'
>It sometimes
</emphasis> happens that the eggs
9307 of twins fuse in the mother's womb. That fusion produces a
9308 <quote>chimera.
</quote> A chimera is a single creature with two sets
9309 of DNA. The DNA in the blood, for example, might be different from the
9310 DNA of the skin. This possibility is an underused
9312 <!-- PAGE BREAK 188 -->
9313 plot for murder mysteries.
<quote>But the DNA shows with
100 percent
9314 certainty that she was not the person whose blood was at the
9315 scene.
…</quote>
9317 <indexterm startref='idxtcotb' class='endofrange'
/>
9318 <indexterm startref='idxwells'
class=
"endofrange"/>
9320 Before I had read about chimeras, I would have said they were
9321 impossible. A single person can't have two sets of DNA. The very idea
9322 of DNA is that it is the code of an individual. Yet in fact, not only
9323 can two individuals have the same set of DNA (identical twins), but
9324 one person can have two different sets of DNA (a chimera). Our
9325 understanding of a
<quote>person
</quote> should reflect this reality.
9328 The more I work to understand the current struggle over copyright and
9329 culture, which I've sometimes called unfairly, and sometimes not
9330 unfairly enough,
<quote>the copyright wars,
</quote> the more I think we're dealing
9331 with a chimera. For example, in the battle over the question
<quote>What is
9332 p2p file sharing?
</quote> both sides have it right, and both sides have it
9333 wrong. One side says,
<quote>File sharing is just like two kids taping each
9334 others' records
—the sort of thing we've been doing for the last
9335 thirty years without any question at all.
</quote> That's true, at least in
9336 part. When I tell my best friend to try out a new CD that I've bought,
9337 but rather than just send the CD, I point him to my p2p server, that
9338 is, in all relevant respects, just like what every executive in every
9339 recording company no doubt did as a kid: sharing music.
9342 But the description is also false in part. For when my p2p server is
9343 on a p2p network through which anyone can get access to my music, then
9344 sure, my friends can get access, but it stretches the meaning of
9345 <quote>friends
</quote> beyond recognition to say
<quote>my ten thousand best friends
</quote> can
9346 get access. Whether or not sharing my music with my best friend is
9347 what
<quote>we have always been allowed to do,
</quote> we have not always been
9348 allowed to share music with
<quote>our ten thousand best friends.
</quote>
9351 Likewise, when the other side says,
<quote>File sharing is just like walking
9352 into a Tower Records and taking a CD off the shelf and walking out
9353 with it,
</quote> that's true, at least in part. If, after Lyle Lovett
9354 (finally) releases a new album, rather than buying it, I go to Kazaa
9355 and find a free copy to take, that is very much like stealing a copy
9357 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle
</primary></indexterm>
9361 <!-- PAGE BREAK 189 -->
9362 But it is not quite stealing from Tower. After all, when I take a CD
9363 from Tower Records, Tower has one less CD to sell. And when I take a
9364 CD from Tower Records, I get a bit of plastic and a cover, and
9365 something to show on my shelves. (And, while we're at it, we could
9366 also note that when I take a CD from Tower Records, the maximum fine
9367 that might be imposed on me, under California law, at least, is
9368 $
1,
000. According to the RIAA, by contrast, if I download a ten-song
9369 CD, I'm liable for $
1,
500,
000 in damages.)
9372 The point is not that it is as neither side describes. The point is
9373 that it is both
—both as the RIAA describes it and as Kazaa
9374 describes it. It is a chimera. And rather than simply denying what the
9375 other side asserts, we need to begin to think about how we should
9376 respond to this chimera. What rules should govern it?
9379 We could respond by simply pretending that it is not a chimera. We
9380 could, with the RIAA, decide that every act of file sharing should be
9381 a felony. We could prosecute families for millions of dollars in
9382 damages just because file sharing occurred on a family computer. And
9383 we can get universities to monitor all computer traffic to make sure
9384 that no computer is used to commit this crime. These responses might
9385 be extreme, but each of them has either been proposed or actually
9386 implemented.
<footnote><para>
9388 <indexterm><primary>ISPs (Internet service providers), user identities revealed by
</primary></indexterm>
9389 For an excellent summary, see the report prepared by GartnerG2 and the
9390 Berkman Center for Internet and Society at Harvard Law School,
9391 <quote>Copyright and Digital Media in a Post-Napster World,
</quote> 27 June
2003,
9393 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
9394 #
33</ulink>. Reps. John Conyers Jr. (D-Mich.) and Howard L. Berman
9395 (D-Calif.) have introduced a bill that would treat unauthorized
9396 on-line copying as a felony offense with punishments ranging as high
9397 as five years imprisonment; see Jon Healey,
<quote>House Bill Aims to Up
9398 Stakes on Piracy,
</quote> <citetitle>Los Angeles Times
</citetitle>,
17 July
2003, available at
9399 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
34</ulink>. Civil
9400 penalties are currently set at $
150,
000 per copied song. For a recent
9401 (and unsuccessful) legal challenge to the RIAA's demand that an ISP
9402 reveal the identity of a user accused of sharing more than
600 songs
9403 through a family computer, see
<citetitle>RIAA
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Verizon Internet Services (In
9404 re. Verizon Internet Services)
</citetitle>,
240 F. Supp.
2d
24
9405 (D.D.C.
2003). Such a user could face liability ranging as high as $
90
9406 million. Such astronomical figures furnish the RIAA with a powerful
9407 arsenal in its prosecution of file sharers. Settlements ranging from
9408 $
12,
000 to $
17,
500 for four students accused of heavy file sharing on
9409 university networks must have seemed a mere pittance next to the $
98
9410 billion the RIAA could seek should the matter proceed to court. See
9411 Elizabeth Young,
<quote>Downloading Could Lead to Fines,
</quote> redandblack.com,
9412 August
2003, available at
9413 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
35</ulink>. For an
9414 example of the RIAA's targeting of student file sharing, and of the
9415 subpoenas issued to universities to reveal student file-sharer
9416 identities, see James Collins,
<quote>RIAA Steps Up Bid to Force BC, MIT to
9417 Name Students,
</quote> <citetitle>Boston Globe
</citetitle>,
8 August
2003, D3, available at
9418 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
36</ulink>.
9419 <indexterm><primary>Conyers, John, Jr.
</primary></indexterm>
9420 <indexterm><primary>Berman, Howard L.
</primary></indexterm>
9424 <indexterm startref='idxchimera' class='endofrange'
/>
9426 Alternatively, we could respond to file sharing the way many kids act
9427 as though we've responded. We could totally legalize it. Let there be
9428 no copyright liability, either civil or criminal, for making
9429 copyrighted content available on the Net. Make file sharing like
9430 gossip: regulated, if at all, by social norms but not by law.
9433 Either response is possible. I think either would be a mistake.
9434 Rather than embrace one of these two extremes, we should embrace
9435 something that recognizes the truth in both. And while I end this book
9436 with a sketch of a system that does just that, my aim in the next
9437 chapter is to show just how awful it would be for us to adopt the
9438 zero-tolerance extreme. I believe
<emphasis>either
</emphasis> extreme
9439 would be worse than a reasonable alternative. But I believe the
9440 zero-tolerance solution would be the worse of the two extremes.
9444 <!-- PAGE BREAK 190 -->
9445 Yet zero tolerance is increasingly our government's policy. In the
9446 middle of the chaos that the Internet has created, an extraordinary
9447 land grab is occurring. The law and technology are being shifted to
9448 give content holders a kind of control over our culture that they have
9449 never had before. And in this extremism, many an opportunity for new
9450 innovation and new creativity will be lost.
9453 I'm not talking about the opportunities for kids to
<quote>steal
</quote> music. My
9454 focus instead is the commercial and cultural innovation that this war
9455 will also kill. We have never seen the power to innovate spread so
9456 broadly among our citizens, and we have just begun to see the
9457 innovation that this power will unleash. Yet the Internet has already
9458 seen the passing of one cycle of innovation around technologies to
9459 distribute content. The law is responsible for this passing. As the
9460 vice president for global public policy at one of these new
9461 innovators, eMusic.com, put it when criticizing the DMCA's added
9462 protection for copyrighted material,
9466 eMusic opposes music piracy. We are a distributor of copyrighted
9467 material, and we want to protect those rights.
9470 But building a technology fortress that locks in the clout of the
9471 major labels is by no means the only way to protect copyright
9472 interests, nor is it necessarily the best. It is simply too early to
9473 answer that question. Market forces operating naturally may very well
9474 produce a totally different industry model.
9477 This is a critical point. The choices that industry sectors make
9478 with respect to these systems will in many ways directly shape the
9479 market for digital media and the manner in which digital media
9480 are distributed. This in turn will directly influence the options
9481 that are available to consumers, both in terms of the ease with
9482 which they will be able to access digital media and the equipment
9483 that they will require to do so. Poor choices made this early in the
9484 game will retard the growth of this market, hurting everyone's
9485 interests.
<footnote><para>
9487 WIPO and the DMCA One Year Later: Assessing Consumer Access to Digital
9488 Entertainment on the Internet and Other Media: Hearing Before the
9489 Subcommittee on Telecommunications, Trade, and Consumer Protection,
9490 House Committee on Commerce,
106th Cong.
29 (
1999) (statement of Peter
9491 Harter, vice president, Global Public Policy and Standards,
9492 EMusic.com), available in LEXIS, Federal Document Clearing House
9493 Congressional Testimony File.
</para></footnote>
9496 <!-- PAGE BREAK 191 -->
9498 In April
2001, eMusic.com was purchased by Vivendi Universal,
9499 one of
<quote>the major labels.
</quote> Its position on these matters has now
9501 <indexterm><primary>Vivendi Universal
</primary></indexterm>
9504 Reversing our tradition of tolerance now will not merely quash
9505 piracy. It will sacrifice values that are important to this culture,
9506 and will kill opportunities that could be extraordinarily valuable.
9509 <!-- PAGE BREAK 192 -->
9511 <chapter label=
"12" id=
"harms">
9512 <title>CHAPTER TWELVE: Harms
</title>
9514 <emphasis role='strong'
>To fight
</emphasis> <quote>piracy,
</quote> to
9515 protect
<quote>property,
</quote> the content industry has launched a
9516 war. Lobbying and lots of campaign contributions have now brought the
9517 government into this war. As with any war, this one will have both
9518 direct and collateral damage. As with any war of prohibition, these
9519 damages will be suffered most by our own people.
9522 My aim so far has been to describe the consequences of this war, in
9523 particular, the consequences for
<quote>free culture.
</quote> But my aim now is to
9524 extend this description of consequences into an argument. Is this war
9528 In my view, it is not. There is no good reason why this time, for the
9529 first time, the law should defend the old against the new, just when the
9530 power of the property called
<quote>intellectual property
</quote> is at its greatest in
9533 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
9534 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
9536 Yet
<quote>common sense
</quote> does not see it this way. Common sense is still on
9537 the side of the Causbys and the content industry. The extreme claims
9538 of control in the name of property still resonate; the uncritical
9539 rejection of
<quote>piracy
</quote> still has play.
9541 <indexterm><primary>Armstrong, Edwin Howard
</primary></indexterm>
9543 <!-- PAGE BREAK 193 -->
9544 There will be many consequences of continuing this war. I want to
9545 describe just three. All three might be said to be unintended. I am quite
9546 confident the third is unintended. I'm less sure about the first two. The
9547 first two protect modern RCAs, but there is no Howard Armstrong in
9548 the wings to fight today's monopolists of culture.
9550 <section id=
"constrain">
9551 <title>Constraining Creators
</title>
9553 In the next ten years we will see an explosion of digital
9554 technologies. These technologies will enable almost anyone to capture
9555 and share content. Capturing and sharing content, of course, is what
9556 humans have done since the dawn of man. It is how we learn and
9557 communicate. But capturing and sharing through digital technology is
9558 different. The fidelity and power are different. You could send an
9559 e-mail telling someone about a joke you saw on Comedy Central, or you
9560 could send the clip. You could write an essay about the
9561 inconsistencies in the arguments of the politician you most love to
9562 hate, or you could make a short film that puts statement against
9563 statement. You could write a poem to express your love, or you could
9564 weave together a string
—a mash-up
— of songs from your
9565 favorite artists in a collage and make it available on the Net.
9568 This digital
<quote>capturing and sharing
</quote> is in part an extension of the
9569 capturing and sharing that has always been integral to our culture,
9570 and in part it is something new. It is continuous with the Kodak, but
9571 it explodes the boundaries of Kodak-like technologies. The technology
9572 of digital
<quote>capturing and sharing
</quote> promises a world of extraordinarily
9573 diverse creativity that can be easily and broadly shared. And as that
9574 creativity is applied to democracy, it will enable a broad range of
9575 citizens to use technology to express and criticize and contribute to
9576 the culture all around.
9579 Technology has thus given us an opportunity to do something with
9580 culture that has only ever been possible for individuals in small groups,
9582 <!-- PAGE BREAK 194 -->
9584 isolated from others. Think about an old man telling a story to a
9585 collection of neighbors in a small town. Now imagine that same
9586 storytelling extended across the globe.
9589 Yet all this is possible only if the activity is presumptively legal. In
9590 the current regime of legal regulation, it is not. Forget file sharing for
9591 a moment. Think about your favorite amazing sites on the Net. Web
9592 sites that offer plot summaries from forgotten television shows; sites
9593 that catalog cartoons from the
1960s; sites that mix images and sound
9594 to criticize politicians or businesses; sites that gather newspaper articles
9595 on remote topics of science or culture. There is a vast amount of creative
9596 work spread across the Internet. But as the law is currently crafted, this
9597 work is presumptively illegal.
9599 <indexterm><primary>Worldcom
</primary></indexterm>
9600 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>exaggerated claims of
</secondary></indexterm>
9601 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>in recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
9602 <indexterm><primary>doctors malpractice claims against
</primary></indexterm>
9603 <indexterm><primary>Jordan, Jesse
</primary></indexterm>
9605 That presumption will increasingly chill creativity, as the
9606 examples of extreme penalties for vague infringements continue to
9607 proliferate. It is impossible to get a clear sense of what's allowed
9608 and what's not, and at the same time, the penalties for crossing the
9609 line are astonishingly harsh. The four students who were threatened
9610 by the RIAA (Jesse Jordan of chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select:
9611 labelnumber" linkend=
"catalogs"/> was just one) were threatened with a
9612 $
98 billion lawsuit for building search engines that permitted songs
9613 to be copied. Yet World-Com
—which defrauded investors of $
11
9614 billion, resulting in a loss to investors in market capitalization of
9615 over $
200 billion
—received a fine of a mere $
750
9616 million.
<footnote><para>
9618 See Lynne W. Jeter,
<citetitle>Disconnected: Deceit and Betrayal at WorldCom
</citetitle>
9619 (Hoboken, N.J.: John Wiley
& Sons,
2003),
176,
204; for details of
9620 the settlement, see MCI press release,
<quote>MCI Wins U.S. District Court
9621 Approval for SEC Settlement
</quote> (
7 July
2003), available at
9622 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
37</ulink>.
9623 <indexterm><primary>Worldcom
</primary></indexterm>
9625 And under legislation being pushed in Congress right now, a doctor who
9626 negligently removes the wrong leg in an operation would be liable for
9627 no more than $
250,
000 in damages for pain and
9628 suffering.
<footnote>
9630 <!-- f2. --> The bill, modeled after California's tort reform model, was passed in the
9631 House of Representatives but defeated in a Senate vote in July
2003. For
9632 an overview, see Tanya Albert,
<quote>Measure Stalls in Senate: `We'll Be Back,'
9633 Say Tort Reformers,
</quote> amednews.com,
28 July
2003, available at
9634 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
38</ulink>,
9635 and
<quote>Senate Turns Back Malpractice Caps,
</quote> CBSNews.com,
9 July
2003,
9637 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
39</ulink>. President Bush has continued to urge tort reform in
9639 <indexterm><primary>Bush, George W.
</primary></indexterm>
9641 Can common sense recognize the absurdity in a world where
9642 the maximum fine for downloading two songs off the Internet is more
9643 than the fine for a doctor's negligently butchering a patient?
9645 <indexterm><primary>art, underground
</primary></indexterm>
9647 The consequence of this legal uncertainty, tied to these extremely
9648 high penalties, is that an extraordinary amount of creativity will
9649 either never be exercised, or never be exercised in the open. We drive
9650 this creative process underground by branding the modern-day Walt
9651 Disneys
<quote>pirates.
</quote> We make it impossible for businesses to rely upon a
9652 public domain, because the boundaries of the public domain are
9655 <!-- PAGE BREAK 195 -->
9656 be unclear. It never pays to do anything except pay for the right
9657 to create, and hence only those who can pay are allowed to create. As
9658 was the case in the Soviet Union, though for very different reasons,
9659 we will begin to see a world of underground art
—not because the
9660 message is necessarily political, or because the subject is
9661 controversial, but because the very act of creating the art is legally
9662 fraught. Already, exhibits of
<quote>illegal art
</quote> tour the United
9663 States.
<footnote><para>
9666 See Danit Lidor,
<quote>Artists Just Wanna Be Free,
</quote> <citetitle>Wired
</citetitle>,
7 July
9668 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
40</ulink>. For an overview of the exhibition, see
9669 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
41</ulink>.
9671 In what does their
<quote>illegality
</quote> consist?
9672 In the act of mixing the culture around us with an expression that is
9673 critical or reflective.
9675 <indexterm><primary>ISPs (Internet service providers), user identities revealed by
</primary></indexterm>
9677 Part of the reason for this fear of illegality has to do with the
9678 changing law. I described that change in detail in chapter
9679 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/>. But an
9680 even bigger part has to do with the increasing ease with which
9681 infractions can be tracked. As users of file-sharing systems
9682 discovered in
2002, it is a trivial matter for copyright owners to get
9683 courts to order Internet service providers to reveal who has what
9684 content. It is as if your cassette tape player transmitted a list of
9685 the songs that you played in the privacy of your own home that anyone
9686 could tune into for whatever reason they chose.
9688 <indexterm><primary>images, ownership of
</primary></indexterm>
9690 Never in our history has a painter had to worry about whether
9691 his painting infringed on someone else's work; but the modern-day
9692 painter, using the tools of Photoshop, sharing content on the Web,
9693 must worry all the time. Images are all around, but the only safe images
9694 to use in the act of creation are those purchased from Corbis or another
9695 image farm. And in purchasing, censoring happens. There is a free
9696 market in pencils; we needn't worry about its effect on creativity. But
9697 there is a highly regulated, monopolized market in cultural icons; the
9698 right to cultivate and transform them is not similarly free.
9701 Lawyers rarely see this because lawyers are rarely empirical. As I
9702 described in chapter
9703 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"recorders"/>, in
9704 response to the story about documentary filmmaker Jon Else, I have
9705 been lectured again and again by lawyers who insist Else's use was
9706 fair use, and hence I am wrong to say that the law regulates such a
9711 <!-- PAGE BREAK 196 -->
9712 But fair use in America simply means the right to hire a lawyer to
9713 defend your right to create. And as lawyers love to forget, our system
9714 for defending rights such as fair use is astonishingly bad
—in
9715 practically every context, but especially here. It costs too much, it
9716 delivers too slowly, and what it delivers often has little connection
9717 to the justice underlying the claim. The legal system may be tolerable
9718 for the very rich. For everyone else, it is an embarrassment to a
9719 tradition that prides itself on the rule of law.
9722 Judges and lawyers can tell themselves that fair use provides adequate
9723 <quote>breathing room
</quote> between regulation by the law and the access the law
9724 should allow. But it is a measure of how out of touch our legal system
9725 has become that anyone actually believes this. The rules that
9726 publishers impose upon writers, the rules that film distributors
9727 impose upon filmmakers, the rules that newspapers impose upon
9728 journalists
— these are the real laws governing creativity. And
9729 these rules have little relationship to the
<quote>law
</quote> with which judges
9733 For in a world that threatens $
150,
000 for a single willful
9734 infringement of a copyright, and which demands tens of thousands of
9735 dollars to even defend against a copyright infringement claim, and
9736 which would never return to the wrongfully accused defendant anything
9737 of the costs she suffered to defend her right to speak
—in that
9738 world, the astonishingly broad regulations that pass under the name
9739 <quote>copyright
</quote> silence speech and creativity. And in that world, it takes
9740 a studied blindness for people to continue to believe they live in a
9741 culture that is free.
9744 As Jed Horovitz, the businessman behind Video Pipeline, said to me,
9748 We're losing [creative] opportunities right and left. Creative people
9749 are being forced not to express themselves. Thoughts are not being
9750 expressed. And while a lot of stuff may [still] be created, it still
9751 won't get distributed. Even if the stuff gets made
… you're not
9752 going to get it distributed in the mainstream media unless
9753 <!-- PAGE BREAK 197 -->
9754 you've got a little note from a lawyer saying,
<quote>This has been
9755 cleared.
</quote> You're not even going to get it on PBS without that kind of
9756 permission. That's the point at which they control it.
9760 <section id=
"innovators">
9761 <title>Constraining Innovators
</title>
9762 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawinnovationhamperedby' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>innovation hampered by
</secondary></indexterm>
9763 <indexterm id='idxinnovationindustryestablishmentopposedto2' class='startofrange'
><primary>innovation
</primary><secondary>industry establishment opposed to
</secondary></indexterm>
9764 <indexterm id='idxregulationasestablishmentprotectionism2' class='startofrange'
><primary>regulation
</primary><secondary>as establishment protectionism
</secondary></indexterm>
9766 The story of the last section was a crunchy-lefty
9767 story
—creativity quashed, artists who can't speak, yada yada
9768 yada. Maybe that doesn't get you going. Maybe you think there's enough
9769 weird art out there, and enough expression that is critical of what
9770 seems to be just about everything. And if you think that, you might
9771 think there's little in this story to worry you.
9773 <indexterm id='idxmarketconstraints2' class='startofrange'
><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
9775 But there's an aspect of this story that is not lefty in any sense.
9776 Indeed, it is an aspect that could be written by the most extreme
9777 promarket ideologue. And if you're one of these sorts (and a special
9778 one at that,
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: pagenumber"
9779 linkend=
"innovators"/> pages into a book like this), then you
9780 can see this other aspect by substituting
<quote>free market
</quote>
9781 every place I've spoken of
<quote>free culture.
</quote> The point is
9782 the same, even if the interests affecting culture are more
9786 The charge I've been making about the regulation of culture is the
9787 same charge free marketers make about regulating markets. Everyone, of
9788 course, concedes that some regulation of markets is necessary
—at
9789 a minimum, we need rules of property and contract, and courts to
9790 enforce both. Likewise, in this culture debate, everyone concedes that
9791 at least some framework of copyright is also required. But both
9792 perspectives vehemently insist that just because some regulation is
9793 good, it doesn't follow that more regulation is better. And both
9794 perspectives are constantly attuned to the ways in which regulation
9795 simply enables the powerful industries of today to protect themselves
9796 against the competitors of tomorrow.
9798 <indexterm startref='idxmarketconstraints2' class='endofrange'
/>
9799 <indexterm><primary>Barry, Hank
</primary></indexterm>
9800 <indexterm><primary>venture capitalists
</primary></indexterm>
9802 This is the single most dramatic effect of the shift in regulatory
9803 <!-- PAGE BREAK 198 -->
9804 strategy that I described in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select:
9805 labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/>. The consequence of this massive
9806 threat of liability tied to the murky boundaries of copyright law is
9807 that innovators who want to innovate in this space can safely innovate
9808 only if they have the sign-off from last generation's dominant
9809 industries. That lesson has been taught through a series of cases
9810 that were designed and executed to teach venture capitalists a
9811 lesson. That lesson
—what former Napster CEO Hank Barry calls a
9812 <quote>nuclear pall
</quote> that has fallen over the Valley
—has been learned.
9814 <indexterm><primary>Future of Ideas, The (Lessig)
</primary></indexterm>
9815 <indexterm><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary></indexterm>
9817 Consider one example to make the point, a story whose beginning
9818 I told in
<citetitle>The Future of Ideas
</citetitle> and which has progressed in a way that
9819 even I (pessimist extraordinaire) would never have predicted.
9821 <indexterm id='idxmpcom' class='startofrange'
><primary>MP3.com
</primary></indexterm>
9822 <indexterm id='idxmympcom' class='startofrange'
><primary>my.mp3.com
</primary></indexterm>
9823 <indexterm><primary>Roberts, Michael
</primary></indexterm>
9825 In
1997, Michael Roberts launched a company called MP3.com. MP3.com
9826 was keen to remake the music business. Their goal was not just to
9827 facilitate new ways to get access to content. Their goal was also to
9828 facilitate new ways to create content. Unlike the major labels,
9829 MP3.com offered creators a venue to distribute their creativity,
9830 without demanding an exclusive engagement from the creators.
9832 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle
</primary></indexterm>
9833 <indexterm id='idxcdsprefdata' class='startofrange'
><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>preference data on
</secondary></indexterm>
9835 To make this system work, however, MP3.com needed a reliable way to
9836 recommend music to its users. The idea behind this alternative was to
9837 leverage the revealed preferences of music listeners to recommend new
9838 artists. If you like Lyle Lovett, you're likely to enjoy Bonnie
9842 This idea required a simple way to gather data about user preferences.
9843 MP3.com came up with an extraordinarily clever way to gather this
9844 preference data. In January
2000, the company launched a service
9845 called my.mp3.com. Using software provided by MP3.com, a user would
9846 sign into an account and then insert into her computer a CD. The
9847 software would identify the CD, and then give the user access to that
9848 content. So, for example, if you inserted a CD by Jill Sobule, then
9849 wherever you were
—at work or at home
—you could get access
9850 to that music once you signed into your account. The system was
9851 therefore a kind of music-lockbox.
9854 No doubt some could use this system to illegally copy content. But
9855 that opportunity existed with or without MP3.com. The aim of the
9857 <!-- PAGE BREAK 199 -->
9858 my.mp3.com service was to give users access to their own content, and
9859 as a by-product, by seeing the content they already owned, to discover
9860 the kind of content the users liked.
9862 <indexterm startref='idxcdsprefdata' class='endofrange'
/>
9864 To make this system function, however, MP3.com needed to copy
50,
000
9865 CDs to a server. (In principle, it could have been the user who
9866 uploaded the music, but that would have taken a great deal of time,
9867 and would have produced a product of questionable quality.) It
9868 therefore purchased
50,
000 CDs from a store, and started the process
9869 of making copies of those CDs. Again, it would not serve the content
9870 from those copies to anyone except those who authenticated that they
9871 had a copy of the CD they wanted to access. So while this was
50,
000
9872 copies, it was
50,
000 copies directed at giving customers something
9873 they had already bought.
9875 <indexterm id='idxvivendiuniversal' class='startofrange'
><primary>Vivendi Universal
</primary></indexterm>
9876 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>distribution technology targeted in
</secondary></indexterm>
9877 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>exaggerated claims of
</secondary></indexterm>
9878 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry3' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>in recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
9879 <indexterm><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits of
</secondary></indexterm>
9880 <indexterm><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>copyright infringement lawsuits filed by
</secondary></indexterm>
9881 <indexterm><primary>regulation
</primary><secondary>outsize penalties of
</secondary></indexterm>
9883 Nine days after MP3.com launched its service, the five major labels,
9884 headed by the RIAA, brought a lawsuit against MP3.com. MP3.com settled
9885 with four of the five. Nine months later, a federal judge found
9886 MP3.com to have been guilty of willful infringement with respect to
9887 the fifth. Applying the law as it is, the judge imposed a fine against
9888 MP3.com of $
118 million. MP3.com then settled with the remaining
9889 plaintiff, Vivendi Universal, paying over $
54 million. Vivendi
9890 purchased MP3.com just about a year later.
9893 That part of the story I have told before. Now consider its conclusion.
9896 After Vivendi purchased MP3.com, Vivendi turned around and filed a
9897 malpractice lawsuit against the lawyers who had advised it that they
9898 had a good faith claim that the service they wanted to offer would be
9899 considered legal under copyright law. This lawsuit alleged that it
9900 should have been obvious that the courts would find this behavior
9901 illegal; therefore, this lawsuit sought to punish any lawyer who had
9902 dared to suggest that the law was less restrictive than the labels
9905 <indexterm startref='idxvivendiuniversal' class='endofrange'
/>
9907 The clear purpose of this lawsuit (which was settled for an
9908 unspecified amount shortly after the story was no longer covered in
9909 the press) was to send an unequivocal message to lawyers advising
9911 <!-- PAGE BREAK 200 -->
9912 space: It is not just your clients who might suffer if the content
9913 industry directs its guns against them. It is also you. So those of
9914 you who believe the law should be less restrictive should realize that
9915 such a view of the law will cost you and your firm dearly.
9917 <indexterm startref='idxmpcom' class='endofrange'
/>
9918 <indexterm startref='idxmympcom' class='endofrange'
/>
9919 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinfringementlawsuitsinrecordingindustry3' class='endofrange'
/>
9920 <indexterm><primary>Barry, Hank
</primary></indexterm>
9921 <indexterm><primary>copyright infringement lawsuits
</primary><secondary>distribution technology targeted in
</secondary></indexterm>
9922 <indexterm id='idxbmw' class='startofrange'
><primary>BMW
</primary></indexterm>
9923 <indexterm id='idxcarsmpsoundsystemsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>cars, MP3 sound systems in
</primary></indexterm>
9924 <indexterm><primary>EMI
</primary></indexterm>
9925 <indexterm><primary>Hummer, John
</primary></indexterm>
9926 <indexterm><primary>Barry, Hank
</primary></indexterm>
9927 <indexterm><primary>Hummer Winblad
</primary></indexterm>
9928 <indexterm><primary>MP3 players
</primary></indexterm>
9929 <indexterm><primary>Napster
</primary><secondary>venture capital for
</secondary></indexterm>
9930 <indexterm id='idxneedlemanrafe' class='startofrange'
><primary>Needleman, Rafe
</primary></indexterm>
9931 <indexterm><primary>Universal Music Group
</primary></indexterm>
9932 <indexterm><primary>venture capitalists
</primary></indexterm>
9934 This strategy is not just limited to the lawyers. In April
2003,
9935 Universal and EMI brought a lawsuit against Hummer Winblad, the
9936 venture capital firm (VC) that had funded Napster at a certain stage of
9937 its development, its cofounder (John Hummer), and general partner
9938 (Hank Barry).
<footnote><para>
9940 See Joseph Menn,
<quote>Universal, EMI Sue Napster Investor,
</quote> <citetitle>Los Angeles
9941 Times
</citetitle>,
23 April
2003. For a parallel argument about the effects on
9942 innovation in the distribution of music, see Janelle Brown,
<quote>The Music
9943 Revolution Will Not Be Digitized,
</quote> Salon.com,
1 June
2001, available
9944 at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
42</ulink>.
9945 See also Jon Healey,
<quote>Online Music Services Besieged,
</quote> <citetitle>Los Angeles
9946 Times
</citetitle>,
28 May
2001.
9948 The claim here, as well, was that the VC should have recognized the
9949 right of the content industry to control how the industry should
9950 develop. They should be held personally liable for funding a company
9951 whose business turned out to be beyond the law. Here again, the aim of
9952 the lawsuit is transparent: Any VC now recognizes that if you fund a
9953 company whose business is not approved of by the dinosaurs, you are at
9954 risk not just in the marketplace, but in the courtroom as well. Your
9955 investment buys you not only a company, it also buys you a lawsuit.
9956 So extreme has the environment become that even car manufacturers are
9957 afraid of technologies that touch content. In an article in
9958 <citetitle>Business
2.0</citetitle>, Rafe Needleman describes a
9959 discussion with BMW:
9963 I asked why, with all the storage capacity and computer power in
9964 the car, there was no way to play MP3 files. I was told that BMW
9965 engineers in Germany had rigged a new vehicle to play MP3s via
9966 the car's built-in sound system, but that the company's marketing
9967 and legal departments weren't comfortable with pushing this
9968 forward for release stateside. Even today, no new cars are sold in the
9969 United States with bona fide MP3 players.
… <footnote>
9972 Rafe Needleman,
<quote>Driving in Cars with MP3s,
</quote> <citetitle>Business
2.0</citetitle>,
16 June
9974 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
43</ulink>. I am grateful
9975 to Dr. Mohammad Al-Ubaydli for this example.
9976 <indexterm><primary>Needleman, Rafe
</primary></indexterm>
9980 <indexterm startref='idxbmw' class='endofrange'
/>
9981 <indexterm startref='idxcarsmpsoundsystemsin' class='endofrange'
/>
9982 <indexterm startref='idxneedlemanrafe' class='endofrange'
/>
9984 This is the world of the mafia
—filled with
<quote>your money or your
9985 life
</quote> offers, governed in the end not by courts but by the threats
9986 that the law empowers copyright holders to exercise. It is a system
9987 that will obviously and necessarily stifle new innovation. It is hard
9988 enough to start a company. It is impossibly hard if that company is
9989 constantly threatened by litigation.
9993 <!-- PAGE BREAK 201 -->
9994 The point is not that businesses should have a right to start illegal
9995 enterprises. The point is the definition of
<quote>illegal.
</quote> The law is a
9996 mess of uncertainty. We have no good way to know how it should apply
9997 to new technologies. Yet by reversing our tradition of judicial
9998 deference, and by embracing the astonishingly high penalties that
9999 copyright law imposes, that uncertainty now yields a reality which is
10000 far more conservative than is right. If the law imposed the death
10001 penalty for parking tickets, we'd not only have fewer parking tickets,
10002 we'd also have much less driving. The same principle applies to
10003 innovation. If innovation is constantly checked by this uncertain and
10004 unlimited liability, we will have much less vibrant innovation and
10005 much less creativity.
10007 <indexterm><primary>market constraints
</primary></indexterm>
10009 The point is directly parallel to the crunchy-lefty point about fair
10010 use. Whatever the
<quote>real
</quote> law is, realism about the effect of law in
10011 both contexts is the same. This wildly punitive system of regulation
10012 will systematically stifle creativity and innovation. It will protect
10013 some industries and some creators, but it will harm industry and
10014 creativity generally. Free market and free culture depend upon vibrant
10015 competition. Yet the effect of the law today is to stifle just this
10016 kind of competition. The effect is to produce an overregulated
10017 culture, just as the effect of too much control in the market is to
10018 produce an overregulated-regulated market.
10021 The building of a permission culture, rather than a free culture, is
10022 the first important way in which the changes I have described will
10023 burden innovation. A permission culture means a lawyer's
10024 culture
—a culture in which the ability to create requires a call
10025 to your lawyer. Again, I am not antilawyer, at least when they're kept
10026 in their proper place. I am certainly not antilaw. But our profession
10027 has lost the sense of its limits. And leaders in our profession have
10028 lost an appreciation of the high costs that our profession imposes
10029 upon others. The inefficiency of the law is an embarrassment to our
10030 tradition. And while I believe our profession should therefore do
10031 everything it can to make the law more efficient, it should at least
10032 do everything it can to limit the reach of the
10033 <!-- PAGE BREAK 202 -->
10034 law where the law is not doing any good. The transaction costs buried
10035 within a permission culture are enough to bury a wide range of
10036 creativity. Someone needs to do a lot of justifying to justify that
10040 <emphasis role='strong'
>The uncertainty
</emphasis> of the law is one
10041 burden on innovation. There is a second burden that operates more
10042 directly. This is the effort by many in the content industry to use
10043 the law to directly regulate the technology of the Internet so that it
10044 better protects their content.
10047 The motivation for this response is obvious. The Internet enables the
10048 efficient spread of content. That efficiency is a feature of the
10049 Internet's design. But from the perspective of the content industry,
10050 this feature is a
<quote>bug.
</quote> The efficient spread of content means that
10051 content distributors have a harder time controlling the distribution
10052 of content. One obvious response to this efficiency is thus to make
10053 the Internet less efficient. If the Internet enables
<quote>piracy,
</quote> then,
10054 this response says, we should break the kneecaps of the Internet.
10056 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag
</primary></indexterm>
10058 The examples of this form of legislation are many. At the urging of
10059 the content industry, some in Congress have threatened legislation that
10060 would require computers to determine whether the content they access
10061 is protected or not, and to disable the spread of protected content.
<footnote><para>
10062 <!-- f6. --> <quote>Copyright and Digital Media in a Post-Napster World,
</quote> GartnerG2 and
10063 the Berkman Center for Internet and Society at Harvard Law School
10064 (
2003),
33–35, available at
10065 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
44</ulink>.
10067 Congress has already launched proceedings to explore a mandatory
10068 <quote>broadcast flag
</quote> that would be required on any device capable of
10069 transmitting digital video (i.e., a computer), and that would disable
10070 the copying of any content that is marked with a broadcast flag. Other
10071 members of Congress have proposed immunizing content providers from
10072 liability for technology they might deploy that would hunt down
10073 copyright violators and disable their machines.
<footnote><para>
10075 GartnerG2,
26–27.
10079 In one sense, these solutions seem sensible. If the problem is the
10080 code, why not regulate the code to remove the problem. But any
10081 regulation of technical infrastructure will always be tuned to the
10082 particular technology of the day. It will impose significant burdens
10084 <!-- PAGE BREAK 203 -->
10085 the technology, but will likely be eclipsed by advances around exactly
10086 those requirements.
10088 <indexterm><primary>Intel
</primary></indexterm>
10090 In March
2002, a broad coalition of technology companies, led by
10091 Intel, tried to get Congress to see the harm that such legislation
10092 would impose.
<footnote><para>
10094 See David McGuire,
<quote>Tech Execs Square Off Over Piracy,
</quote> Newsbytes,
10095 February
2002 (Entertainment).
10097 Their argument was obviously not that copyright should not be
10098 protected. Instead, they argued, any protection should not do more
10102 <emphasis role='strong'
>There is one
</emphasis> more obvious way in
10103 which this war has harmed innovation
—again, a story that will be
10104 quite familiar to the free market crowd.
10107 Copyright may be property, but like all property, it is also a form
10108 of regulation. It is a regulation that benefits some and harms others.
10109 When done right, it benefits creators and harms leeches. When done
10110 wrong, it is regulation the powerful use to defeat competitors.
10112 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
10113 <indexterm><primary>VCRs
</primary></indexterm>
10114 <indexterm><primary>statutory licenses
</primary></indexterm>
10115 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>statutory licenses in
</secondary></indexterm>
10117 As I described in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
10118 linkend=
"property-i"/>, despite this feature of copyright as
10119 regulation, and subject to important qualifications outlined by
10120 Jessica Litman in her book
<citetitle>Digital
10121 Copyright
</citetitle>,
<footnote><para>
10123 Jessica Litman,
<citetitle>Digital Copyright
</citetitle> (Amherst,
10124 N.Y.: Prometheus Books,
2001).
10125 <indexterm><primary>Digital Copyright (Litman)
</primary></indexterm>
10126 <indexterm><primary>Litman, Jessica
</primary></indexterm>
10128 overall this history of copyright is not bad. As chapter
10129 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/> details,
10130 when new technologies have come along, Congress has struck a balance
10131 to assure that the new is protected from the old. Compulsory, or
10132 statutory, licenses have been one part of that strategy. Free use (as
10133 in the case of the VCR) has been another.
10136 But that pattern of deference to new technologies has now changed
10137 with the rise of the Internet. Rather than striking a balance between
10138 the claims of a new technology and the legitimate rights of content
10139 creators, both the courts and Congress have imposed legal restrictions
10140 that will have the effect of smothering the new to benefit the old.
10142 <indexterm id='idxinternetradioon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>radio on
</secondary></indexterm>
10143 <indexterm id='idxradiooninternet' class='startofrange'
><primary>radio
</primary><secondary>on Internet
</secondary></indexterm>
10145 The response by the courts has been fairly universal.
<footnote><para>
10147 <indexterm><primary>Grokster, Ltd.
</primary></indexterm>
10148 The only circuit court exception is found in
<citetitle>Recording Industry
10149 Association of America (RIAA)
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Diamond Multimedia Systems
</citetitle>,
180 F.
3d
10150 1072 (
9th Cir.
1999). There the court of appeals for the Ninth Circuit
10151 reasoned that makers of a portable MP3 player were not liable for
10152 contributory copyright infringement for a device that is unable to
10153 record or redistribute music (a device whose only copying function is
10154 to render portable a music file already stored on a user's hard
10155 drive). At the district court level, the only exception is found in
10156 <citetitle>Metro-Goldwyn-Mayer Studios, Inc
</citetitle>. v.
<citetitle>Grokster, Ltd
</citetitle>.,
259 F. Supp.
2d
10157 1029 (C.D. Cal.,
2003), where the court found the link between the
10158 distributor and any given user's conduct too attenuated to make the
10159 distributor liable for contributory or vicarious infringement
10162 It has been mirrored in the responses threatened and actually
10163 implemented by Congress. I won't catalog all of those responses
10164 here.
<footnote><para>
10166 <indexterm><primary>Tauzin, Billy
</primary></indexterm>
10167 <indexterm><primary>Berman, Howard L.
</primary></indexterm>
10168 <indexterm><primary>Hollings, Fritz
</primary></indexterm>
10169 <indexterm><primary>broadcast flag
</primary></indexterm>
10170 For example, in July
2002, Representative Howard Berman introduced the
10171 Peer-to-Peer Piracy Prevention Act (H.R.
5211), which would immunize
10172 copyright holders from liability for damage done to computers when the
10173 copyright holders use technology to stop copyright infringement. In
10174 August
2002, Representative Billy Tauzin introduced a bill to mandate
10175 that technologies capable of rebroadcasting digital copies of films
10176 broadcast on TV (i.e., computers) respect a
<quote>broadcast flag
</quote> that
10177 would disable copying of that content. And in March of the same year,
10178 Senator Fritz Hollings introduced the Consumer Broadband and Digital
10179 Television Promotion Act, which mandated copyright protection
10180 technology in all digital media devices. See GartnerG2,
<quote>Copyright and
10181 Digital Media in a Post-Napster World,
</quote> 27 June
2003,
33–34,
10183 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
44</ulink>.
10185 But there is one example that captures the flavor of them all. This is
10186 the story of the demise of Internet radio.
10188 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
10189 <indexterm><primary>Kennedy, John F.
</primary></indexterm>
10192 <!-- PAGE BREAK 204 -->
10193 As I described in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
10194 linkend=
"pirates"/>, when a radio station plays a song, the recording
10195 artist doesn't get paid for that
<quote>radio performance
</quote> unless he or she
10196 is also the composer. So, for example if Marilyn Monroe had recorded a
10197 version of
<quote>Happy Birthday
</quote>—to memorialize her famous
10198 performance before President Kennedy at Madison Square Garden
—
10199 then whenever that recording was played on the radio, the current
10200 copyright owners of
<quote>Happy Birthday
</quote> would get some money, whereas
10201 Marilyn Monroe would not.
10204 The reasoning behind this balance struck by Congress makes some
10205 sense. The justification was that radio was a kind of advertising. The
10206 recording artist thus benefited because by playing her music, the
10207 radio station was making it more likely that her records would be
10208 purchased. Thus, the recording artist got something, even if only
10209 indirectly. Probably this reasoning had less to do with the result
10210 than with the power of radio stations: Their lobbyists were quite good
10211 at stopping any efforts to get Congress to require compensation to the
10215 Enter Internet radio. Like regular radio, Internet radio is a
10216 technology to stream content from a broadcaster to a listener. The
10217 broadcast travels across the Internet, not across the ether of radio
10218 spectrum. Thus, I can
<quote>tune in
</quote> to an Internet radio station in
10219 Berlin while sitting in San Francisco, even though there's no way for
10220 me to tune in to a regular radio station much beyond the San Francisco
10224 This feature of the architecture of Internet radio means that there
10225 are potentially an unlimited number of radio stations that a user
10226 could tune in to using her computer, whereas under the existing
10227 architecture for broadcast radio, there is an obvious limit to the
10228 number of broadcasters and clear broadcast frequencies. Internet radio
10229 could therefore be more competitive than regular radio; it could
10230 provide a wider range of selections. And because the potential
10231 audience for Internet radio is the whole world, niche stations could
10232 easily develop and market their content to a relatively large number
10233 of users worldwide. According to some estimates, more than eighty
10234 million users worldwide have tuned in to this new form of radio.
10236 <indexterm><primary>Armstrong, Edwin Howard
</primary></indexterm>
10239 <!-- PAGE BREAK 205 -->
10240 Internet radio is thus to radio what FM was to AM. It is an
10241 improvement potentially vastly more significant than the FM
10242 improvement over AM, since not only is the technology better, so, too,
10243 is the competition. Indeed, there is a direct parallel between the
10244 fight to establish FM radio and the fight to protect Internet
10245 radio. As one author describes Howard Armstrong's struggle to enable
10250 An almost unlimited number of FM stations was possible in the
10251 shortwaves, thus ending the unnatural restrictions imposed on radio in
10252 the crowded longwaves. If FM were freely developed, the number of
10253 stations would be limited only by economics and competition rather
10254 than by technical restrictions.
… Armstrong likened the situation
10255 that had grown up in radio to that following the invention of the
10256 printing press, when governments and ruling interests attempted to
10257 control this new instrument of mass communications by imposing
10258 restrictive licenses on it. This tyranny was broken only when it
10259 became possible for men freely to acquire printing presses and freely
10260 to run them. FM in this sense was as great an invention as the
10261 printing presses, for it gave radio the opportunity to strike off its
10262 shackles.
<footnote><para>
10269 This potential for FM radio was never realized
—not
10270 because Armstrong was wrong about the technology, but because he
10271 underestimated the power of
<quote>vested interests, habits, customs and
10272 legislation
</quote><footnote><para>
10276 to retard the growth of this competing technology.
10279 Now the very same claim could be made about Internet radio. For
10280 again, there is no technical limitation that could restrict the number of
10281 Internet radio stations. The only restrictions on Internet radio are
10282 those imposed by the law. Copyright law is one such law. So the first
10283 question we should ask is, what copyright rules would govern Internet
10286 <indexterm id='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto3' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
10287 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on copyright laws
</secondary></indexterm>
10288 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on radio
</secondary></indexterm>
10289 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>on recording industry
</secondary></indexterm>
10290 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryartistremunerationin3' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in
</secondary></indexterm>
10291 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryradiobroadcastand2' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>radio broadcast and
</secondary></indexterm>
10292 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryinternetradiohamperedby' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>Internet radio hampered by
</secondary></indexterm>
10293 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaoninternetradiofees' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>on Internet radio fees
</secondary></indexterm>
10294 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaalobbyingpowerof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>lobbying power of
</secondary></indexterm>
10296 But here the power of the lobbyists is reversed. Internet radio is a
10297 new industry. The recording artists, on the other hand, have a very
10299 <!-- PAGE BREAK 206 -->
10300 powerful lobby, the RIAA. Thus when Congress considered the phenomenon
10301 of Internet radio in
1995, the lobbyists had primed Congress to adopt
10302 a different rule for Internet radio than the rule that applies to
10303 terrestrial radio. While terrestrial radio does not have to pay our
10304 hypothetical Marilyn Monroe when it plays her hypothetical recording
10305 of
<quote>Happy Birthday
</quote> on the air,
<emphasis>Internet radio
10306 does
</emphasis>. Not only is the law not neutral toward Internet
10307 radio
—the law actually burdens Internet radio more than it
10308 burdens terrestrial radio.
10311 This financial burden is not slight. As Harvard law professor
10312 William Fisher estimates, if an Internet radio station distributed adfree
10313 popular music to (on average) ten thousand listeners, twenty-four
10314 hours a day, the total artist fees that radio station would owe would be
10315 over $
1 million a year.
<footnote>
10318 This example was derived from fees set by the original Copyright
10319 Arbitration Royalty Panel (CARP) proceedings, and is drawn from an
10320 example offered by Professor William Fisher. Conference Proceedings,
10321 iLaw (Stanford),
3 July
2003, on file with author. Professors Fisher
10322 and Zittrain submitted testimony in the CARP proceeding that was
10323 ultimately rejected. See Jonathan Zittrain, Digital Performance Right
10324 in Sound Recordings and Ephemeral Recordings, Docket No.
2000-
9, CARP
10325 DTRA
1 and
2, available at
10326 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
45</ulink>.
10327 For an excellent analysis making a similar point, see Randal
10328 C. Picker,
<quote>Copyright as Entry Policy: The Case of Digital
10329 Distribution,
</quote> <citetitle>Antitrust Bulletin
</citetitle> (Summer/Fall
2002):
461:
<quote>This was
10330 not confusion, these are just old-fashioned entry barriers. Analog
10331 radio stations are protected from digital entrants, reducing entry in
10332 radio and diversity. Yes, this is done in the name of getting
10333 royalties to copyright holders, but, absent the play of powerful
10334 interests, that could have been done in a media-neutral way.
</quote>
10335 <indexterm><primary>CARP (Copyright Arbitration Royalty Panel)
</primary></indexterm>
10336 <indexterm><primary>Picker, Randal C.
</primary></indexterm>
10338 A regular radio station broadcasting the same content would pay no
10341 <indexterm startref='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto3' class='endofrange'
/>
10342 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryartistremunerationin3' class='endofrange'
/>
10343 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryradiobroadcastand2' class='endofrange'
/>
10344 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaoninternetradiofees' class='endofrange'
/>
10345 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaalobbyingpowerof' class='endofrange'
/>
10347 The burden is not financial only. Under the original rules that were
10348 proposed, an Internet radio station (but not a terrestrial radio
10349 station) would have to collect the following data from
<emphasis>every
10350 listening transaction
</emphasis>:
10352 <!-- PAGE BREAK 207 -->
10353 <orderedlist numeration=
"arabic">
10355 name of the service;
10358 channel of the program (AM/FM stations use station ID);
10361 type of program (archived/looped/live);
10364 date of transmission;
10367 time of transmission;
10370 time zone of origination of transmission;
10373 numeric designation of the place of the sound recording within the program;
10376 duration of transmission (to nearest second);
10379 sound recording title;
10382 ISRC code of the recording;
10385 release year of the album per copyright notice and in the case of compilation albums, the release year of the album and copy- right date of the track;
10388 featured recording artist;
10391 retail album title;
10397 UPC code of the retail album;
10403 copyright owner information;
10406 musical genre of the channel or program (station format);
10409 name of the service or entity;
10412 channel or program;
10415 date and time that the user logged in (in the user's time zone);
10418 date and time that the user logged out (in the user's time zone);
10421 time zone where the signal was received (user);
10424 unique user identifier;
10427 the country in which the user received the transmissions.
10430 <indexterm><primary>Library of Congress
</primary></indexterm>
10432 The Librarian of Congress eventually suspended these reporting
10433 requirements, pending further study. And he also changed the original
10434 rates set by the arbitration panel charged with setting rates. But the
10435 basic difference between Internet radio and terrestrial radio remains:
10436 Internet radio has to pay a
<emphasis>type of copyright fee
</emphasis>
10437 that terrestrial radio does not.
10440 Why? What justifies this difference? Was there any study of the
10441 economic consequences from Internet radio that would justify these
10442 differences? Was the motive to protect artists against piracy?
10444 <indexterm><primary>Real Networks
</primary></indexterm>
10445 <indexterm id='idxalbenalex2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
10446 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaoninternetradiofees2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Recording Industry Association of America (RIAA)
</primary><secondary>on Internet radio fees
</secondary></indexterm>
10447 <indexterm id='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto4' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
10448 <indexterm id='idxrecordingindustryartistremunerationin4' class='startofrange'
><primary>recording industry
</primary><secondary>artist remuneration in
</secondary></indexterm>
10450 In a rare bit of candor, one RIAA expert admitted what seemed obvious
10451 to everyone at the time. As Alex Alben, vice president for Public
10452 Policy at Real Networks, told me,
10456 The RIAA, which was representing the record labels, presented
10457 some testimony about what they thought a willing buyer would
10458 pay to a willing seller, and it was much higher. It was ten times
10459 higher than what radio stations pay to perform the same songs for
10460 the same period of time. And so the attorneys representing the
10461 webcasters asked the RIAA,
… <quote>How do you come up with a
10463 <!-- PAGE BREAK 208 -->
10464 rate that's so much higher? Why is it worth more than radio? Because
10465 here we have hundreds of thousands of webcasters who want to pay, and
10466 that should establish the market rate, and if you set the rate so
10467 high, you're going to drive the small webcasters out of
10468 business.
…</quote>
10470 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
10472 And the RIAA experts said,
<quote>Well, we don't really model this as an
10473 industry with thousands of webcasters,
<emphasis>we think it should be
10474 an industry with, you know, five or seven big players who can pay a
10475 high rate and it's a stable, predictable market
</emphasis>.
</quote> (Emphasis
10479 <indexterm startref='idxalbenalex2' class='endofrange'
/>
10480 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryassociationofamericariaaoninternetradiofees2' class='endofrange'
/>
10481 <indexterm startref='idxartistsrecordingindustrypaymentsto4' class='endofrange'
/>
10482 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryartistremunerationin4' class='endofrange'
/>
10484 Translation: The aim is to use the law to eliminate competition, so
10485 that this platform of potentially immense competition, which would
10486 cause the diversity and range of content available to explode, would not
10487 cause pain to the dinosaurs of old. There is no one, on either the right
10488 or the left, who should endorse this use of the law. And yet there is
10489 practically no one, on either the right or the left, who is doing anything
10490 effective to prevent it.
10492 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawinnovationhamperedby' class='endofrange'
/>
10493 <indexterm startref='idxinnovationindustryestablishmentopposedto2' class='endofrange'
/>
10494 <indexterm startref='idxregulationasestablishmentprotectionism2' class='endofrange'
/>
10495 <indexterm startref='idxinternetradioon' class='endofrange'
/>
10496 <indexterm startref='idxradiooninternet' class='endofrange'
/>
10497 <indexterm startref='idxrecordingindustryinternetradiohamperedby' class='endofrange'
/>
10499 <section id=
"corruptingcitizens">
10500 <title>Corrupting Citizens
</title>
10502 Overregulation stifles creativity. It smothers innovation. It gives
10504 a veto over the future. It wastes the extraordinary opportunity
10505 for a democratic creativity that digital technology enables.
10508 In addition to these important harms, there is one more that was
10509 important to our forebears, but seems forgotten today. Overregulation
10510 corrupts citizens and weakens the rule of law.
10513 The war that is being waged today is a war of prohibition. As with
10514 every war of prohibition, it is targeted against the behavior of a very
10515 large number of citizens. According to
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>,
43 million
10516 Americans downloaded music in May
2002.
<footnote><para>
10517 <!-- f15. --> Mike Graziano and Lee Rainie,
<quote>The Music Downloading Deluge,
</quote> Pew
10518 Internet and American Life Project (
24 April
2001), available at
10519 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
46</ulink>.
10520 The Pew Internet and American Life Project reported that
37 million
10521 Americans had downloaded music files from the Internet by early
2001.
10523 According to the RIAA,
10524 the behavior of those
43 million Americans is a felony. We thus have a
10525 set of rules that transform
20 percent of America into criminals. As the
10527 <!-- PAGE BREAK 209 -->
10528 RIAA launches lawsuits against not only the Napsters and Kazaas of
10529 the world, but against students building search engines, and
10531 against ordinary users downloading content, the technologies for
10532 sharing will advance to further protect and hide illegal use. It is an arms
10533 race or a civil war, with the extremes of one side inviting a more
10535 response by the other.
10538 The content industry's tactics exploit the failings of the American
10539 legal system. When the RIAA brought suit against Jesse Jordan, it
10540 knew that in Jordan it had found a scapegoat, not a defendant. The
10541 threat of having to pay either all the money in the world in damages
10542 ($
15,
000,
000) or almost all the money in the world to defend against
10543 paying all the money in the world in damages ($
250,
000 in legal fees)
10544 led Jordan to choose to pay all the money he had in the world
10545 ($
12,
000) to make the suit go away. The same strategy animates the
10546 RIAA's suits against individual users. In September
2003, the RIAA
10547 sued
261 individuals
—including a twelve-year-old girl living in public
10548 housing and a seventy-year-old man who had no idea what file sharing
10549 was.
<footnote><para>
10551 Alex Pham,
<quote>The Labels Strike Back: N.Y. Girl Settles RIAA Case,
</quote> <citetitle>Los
10552 Angeles Times
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003, Business.
10554 As these scapegoats discovered, it will always cost more to defend
10555 against these suits than it would cost to simply settle. (The twelve
10556 year old, for example, like Jesse Jordan, paid her life savings of $
2,
000
10557 to settle the case.) Our law is an awful system for defending rights. It
10558 is an embarrassment to our tradition. And the consequence of our law
10559 as it is, is that those with the power can use the law to quash any rights
10562 <indexterm><primary>alcohol prohibition
</primary></indexterm>
10564 Wars of prohibition are nothing new in America. This one is just
10565 something more extreme than anything we've seen before. We
10566 experimented with alcohol prohibition, at a time when the per capita
10567 consumption of alcohol was
1.5 gallons per capita per year. The war
10568 against drinking initially reduced that consumption to just
30 percent
10569 of its preprohibition levels, but by the end of prohibition,
10570 consumption was up to
70 percent of the preprohibition
10571 level. Americans were drinking just about as much, but now, a vast
10572 number were criminals.
<footnote><para>
10574 Jeffrey A. Miron and Jeffrey Zwiebel,
<quote>Alcohol Consumption During
10575 Prohibition,
</quote> <citetitle>American Economic Review
</citetitle> 81, no.
2 (
1991):
242.
10578 <!-- PAGE BREAK 210 -->
10579 launched a war on drugs aimed at reducing the consumption of regulated
10580 narcotics that
7 percent (or
16 million) Americans now use.
<footnote><para>
10582 National Drug Control Policy: Hearing Before the House Government
10583 Reform Committee,
108th Cong.,
1st sess. (
5 March
2003) (statement of
10584 John P. Walters, director of National Drug Control Policy).
10586 That is a drop from the high (so to speak) in
1979 of
14 percent of
10587 the population. We regulate automobiles to the point where the vast
10588 majority of Americans violate the law every day. We run such a complex
10589 tax system that a majority of cash businesses regularly
10590 cheat.
<footnote><para>
10592 See James Andreoni, Brian Erard, and Jonathon Feinstein,
<quote>Tax
10593 Compliance,
</quote> <citetitle>Journal of Economic Literature
</citetitle> 36 (
1998):
818 (survey of
10594 compliance literature).
10596 We pride ourselves on our
<quote>free society,
</quote> but an endless array of
10597 ordinary behavior is regulated within our society. And as a result, a
10598 huge proportion of Americans regularly violate at least some law.
10600 <indexterm><primary>law schools
</primary></indexterm>
10602 This state of affairs is not without consequence. It is a particularly
10603 salient issue for teachers like me, whose job it is to teach law
10604 students about the importance of
<quote>ethics.
</quote> As my colleague Charlie
10605 Nesson told a class at Stanford, each year law schools admit thousands
10606 of students who have illegally downloaded music, illegally consumed
10607 alcohol and sometimes drugs, illegally worked without paying taxes,
10608 illegally driven cars. These are kids for whom behaving illegally is
10609 increasingly the norm. And then we, as law professors, are supposed to
10610 teach them how to behave ethically
—how to say no to bribes, or
10611 keep client funds separate, or honor a demand to disclose a document
10612 that will mean that your case is over. Generations of
10613 Americans
—more significantly in some parts of America than in
10614 others, but still, everywhere in America today
—can't live their
10615 lives both normally and legally, since
<quote>normally
</quote> entails a certain
10616 degree of illegality.
10619 The response to this general illegality is either to enforce the law
10620 more severely or to change the law. We, as a society, have to learn
10621 how to make that choice more rationally. Whether a law makes sense
10622 depends, in part, at least, upon whether the costs of the law, both
10623 intended and collateral, outweigh the benefits. If the costs, intended
10624 and collateral, do outweigh the benefits, then the law ought to be
10625 changed. Alternatively, if the costs of the existing system are much
10626 greater than the costs of an alternative, then we have a good reason
10627 to consider the alternative.
10631 <!-- PAGE BREAK 211 -->
10632 My point is not the idiotic one: Just because people violate a law, we
10633 should therefore repeal it. Obviously, we could reduce murder statistics
10634 dramatically by legalizing murder on Wednesdays and Fridays. But
10635 that wouldn't make any sense, since murder is wrong every day of the
10636 week. A society is right to ban murder always and everywhere.
10639 My point is instead one that democracies understood for generations,
10640 but that we recently have learned to forget. The rule of law depends
10641 upon people obeying the law. The more often, and more repeatedly, we
10642 as citizens experience violating the law, the less we respect the
10643 law. Obviously, in most cases, the important issue is the law, not
10644 respect for the law. I don't care whether the rapist respects the law
10645 or not; I want to catch and incarcerate the rapist. But I do care
10646 whether my students respect the law. And I do care if the rules of law
10647 sow increasing disrespect because of the extreme of regulation they
10648 impose. Twenty million Americans have come of age since the Internet
10649 introduced this different idea of
<quote>sharing.
</quote> We need to be able to
10650 call these twenty million Americans
<quote>citizens,
</quote> not
<quote>felons.
</quote>
10653 When at least forty-three million citizens download content from the
10654 Internet, and when they use tools to combine that content in ways
10655 unauthorized by copyright holders, the first question we should be
10656 asking is not how best to involve the FBI. The first question should
10657 be whether this particular prohibition is really necessary in order to
10658 achieve the proper ends that copyright law serves. Is there another
10659 way to assure that artists get paid without transforming forty-three
10660 million Americans into felons? Does it make sense if there are other
10661 ways to assure that artists get paid without transforming America into
10662 a nation of felons?
10665 This abstract point can be made more clear with a particular example.
10668 We all own CDs. Many of us still own phonograph records. These pieces
10669 of plastic encode music that in a certain sense we have bought. The
10670 law protects our right to buy and sell that plastic: It is not a
10671 copyright infringement for me to sell all my classical records at a
10674 <!-- PAGE BREAK 212 -->
10675 record store and buy jazz records to replace them. That
<quote>use
</quote> of the
10676 recordings is free.
10679 But as the MP3 craze has demonstrated, there is another use of
10680 phonograph records that is effectively free. Because these recordings
10681 were made without copy-protection technologies, I am
<quote>free
</quote> to copy,
10682 or
<quote>rip,
</quote> music from my records onto a computer hard disk. Indeed,
10683 Apple Corporation went so far as to suggest that
<quote>freedom
</quote> was a
10684 right: In a series of commercials, Apple endorsed the
<quote>Rip, Mix, Burn
</quote>
10685 capacities of digital technologies.
10687 <indexterm><primary>Andromeda
</primary></indexterm>
10688 <indexterm id='idxcdsmix' class='startofrange'
><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>mix technology and
</secondary></indexterm>
10690 This
<quote>use
</quote> of my records is certainly valuable. I have begun a large
10691 process at home of ripping all of my and my wife's CDs, and storing
10692 them in one archive. Then, using Apple's iTunes, or a wonderful
10693 program called Andromeda, we can build different play lists of our
10694 music: Bach, Baroque, Love Songs, Love Songs of Significant
10695 Others
—the potential is endless. And by reducing the costs of
10696 mixing play lists, these technologies help build a creativity with
10697 play lists that is itself independently valuable. Compilations of
10698 songs are creative and meaningful in their own right.
10701 This use is enabled by unprotected media
—either CDs or records.
10702 But unprotected media also enable file sharing. File sharing threatens
10703 (or so the content industry believes) the ability of creators to earn
10704 a fair return from their creativity. And thus, many are beginning to
10705 experiment with technologies to eliminate unprotected media. These
10706 technologies, for example, would enable CDs that could not be
10707 ripped. Or they might enable spy programs to identify ripped content
10708 on people's machines.
10711 If these technologies took off, then the building of large archives of
10712 your own music would become quite difficult. You might hang in hacker
10713 circles, and get technology to disable the technologies that protect
10714 the content. Trading in those technologies is illegal, but maybe that
10715 doesn't bother you much. In any case, for the vast majority of people,
10716 these protection technologies would effectively destroy the archiving
10718 <!-- PAGE BREAK 213 -->
10719 use of CDs. The technology, in other words, would force us all back to
10720 the world where we either listened to music by manipulating pieces of
10721 plastic or were part of a massively complex
<quote>digital rights
10722 management
</quote> system.
10724 <indexterm startref='idxcdsmix' class='endofrange'
/>
10726 If the only way to assure that artists get paid were the elimination
10727 of the ability to freely move content, then these technologies to
10728 interfere with the freedom to move content would be justifiable. But
10729 what if there were another way to assure that artists are paid,
10730 without locking down any content? What if, in other words, a different
10731 system could assure compensation to artists while also preserving the
10732 freedom to move content easily?
10735 My point just now is not to prove that there is such a system. I offer
10736 a version of such a system in the last chapter of this book. For now,
10737 the only point is the relatively uncontroversial one: If a different
10738 system achieved the same legitimate objectives that the existing
10739 copyright system achieved, but left consumers and creators much more
10740 free, then we'd have a very good reason to pursue this
10741 alternative
—namely, freedom. The choice, in other words, would
10742 not be between property and piracy; the choice would be between
10743 different property systems and the freedoms each allowed.
10746 I believe there is a way to assure that artists are paid without
10747 turning forty-three million Americans into felons. But the salient
10748 feature of this alternative is that it would lead to a very different
10749 market for producing and distributing creativity. The dominant few,
10750 who today control the vast majority of the distribution of content in
10751 the world, would no longer exercise this extreme of control. Rather,
10752 they would go the way of the horse-drawn buggy.
10755 Except that this generation's buggy manufacturers have already saddled
10756 Congress, and are riding the law to protect themselves against this
10757 new form of competition. For them the choice is between fortythree
10758 million Americans as criminals and their own survival.
10761 It is understandable why they choose as they do. It is not
10762 understandable why we as a democracy continue to choose as we do. Jack
10764 <!-- PAGE BREAK 214 -->
10766 Valenti is charming; but not so charming as to justify giving up a
10767 tradition as deep and important as our tradition of free culture.
10769 <indexterm><primary>Electronic Frontier Foundation
</primary></indexterm>
10770 <indexterm id='idxisps' class='startofrange'
><primary>ISPs (Internet service providers), user identities revealed by
</primary></indexterm>
10772 <emphasis role='strong'
>There's one more
</emphasis> aspect to this
10773 corruption that is particularly important to civil liberties, and
10774 follows directly from any war of prohibition. As Electronic Frontier
10775 Foundation attorney Fred von Lohmann describes, this is the
10776 <quote>collateral damage
</quote> that
<quote>arises whenever you turn
10777 a very large percentage of the population into criminals.
</quote> This
10778 is the collateral damage to civil liberties generally.
10780 <indexterm><primary>von Lohmann, Fred
</primary></indexterm>
10782 <quote>If you can treat someone as a putative lawbreaker,
</quote> von Lohmann
10787 then all of a sudden a lot of basic civil liberty protections
10788 evaporate to one degree or another.
… If you're a copyright
10789 infringer, how can you hope to have any privacy rights? If you're a
10790 copyright infringer, how can you hope to be secure against seizures of
10791 your computer? How can you hope to continue to receive Internet
10792 access?
… Our sensibilities change as soon as we think,
<quote>Oh, well,
10793 but that person's a criminal, a lawbreaker.
</quote> Well, what this campaign
10794 against file sharing has done is turn a remarkable percentage of the
10795 American Internet-using population into
<quote>lawbreakers.
</quote>
10799 And the consequence of this transformation of the American public
10800 into criminals is that it becomes trivial, as a matter of due process, to
10801 effectively erase much of the privacy most would presume.
10804 Users of the Internet began to see this generally in
2003 as the RIAA
10805 launched its campaign to force Internet service providers to turn over
10806 the names of customers who the RIAA believed were violating copyright
10807 law. Verizon fought that demand and lost. With a simple request to a
10808 judge, and without any notice to the customer at all, the identity of
10809 an Internet user is revealed.
10812 <!-- PAGE BREAK 215 -->
10813 The RIAA then expanded this campaign, by announcing a general strategy
10814 to sue individual users of the Internet who are alleged to have
10815 downloaded copyrighted music from file-sharing systems. But as we've
10816 seen, the potential damages from these suits are astronomical: If a
10817 family's computer is used to download a single CD's worth of music,
10818 the family could be liable for $
2 million in damages. That didn't stop
10819 the RIAA from suing a number of these families, just as they had sued
10820 Jesse Jordan.
<footnote><para>
10822 See Frank Ahrens,
<quote>RIAA's Lawsuits Meet Surprised Targets; Single
10823 Mother in Calif.,
12-Year-Old Girl in N.Y. Among Defendants,
</quote>
10824 <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003, E1; Chris Cobbs,
<quote>Worried Parents
10825 Pull Plug on File `Stealing'; With the Music Industry Cracking Down on
10826 File Swapping, Parents are Yanking Software from Home PCs to Avoid
10827 Being Sued,
</quote> <citetitle>Orlando Sentinel Tribune
</citetitle>,
30 August
2003, C1; Jefferson
10828 Graham,
<quote>Recording Industry Sues Parents,
</quote> <citetitle>USA Today
</citetitle>,
15 September
10829 2003,
4D; John Schwartz,
<quote>She Says She's No Music Pirate. No Snoop
10830 Fan, Either,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
25 September
2003, C1; Margo Varadi,
<quote>Is
10831 Brianna a Criminal?
</quote> <citetitle>Toronto Star
</citetitle>,
18 September
2003, P7.
10836 Even this understates the espionage that is being waged by the
10837 RIAA. A report from CNN late last summer described a strategy the
10838 RIAA had adopted to track Napster users.
<footnote><para>
10840 See
<quote>Revealed: How RIAA Tracks Downloaders: Music Industry Discloses
10841 Some Methods Used,
</quote> CNN.com, available at
10842 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
47</ulink>.
10844 Using a sophisticated hashing algorithm, the RIAA took what is in
10845 effect a fingerprint of every song in the Napster catalog. Any copy of
10846 one of those MP3s will have the same
<quote>fingerprint.
</quote>
10849 So imagine the following not-implausible scenario: Imagine a
10850 friend gives a CD to your daughter
—a collection of songs just
10851 like the cassettes you used to make as a kid. You don't know, and
10852 neither does your daughter, where these songs came from. But she
10853 copies these songs onto her computer. She then takes her computer to
10854 college and connects it to a college network, and if the college
10855 network is
<quote>cooperating
</quote> with the RIAA's espionage, and she hasn't
10856 properly protected her content from the network (do you know how to do
10857 that yourself ?), then the RIAA will be able to identify your daughter
10858 as a
<quote>criminal.
</quote> And under the rules that universities are beginning
10859 to deploy,
<footnote><para>
10861 See Jeff Adler,
<quote>Cambridge: On Campus, Pirates Are Not Penitent,
</quote>
10862 <citetitle>Boston Globe
</citetitle>,
18 May
2003, City Weekly,
1; Frank Ahrens,
<quote>Four
10863 Students Sued over Music Sites; Industry Group Targets File Sharing at
10864 Colleges,
</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
4 April
2003, E1; Elizabeth Armstrong,
10865 <quote>Students `Rip, Mix, Burn' at Their Own Risk,
</quote> <citetitle>Christian Science
10866 Monitor
</citetitle>,
2 September
2003,
20; Robert Becker and Angela Rozas,
<quote>Music
10867 Pirate Hunt Turns to Loyola; Two Students Names Are Handed Over;
10868 Lawsuit Possible,
</quote> <citetitle>Chicago Tribune
</citetitle>,
16 July
2003,
1C; Beth Cox,
<quote>RIAA
10869 Trains Antipiracy Guns on Universities,
</quote> <citetitle>Internet News
</citetitle>,
30 January
10870 2003, available at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link
10871 #
48</ulink>; Benny Evangelista,
<quote>Download Warning
101: Freshman
10872 Orientation This Fall to Include Record Industry Warnings Against File
10873 Sharing,
</quote> <citetitle>San Francisco Chronicle
</citetitle>,
11 August
2003, E11;
<quote>Raid, Letters
10874 Are Weapons at Universities,
</quote> <citetitle>USA Today
</citetitle>,
26 September
2000,
3D.
10876 your daughter can lose the right to use the university's computer
10877 network. She can, in some cases, be expelled.
10879 <indexterm startref='idxisps' class='endofrange'
/>
10880 <indexterm><primary>von Lohmann, Fred
</primary></indexterm>
10882 Now, of course, she'll have the right to defend herself. You can hire
10883 a lawyer for her (at $
300 per hour, if you're lucky), and she can
10884 plead that she didn't know anything about the source of the songs or
10885 that they came from Napster. And it may well be that the university
10886 believes her. But the university might not believe her. It might treat
10887 this
<quote>contraband
</quote> as presumptive of guilt. And as any number of
10890 <!-- PAGE BREAK 216 -->
10891 have already learned, our presumptions about innocence disappear in
10892 the middle of wars of prohibition. This war is no different.
10897 So when we're talking about numbers like forty to sixty million
10898 Americans that are essentially copyright infringers, you create a
10899 situation where the civil liberties of those people are very much in
10900 peril in a general matter. [I don't] think [there is any] analog where
10901 you could randomly choose any person off the street and be confident
10902 that they were committing an unlawful act that could put them on the
10903 hook for potential felony liability or hundreds of millions of dollars
10904 of civil liability. Certainly we all speed, but speeding isn't the
10905 kind of an act for which we routinely forfeit civil liberties. Some
10906 people use drugs, and I think that's the closest analog, [but] many
10907 have noted that the war against drugs has eroded all of our civil
10908 liberties because it's treated so many Americans as criminals. Well, I
10909 think it's fair to say that file sharing is an order of magnitude
10910 larger number of Americans than drug use.
… If forty to sixty
10911 million Americans have become lawbreakers, then we're really on a
10912 slippery slope to lose a lot of civil liberties for all forty to sixty
10917 When forty to sixty million Americans are considered
<quote>criminals
</quote> under
10918 the law, and when the law could achieve the same objective
—
10919 securing rights to authors
—without these millions being
10920 considered
<quote>criminals,
</quote> who is the villain? Americans or the law?
10921 Which is American, a constant war on our own people or a concerted
10922 effort through our democracy to change our law?
10925 <!-- PAGE BREAK 217 -->
10929 <part id=
"c-balances">
10930 <title>BALANCES
</title>
10933 <!-- PAGE BREAK 218 -->
10935 <emphasis role='strong'
>So here's
</emphasis> the picture: You're
10936 standing at the side of the road. Your car is on fire. You are angry
10937 and upset because in part you helped start the fire. Now you don't
10938 know how to put it out. Next to you is a bucket, filled with
10939 gasoline. Obviously, gasoline won't put the fire out.
10942 As you ponder the mess, someone else comes along. In a panic, she
10943 grabs the bucket. Before you have a chance to tell her to
10944 stop
—or before she understands just why she should
10945 stop
—the bucket is in the air. The gasoline is about to hit the
10946 blazing car. And the fire that gasoline will ignite is about to ignite
10950 <emphasis role='strong'
>A war
</emphasis> about copyright rages all
10951 around
—and we're all focusing on the wrong thing. No doubt,
10952 current technologies threaten existing businesses. No doubt they may
10953 threaten artists. But technologies change. The industry and
10954 technologists have plenty of ways to use technology to protect
10955 themselves against the current threats of the Internet. This is a fire
10956 that if let alone would burn itself out.
10959 <!-- PAGE BREAK 219 -->
10960 Yet policy makers are not willing to leave this fire to itself. Primed
10961 with plenty of lobbyists' money, they are keen to intervene to
10962 eliminate the problem they perceive. But the problem they perceive is
10963 not the real threat this culture faces. For while we watch this small
10964 fire in the corner, there is a massive change in the way culture is
10965 made that is happening all around.
10968 Somehow we have to find a way to turn attention to this more important
10969 and fundamental issue. Somehow we have to find a way to avoid pouring
10970 gasoline onto this fire.
10973 We have not found that way yet. Instead, we seem trapped in a simpler,
10974 binary view. However much many people push to frame this debate more
10975 broadly, it is the simple, binary view that remains. We rubberneck to
10976 look at the fire when we should be keeping our eyes on the road.
10979 This challenge has been my life these last few years. It has also been
10980 my failure. In the two chapters that follow, I describe one small
10981 brace of efforts, so far failed, to find a way to refocus this
10982 debate. We must understand these failures if we're to understand what
10983 success will require.
10987 <!-- PAGE BREAK 220 -->
10988 <chapter label=
"13" id=
"eldred">
10989 <title>CHAPTER THIRTEEN: Eldred
</title>
10990 <indexterm id='idxeldrederic' class='startofrange'
><primary>Eldred, Eric
</primary></indexterm>
10991 <indexterm id='idxhawthornenathaniel' class='startofrange'
><primary>Hawthorne, Nathaniel
</primary></indexterm>
10993 <emphasis role='strong'
>In
1995</emphasis>, a father was frustrated
10994 that his daughters didn't seem to like Hawthorne. No doubt there was
10995 more than one such father, but at least one did something about
10996 it. Eric Eldred, a retired computer programmer living in New
10997 Hampshire, decided to put Hawthorne on the Web. An electronic version,
10998 Eldred thought, with links to pictures and explanatory text, would
10999 make this nineteenth-century author's work come alive.
11001 <indexterm id='idxlibrariesofpublicdomainliterature' class='startofrange'
><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>of public-domain literature
</secondary></indexterm>
11002 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainlibraryofworksderivedfrom' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>library of works derived from
</secondary></indexterm>
11004 It didn't work
—at least for his daughters. They didn't find
11005 Hawthorne any more interesting than before. But Eldred's experiment
11006 gave birth to a hobby, and his hobby begat a cause: Eldred would build
11007 a library of public domain works by scanning these works and making
11008 them available for free.
11010 <indexterm id='idxdisneywalt5' class='startofrange'
><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
11011 <indexterm><primary>Grimm fairy tales
</primary></indexterm>
11013 Eldred's library was not simply a copy of certain public domain
11014 works, though even a copy would have been of great value to people
11015 across the world who can't get access to printed versions of these
11016 works. Instead, Eldred was producing derivative works from these
11017 public domain works. Just as Disney turned Grimm into stories more
11018 <!-- PAGE BREAK 221 -->
11019 accessible to the twentieth century, Eldred transformed Hawthorne, and
11020 many others, into a form more accessible
—technically
11021 accessible
—today.
11023 <indexterm><primary>Scarlet Letter, The (Hawthorne)
</primary></indexterm>
11025 Eldred's freedom to do this with Hawthorne's work grew from the same
11026 source as Disney's. Hawthorne's
<citetitle>Scarlet Letter
</citetitle> had passed into the
11027 public domain in
1907. It was free for anyone to take without the
11028 permission of the Hawthorne estate or anyone else. Some, such as Dover
11029 Press and Penguin Classics, take works from the public domain and
11030 produce printed editions, which they sell in bookstores across the
11031 country. Others, such as Disney, take these stories and turn them into
11032 animated cartoons, sometimes successfully (
<citetitle>Cinderella
</citetitle>), sometimes not
11033 (
<citetitle>The Hunchback of Notre Dame
</citetitle>,
<citetitle>Treasure Planet
</citetitle>). These are all
11034 commercial publications of public domain works.
11036 <indexterm startref='idxhawthornenathaniel' class='endofrange'
/>
11037 <indexterm startref='idxdisneywalt5' class='endofrange'
/>
11039 The Internet created the possibility of noncommercial publications of
11040 public domain works. Eldred's is just one example. There are literally
11041 thousands of others. Hundreds of thousands from across the world have
11042 discovered this platform of expression and now use it to share works
11043 that are, by law, free for the taking. This has produced what we might
11044 call the
<quote>noncommercial publishing industry,
</quote> which before the
11045 Internet was limited to people with large egos or with political or
11046 social causes. But with the Internet, it includes a wide range of
11047 individuals and groups dedicated to spreading culture
11048 generally.
<footnote><para>
11050 <indexterm><primary>pornography
</primary></indexterm>
11051 There's a parallel here with pornography that is a bit hard to
11052 describe, but it's a strong one. One phenomenon that the Internet
11053 created was a world of noncommercial pornographers
—people who
11054 were distributing porn but were not making money directly or
11055 indirectly from that distribution. Such a class didn't exist before
11056 the Internet came into being because the costs of distributing porn
11057 were so high. Yet this new class of distributors got special attention
11058 in the Supreme Court, when the Court struck down the Communications
11059 Decency Act of
1996. It was partly because of the burden on
11060 noncommercial speakers that the statute was found to exceed Congress's
11061 power. The same point could have been made about noncommercial
11062 publishers after the advent of the Internet. The Eric Eldreds of the
11063 world before the Internet were extremely few. Yet one would think it
11064 at least as important to protect the Eldreds of the world as to
11065 protect noncommercial pornographers.
</para></footnote>
11067 <indexterm id='idxcongressuscopyrighttermsextendedby2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>copyright terms extended by
</secondary></indexterm>
11068 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightdurationof6' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
11069 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightlawtermextensionsin2' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>term extensions in
</secondary></indexterm>
11070 <indexterm><primary>Frost, Robert
</primary></indexterm>
11071 <indexterm><primary>New Hampshire (Frost)
</primary></indexterm>
11072 <indexterm><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>in public domain
</secondary></indexterm>
11073 <indexterm id='idxpatentsfuturepatentsvsfuturecopyrightsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>future patents vs. future copyrights in
</secondary></indexterm>
11075 As I said, Eldred lives in New Hampshire. In
1998, Robert Frost's
11076 collection of poems
<citetitle>New Hampshire
</citetitle> was slated to
11077 pass into the public domain. Eldred wanted to post that collection in
11078 his free public library. But Congress got in the way. As I described
11079 in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
11080 linkend=
"property-i"/>, in
1998, for the eleventh time in forty years,
11081 Congress extended the terms of existing copyrights
—this time by
11082 twenty years. Eldred would not be free to add any works more recent
11083 than
1923 to his collection until
2019. Indeed, no copyrighted work
11084 would pass into the public domain until that year (and not even then,
11085 if Congress extends the term again). By contrast, in the same period,
11086 more than
1 million patents will pass into the public domain.
11088 <indexterm startref='idxlibrariesofpublicdomainliterature' class='endofrange'
/>
11089 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainlibraryofworksderivedfrom' class='endofrange'
/>
11090 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Mary
</primary></indexterm>
11091 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Sonny
</primary></indexterm>
11092 <indexterm id='idxcopyrightinperpetuity4' class='startofrange'
><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>in perpetuity
</secondary></indexterm>
11093 <indexterm id='idxsonnybonocopyrighttermextensionactctea2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act (CTEA) (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
11096 <!-- PAGE BREAK 222 -->
11097 This was the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act
11098 (CTEA), enacted in memory of the congressman and former musician
11099 Sonny Bono, who, his widow, Mary Bono, says, believed that
11100 <quote>copyrights should be forever.
</quote><footnote><para>
11102 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Mary
</primary></indexterm>
11103 <indexterm><primary>Bono, Sonny
</primary></indexterm>
11104 The full text is:
<quote>Sonny [Bono] wanted the term of copyright
11105 protection to last forever. I am informed by staff that such a change
11106 would violate the Constitution. I invite all of you to work with me to
11107 strengthen our copyright laws in all of the ways available to us. As
11108 you know, there is also Jack Valenti's proposal for a term to last
11109 forever less one day. Perhaps the Committee may look at that next
11110 Congress,
</quote> 144 Cong. Rec. H9946,
9951-
2 (October
7,
1998).
11113 <indexterm startref='idxpatentsfuturepatentsvsfuturecopyrightsin' class='endofrange'
/>
11114 <indexterm><primary>copyright law
</primary><secondary>felony punishment for infringement of
</secondary></indexterm>
11115 <indexterm><primary>NET (No Electronic Theft) Act (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
11116 <indexterm><primary>No Electronic Theft (NET) Act (
1998)
</primary></indexterm>
11117 <indexterm><primary>peer-to-peer (p2p) file sharing
</primary><secondary>felony punishments for
</secondary></indexterm>
11119 Eldred decided to fight this law. He first resolved to fight it through
11120 civil disobedience. In a series of interviews, Eldred announced that he
11121 would publish as planned, CTEA notwithstanding. But because of a
11122 second law passed in
1998, the NET (No Electronic Theft) Act, his act
11123 of publishing would make Eldred a felon
—whether or not anyone
11124 complained. This was a dangerous strategy for a disabled programmer
11127 <indexterm startref='idxsonnybonocopyrighttermextensionactctea2' class='endofrange'
/>
11128 <indexterm id='idxcongressusconstitutionalpowersof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>constitutional powers of
</secondary></indexterm>
11129 <indexterm id='idxconstitutionusprogressclauseof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>Progress Clause of
</secondary></indexterm>
11130 <indexterm id='idxprogressclause2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Progress Clause
</primary></indexterm>
11131 <indexterm id='idxlessiglawrenceeldredcaseinvolvementof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary><secondary>Eldred case involvement of
</secondary></indexterm>
11133 It was here that I became involved in Eldred's battle. I was a
11135 scholar whose first passion was constitutional
11137 And though constitutional law courses never focus upon the
11138 Progress Clause of the Constitution, it had always struck me as
11140 different. As you know, the Constitution says,
11144 Congress has the power to promote the Progress of Science
…
11145 by securing for limited Times to Authors
… exclusive Right to
11146 their
… Writings.
…
11149 <indexterm startref='idxeldrederic' class='endofrange'
/>
11151 As I've described, this clause is unique within the power-granting
11152 clause of Article I, section
8 of our Constitution. Every other clause
11153 granting power to Congress simply says Congress has the power to do
11154 something
—for example, to regulate
<quote>commerce among the several
11155 states
</quote> or
<quote>declare War.
</quote> But here, the
<quote>something
</quote> is something quite
11156 specific
—to
<quote>promote
… Progress
</quote>—through means that
11157 are also specific
— by
<quote>securing
</quote> <quote>exclusive Rights
</quote> (i.e.,
11158 copyrights)
<quote>for limited Times.
</quote>
11160 <indexterm startref='idxconstitutionusprogressclauseof2' class='endofrange'
/>
11161 <indexterm startref='idxprogressclause2' class='endofrange'
/>
11162 <indexterm startref='idxlessiglawrenceeldredcaseinvolvementof' class='endofrange'
/>
11163 <indexterm><primary>Jaszi, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
11165 In the past forty years, Congress has gotten into the practice of
11166 extending existing terms of copyright protection. What puzzled me
11167 about this was, if Congress has the power to extend existing terms,
11168 then the Constitution's requirement that terms be
<quote>limited
</quote> will have
11169 <!-- PAGE BREAK 223 -->
11170 no practical effect. If every time a copyright is about to expire,
11171 Congress has the power to extend its term, then Congress can achieve
11172 what the Constitution plainly forbids
—perpetual terms
<quote>on the
11173 installment plan,
</quote> as Professor Peter Jaszi so nicely put it.
11175 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightinperpetuity4' class='endofrange'
/>
11176 <indexterm startref='idxcongressusconstitutionalpowersof' class='endofrange'
/>
11177 <indexterm><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary><secondary>Eldred case involvement of
</secondary></indexterm>
11179 As an academic, my first response was to hit the books. I remember
11180 sitting late at the office, scouring on-line databases for any serious
11181 consideration of the question. No one had ever challenged Congress's
11182 practice of extending existing terms. That failure may in part be why
11183 Congress seemed so untroubled in its habit. That, and the fact that
11184 the practice had become so lucrative for Congress. Congress knows that
11185 copyright owners will be willing to pay a great deal of money to see
11186 their copyright terms extended. And so Congress is quite happy to keep
11187 this gravy train going.
11190 For this is the core of the corruption in our present system of
11191 government.
<quote>Corruption
</quote> not in the sense that representatives are
11192 bribed. Rather,
<quote>corruption
</quote> in the sense that the system induces the
11193 beneficiaries of Congress's acts to raise and give money to Congress
11194 to induce it to act. There's only so much time; there's only so much
11195 Congress can do. Why not limit its actions to those things it must
11196 do
—and those things that pay? Extending copyright terms pays.
11199 If that's not obvious to you, consider the following: Say you're one
11200 of the very few lucky copyright owners whose copyright continues to
11201 make money one hundred years after it was created. The Estate of
11202 Robert Frost is a good example. Frost died in
1963. His poetry
11203 continues to be extraordinarily valuable. Thus the Robert Frost estate
11204 benefits greatly from any extension of copyright, since no publisher
11205 would pay the estate any money if the poems Frost wrote could be
11206 published by anyone for free.
11209 So imagine the Robert Frost estate is earning $
100,
000 a year from
11210 three of Frost's poems. And imagine the copyright for those poems
11211 is about to expire. You sit on the board of the Robert Frost estate.
11212 Your financial adviser comes to your board meeting with a very grim
11216 <quote>Next year,
</quote> the adviser announces,
<quote>our copyrights in works A, B,
11218 <!-- PAGE BREAK 224 -->
11219 and C will expire. That means that after next year, we will no longer be
11220 receiving the annual royalty check of $
100,
000 from the publishers of
11221 those works.
</quote>
11224 <quote>There's a proposal in Congress, however,
</quote> she continues,
<quote>that
11225 could change this. A few congressmen are floating a bill to extend the
11226 terms of copyright by twenty years. That bill would be extraordinarily
11227 valuable to us. So we should hope this bill passes.
</quote>
11230 <quote>Hope?
</quote> a fellow board member says.
<quote>Can't we be doing something
11234 <quote>Well, obviously, yes,
</quote> the adviser responds.
<quote>We could contribute
11235 to the campaigns of a number of representatives to try to assure that
11236 they support the bill.
</quote>
11239 You hate politics. You hate contributing to campaigns. So you want
11240 to know whether this disgusting practice is worth it.
<quote>How much
11241 would we get if this extension were passed?
</quote> you ask the adviser.
<quote>How
11242 much is it worth?
</quote>
11245 <quote>Well,
</quote> the adviser says,
<quote>if you're confident that you will continue
11246 to get at least $
100,
000 a year from these copyrights, and you use the
11247 `discount rate' that we use to evaluate estate investments (
6 percent),
11248 then this law would be worth $
1,
146,
000 to the estate.
</quote>
11251 You're a bit shocked by the number, but you quickly come to the
11252 correct conclusion:
11255 <quote>So you're saying it would be worth it for us to pay more than
11256 $
1,
000,
000 in campaign contributions if we were confident those
11258 would assure that the bill was passed?
</quote>
11261 <quote>Absolutely,
</quote> the adviser responds.
<quote>It is worth it to you to
11263 up to the `present value' of the income you expect from these
11264 copyrights. Which for us means over $
1,
000,
000.
</quote>
11267 You quickly get the point
—you as the member of the board and, I
11268 trust, you the reader. Each time copyrights are about to expire, every
11269 beneficiary in the position of the Robert Frost estate faces the same
11270 choice: If they can contribute to get a law passed to extend copyrights,
11271 <!-- PAGE BREAK 225 -->
11272 they will benefit greatly from that extension. And so each time
11274 are about to expire, there is a massive amount of lobbying to get
11275 the copyright term extended.
11278 Thus a congressional perpetual motion machine: So long as legislation
11279 can be bought (albeit indirectly), there will be all the incentive in
11280 the world to buy further extensions of copyright.
11283 In the lobbying that led to the passage of the Sonny Bono
11285 Term Extension Act, this
<quote>theory
</quote> about incentives was proved
11286 real. Ten of the thirteen original sponsors of the act in the House
11287 received the maximum contribution from Disney's political action
11288 committee; in the Senate, eight of the twelve sponsors received
11289 contributions.
<footnote><para>
11290 <!-- f3. --> Associated Press,
<quote>Disney Lobbying for Copyright Extension No Mickey
11291 Mouse Effort; Congress OKs Bill Granting Creators
20 More Years,
</quote>
11292 <citetitle>Chicago Tribune
</citetitle>,
17 October
1998,
22.
11294 The RIAA and the MPAA are estimated to have spent over
11295 $
1.5 million lobbying in the
1998 election cycle. They paid out more
11296 than $
200,
000 in campaign contributions.
<footnote><para>
11297 <!-- f4. --> See Nick Brown,
<quote>Fair Use No More?: Copyright in the Information
11298 Age,
</quote> available at
11299 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
49</ulink>.
11301 Disney is estimated to have
11302 contributed more than $
800,
000 to reelection campaigns in the
11303 cycle.
<footnote><para>
11305 Alan K. Ota,
<quote>Disney in Washington: The Mouse That Roars,
</quote>
11306 <citetitle>Congressional Quarterly This Week
</citetitle>,
8 August
1990, available at
11307 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
50</ulink>.
11312 <emphasis role='strong'
>Constitutional law
</emphasis> is not oblivious
11313 to the obvious. Or at least, it need not be. So when I was considering
11314 Eldred's complaint, this reality about the never-ending incentives to
11315 increase the copyright term was central to my thinking. In my view, a
11316 pragmatic court committed to interpreting and applying the
11317 Constitution of our framers would see that if Congress has the power
11318 to extend existing terms, then there would be no effective
11319 constitutional requirement that terms be
<quote>limited.
</quote> If
11320 they could extend it once, they would extend it again and again and
11323 <indexterm startref='idxcongressuscopyrighttermsextendedby2' class='endofrange'
/>
11324 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightdurationof6' class='endofrange'
/>
11325 <indexterm startref='idxcopyrightlawtermextensionsin2' class='endofrange'
/>
11327 It was also my judgment that
<emphasis>this
</emphasis> Supreme Court
11328 would not allow Congress to extend existing terms. As anyone close to
11329 the Supreme Court's work knows, this Court has increasingly restricted
11330 the power of Congress when it has viewed Congress's actions as
11331 exceeding the power granted to it by the Constitution. Among
11332 constitutional scholars, the most famous example of this trend was the
11335 <!-- PAGE BREAK 226 -->
11336 decision in
1995 to strike down a law that banned the possession of
11340 Since
1937, the Supreme Court had interpreted Congress's granted
11341 powers very broadly; so, while the Constitution grants Congress the
11342 power to regulate only
<quote>commerce among the several states
</quote> (aka
11344 commerce
</quote>), the Supreme Court had interpreted that power to
11345 include the power to regulate any activity that merely affected
11350 As the economy grew, this standard increasingly meant that there was
11351 no limit to Congress's power to regulate, since just about every
11352 activity, when considered on a national scale, affects interstate
11353 commerce. A Constitution designed to limit Congress's power was
11354 instead interpreted to impose no limit.
11356 <indexterm><primary>Rehnquist, William H.
</primary></indexterm>
11358 The Supreme Court, under Chief Justice Rehnquist's command, changed
11359 that in
<citetitle>United States
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>. The government had
11360 argued that possessing guns near schools affected interstate
11361 commerce. Guns near schools increase crime, crime lowers property
11362 values, and so on. In the oral argument, the Chief Justice asked the
11363 government whether there was any activity that would not affect
11364 interstate commerce under the reasoning the government advanced. The
11365 government said there was not; if Congress says an activity affects
11366 interstate commerce, then that activity affects interstate
11367 commerce. The Supreme Court, the government said, was not in the
11368 position to second-guess Congress.
11371 <quote>We pause to consider the implications of the government's arguments,
</quote>
11372 the Chief Justice wrote.
<footnote><para>
11373 <!-- f6. --> <citetitle>United States
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>,
514 U.S.
549,
564 (
1995).
11375 If anything Congress says is interstate commerce must therefore be
11376 considered interstate commerce, then there would be no limit to
11377 Congress's power. The decision in
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> was reaffirmed five years
11378 later in
<citetitle>United States
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Morrison
</citetitle>.
<footnote><para>
11380 <citetitle>United States
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Morrison
</citetitle>,
529 U.S.
598 (
2000).
11384 If a principle were at work here, then it should apply to the Progress
11385 Clause as much as the Commerce Clause.
<footnote><para>
11387 If it is a principle about enumerated powers, then the principle
11388 carries from one enumerated power to another. The animating point in
11389 the context of the Commerce Clause was that the interpretation offered
11390 by the government would allow the government unending power to
11391 regulate commerce
—the limitation to interstate commerce
11392 notwithstanding. The same point is true in the context of the
11393 Copyright Clause. Here, too, the government's interpretation would
11394 allow the government unending power to regulate copyrights
—the
11395 limitation to
<quote>limited times
</quote> notwithstanding.
11397 And if it is applied to the Progress Clause, the principle should
11398 yield the conclusion that Congress
11399 <!-- PAGE BREAK 227 -->
11400 can't extend an existing term. If Congress could extend an existing
11401 term, then there would be no
<quote>stopping point
</quote> to Congress's power over
11402 terms, though the Constitution expressly states that there is such a
11403 limit. Thus, the same principle applied to the power to grant
11404 copyrights should entail that Congress is not allowed to extend the
11405 term of existing copyrights.
11408 <emphasis>If
</emphasis>, that is, the principle announced in
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>
11409 stood for a principle. Many believed the decision in
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> stood for
11410 politics
—a conservative Supreme Court, which believed in states'
11411 rights, using its power over Congress to advance its own personal
11412 political preferences. But I rejected that view of the Supreme Court's
11413 decision. Indeed, shortly after the decision, I wrote an article
11414 demonstrating the
<quote>fidelity
</quote> in such an interpretation of the
11415 Constitution. The idea that the Supreme Court decides cases based upon
11416 its politics struck me as extraordinarily boring. I was not going to
11417 devote my life to teaching constitutional law if these nine Justices
11418 were going to be petty politicians.
11420 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>copyright purpose established in
</secondary></indexterm>
11421 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>constitutional purpose of
</secondary></indexterm>
11422 <indexterm><primary>copyright
</primary><secondary>duration of
</secondary></indexterm>
11423 <indexterm><primary>Disney, Walt
</primary></indexterm>
11425 <emphasis role='strong'
>Now let's pause
</emphasis> for a moment to
11426 make sure we understand what the argument in
11427 <citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> was not about. By insisting on the
11428 Constitution's limits to copyright, obviously Eldred was not endorsing
11429 piracy. Indeed, in an obvious sense, he was fighting a kind of
11430 piracy
—piracy of the public domain. When Robert Frost wrote his
11431 work and when Walt Disney created Mickey Mouse, the maximum copyright
11432 term was just fifty-six years. Because of interim changes, Frost and
11433 Disney had already enjoyed a seventy-five-year monopoly for their
11434 work. They had gotten the benefit of the bargain that the Constitution
11435 envisions: In exchange for a monopoly protected for fifty-six years,
11436 they created new work. But now these entities were using their
11437 power
—expressed through the power of lobbyists' money
—to
11438 get another twenty-year dollop of monopoly. That twenty-year dollop
11439 would be taken from the public domain. Eric Eldred was fighting a
11440 piracy that affects us all.
11442 <indexterm><primary>Nashville Songwriters Association
</primary></indexterm>
11444 Some people view the public domain with contempt. In their brief
11446 <!-- PAGE BREAK 228 -->
11447 before the Supreme Court, the Nashville Songwriters Association
11448 wrote that the public domain is nothing more than
<quote>legal piracy.
</quote><footnote><para>
11450 Brief of the Nashville Songwriters Association,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle>
11451 v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
537 U.S.
186 (
2003) (No.
01-
618), n
.10, available
11452 at
<ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
51</ulink>.
11454 But it is not piracy when the law allows it; and in our constitutional
11455 system, our law requires it. Some may not like the Constitution's
11456 requirements, but that doesn't make the Constitution a pirate's
11460 As we've seen, our constitutional system requires limits on
11462 as a way to assure that copyright holders do not too heavily
11464 the development and distribution of our culture. Yet, as Eric
11465 Eldred discovered, we have set up a system that assures that copyright
11466 terms will be repeatedly extended, and extended, and extended. We
11467 have created the perfect storm for the public domain. Copyrights have
11468 not expired, and will not expire, so long as Congress is free to be
11469 bought to extend them again.
11472 <emphasis role='strong'
>It is valuable
</emphasis> copyrights that are
11473 responsible for terms being extended. Mickey Mouse and
11474 <quote>Rhapsody in Blue.
</quote> These works are too valuable for
11475 copyright owners to ignore. But the real harm to our society from
11476 copyright extensions is not that Mickey Mouse remains Disney's.
11477 Forget Mickey Mouse. Forget Robert Frost. Forget all the works from
11478 the
1920s and
1930s that have continuing commercial value. The real
11479 harm of term extension comes not from these famous works. The real
11480 harm is to the works that are not famous, not commercially exploited,
11481 and no longer available as a result.
11484 If you look at the work created in the first twenty years (
1923 to
11485 1942) affected by the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act,
11486 2 percent of that work has any continuing commercial value. It was the
11487 copyright holders for that
2 percent who pushed the CTEA through.
11488 But the law and its effect were not limited to that
2 percent. The law
11489 extended the terms of copyright generally.
<footnote><para>
11490 <!-- f10. --> The figure of
2 percent is an extrapolation from the study by the
11492 Research Service, in light of the estimated renewal ranges. See Brief
11493 of Petitioners,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
7, available at
11494 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
52</ulink>.
11499 Think practically about the consequence of this
11500 extension
—practically,
11501 as a businessperson, and not as a lawyer eager for more legal
11503 <!-- PAGE BREAK 229 -->
11504 work. In
1930,
10,
047 books were published. In
2000,
174 of those
11505 books were still in print. Let's say you were Brewster Kahle, and you
11506 wanted to make available to the world in your iArchive project the
11508 9,
873. What would you have to do?
11510 <indexterm><primary>archives, digital
</primary></indexterm>
11512 Well, first, you'd have to determine which of the
9,
873 books were
11513 still under copyright. That requires going to a library (these data are
11514 not on-line) and paging through tomes of books, cross-checking the
11515 titles and authors of the
9,
873 books with the copyright registration
11516 and renewal records for works published in
1930. That will produce a
11517 list of books still under copyright.
11520 Then for the books still under copyright, you would need to locate
11521 the current copyright owners. How would you do that?
11524 Most people think that there must be a list of these copyright
11526 somewhere. Practical people think this way. How could there be
11527 thousands and thousands of government monopolies without there
11528 being at least a list?
11531 But there is no list. There may be a name from
1930, and then in
11532 1959, of the person who registered the copyright. But just think
11534 about how impossibly difficult it would be to track down
11536 of such records
—especially since the person who registered is
11537 not necessarily the current owner. And we're just talking about
1930!
11540 <quote>But there isn't a list of who owns property generally,
</quote> the
11541 apologists for the system respond.
<quote>Why should there be a list of
11542 copyright owners?
</quote>
11545 Well, actually, if you think about it, there
<emphasis>are
</emphasis>
11546 plenty of lists of who owns what property. Think about deeds on
11547 houses, or titles to cars. And where there isn't a list, the code of
11548 real space is pretty good at suggesting who the owner of a bit of
11549 property is. (A swing set in your backyard is probably yours.) So
11550 formally or informally, we have a pretty good way to know who owns
11551 what tangible property.
11554 So: You walk down a street and see a house. You can know who
11555 owns the house by looking it up in the courthouse registry. If you see
11556 a car, there is ordinarily a license plate that will link the owner to the
11558 <!-- PAGE BREAK 230 -->
11559 car. If you see a bunch of children's toys sitting on the front lawn of a
11560 house, it's fairly easy to determine who owns the toys. And if you
11562 to see a baseball lying in a gutter on the side of the road, look
11563 around for a second for some kids playing ball. If you don't see any
11564 kids, then okay: Here's a bit of property whose owner we can't easily
11565 determine. It is the exception that proves the rule: that we ordinarily
11566 know quite well who owns what property.
11569 Compare this story to intangible property. You go into a library.
11570 The library owns the books. But who owns the copyrights? As I've
11572 described, there's no list of copyright owners. There are authors'
11573 names, of course, but their copyrights could have been assigned, or
11574 passed down in an estate like Grandma's old jewelry. To know who
11575 owns what, you would have to hire a private detective. The bottom
11576 line: The owner cannot easily be located. And in a regime like ours, in
11577 which it is a felony to use such property without the property owner's
11578 permission, the property isn't going to be used.
11581 The consequence with respect to old books is that they won't be
11582 digitized, and hence will simply rot away on shelves. But the
11584 for other creative works is much more dire.
11586 <indexterm id='idxageemichael' class='startofrange'
><primary>Agee, Michael
</primary></indexterm>
11587 <indexterm><primary>Hal Roach Studios
</primary></indexterm>
11588 <indexterm><primary>Laurel and Hardy Films
</primary></indexterm>
11589 <indexterm><primary>Lucky Dog, The
</primary></indexterm>
11591 Consider the story of Michael Agee, chairman of Hal Roach Studios,
11592 which owns the copyrights for the Laurel and Hardy films. Agee is a
11593 direct beneficiary of the Bono Act. The Laurel and Hardy films were
11594 made between
1921 and
1951. Only one of these films,
<citetitle>The Lucky Dog
</citetitle>, is
11595 currently out of copyright. But for the CTEA, films made after
1923
11596 would have begun entering the public domain. Because Agee controls the
11597 exclusive rights for these popular films, he makes a great deal of
11598 money. According to one estimate,
<quote>Roach has sold about
60,
000
11599 videocassettes and
50,
000 DVDs of the duo's silent
11600 films.
</quote><footnote><para>
11602 See David G. Savage,
<quote>High Court Scene of Showdown on Copyright Law,
</quote>
11603 <citetitle>Los Angeles Times
</citetitle>,
6 October
2002; David Streitfeld,
<quote>Classic Movies,
11604 Songs, Books at Stake; Supreme Court Hears Arguments Today on Striking
11605 Down Copyright Extension,
</quote> <citetitle>Orlando Sentinel Tribune
</citetitle>,
9 October
2002.
11609 Yet Agee opposed the CTEA. His reasons demonstrate a rare virtue in
11610 this culture: selflessness. He argued in a brief before the Supreme
11611 Court that the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act will, if left
11612 standing, destroy a whole generation of American film.
11615 His argument is straightforward. A tiny fraction of this work has
11617 <!-- PAGE BREAK 231 -->
11618 any continuing commercial value. The rest
—to the extent it
11619 survives at all
—sits in vaults gathering dust. It may be that
11620 some of this work not now commercially valuable will be deemed to be
11621 valuable by the owners of the vaults. For this to occur, however, the
11622 commercial benefit from the work must exceed the costs of making the
11623 work available for distribution.
11626 We can't know the benefits, but we do know a lot about the costs.
11627 For most of the history of film, the costs of restoring film were very
11628 high; digital technology has lowered these costs substantially. While
11629 it cost more than $
10,
000 to restore a ninety-minute black-and-white
11630 film in
1993, it can now cost as little as $
100 to digitize one hour of
11631 8 mm film.
<footnote><para>
11633 Brief of Hal Roach Studios and Michael Agee as Amicus Curiae
11634 Supporting the Petitoners,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
537
11635 U.S.
186 (
2003) (No.
01-
618),
12. See also Brief of Amicus Curiae
11636 filed on behalf of Petitioners by the Internet Archive,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle>
11637 v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>, available at
11638 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
53</ulink>.
11643 Restoration technology is not the only cost, nor the most
11645 Lawyers, too, are a cost, and increasingly, a very important one. In
11646 addition to preserving the film, a distributor needs to secure the rights.
11647 And to secure the rights for a film that is under copyright, you need to
11648 locate the copyright owner.
11651 Or more accurately,
<emphasis>owners
</emphasis>. As we've seen, there
11652 isn't only a single copyright associated with a film; there are
11653 many. There isn't a single person whom you can contact about those
11654 copyrights; there are as many as can hold the rights, which turns out
11655 to be an extremely large number. Thus the costs of clearing the rights
11656 to these films is exceptionally high.
11659 <quote>But can't you just restore the film, distribute it, and then pay the
11660 copyright owner when she shows up?
</quote> Sure, if you want to commit a
11661 felony. And even if you're not worried about committing a felony, when
11662 she does show up, she'll have the right to sue you for all the profits you
11663 have made. So, if you're successful, you can be fairly confident you'll be
11664 getting a call from someone's lawyer. And if you're not successful, you
11665 won't make enough to cover the costs of your own lawyer. Either way,
11666 you have to talk to a lawyer. And as is too often the case, saying you have
11667 to talk to a lawyer is the same as saying you won't make any money.
11670 For some films, the benefit of releasing the film may well exceed
11672 <!-- PAGE BREAK 232 -->
11673 these costs. But for the vast majority of them, there is no way the
11675 would outweigh the legal costs. Thus, for the vast majority of old
11676 films, Agee argued, the film will not be restored and distributed until
11677 the copyright expires.
11679 <indexterm startref='idxageemichael' class='endofrange'
/>
11681 But by the time the copyright for these films expires, the film will
11682 have expired. These films were produced on nitrate-based stock, and
11683 nitrate stock dissolves over time. They will be gone, and the metal
11685 in which they are now stored will be filled with nothing more
11689 <emphasis role='strong'
>Of all the
</emphasis> creative work produced
11690 by humans anywhere, a tiny fraction has continuing commercial
11691 value. For that tiny fraction, the copyright is a crucially important
11692 legal device. For that tiny fraction, the copyright creates incentives
11693 to produce and distribute the creative work. For that tiny fraction,
11694 the copyright acts as an
<quote>engine of free expression.
</quote>
11697 But even for that tiny fraction, the actual time during which the
11698 creative work has a commercial life is extremely short. As I've
11700 most books go out of print within one year. The same is true of
11701 music and film. Commercial culture is sharklike. It must keep moving.
11702 And when a creative work falls out of favor with the commercial
11704 the commercial life ends.
11707 Yet that doesn't mean the life of the creative work ends. We don't
11708 keep libraries of books in order to compete with Barnes
& Noble, and
11709 we don't have archives of films because we expect people to choose
11711 spending Friday night watching new movies and spending
11713 night watching a
1930 news documentary. The noncommercial life
11714 of culture is important and valuable
—for entertainment but also, and
11715 more importantly, for knowledge. To understand who we are, and
11716 where we came from, and how we have made the mistakes that we
11717 have, we need to have access to this history.
11720 Copyrights in this context do not drive an engine of free expression.
11722 <!-- PAGE BREAK 233 -->
11723 In this context, there is no need for an exclusive right. Copyrights in
11724 this context do no good.
11727 Yet, for most of our history, they also did little harm. For most of
11728 our history, when a work ended its commercial life, there was no
11729 <emphasis>copyright-related use
</emphasis> that would be inhibited by
11730 an exclusive right. When a book went out of print, you could not buy
11731 it from a publisher. But you could still buy it from a used book
11732 store, and when a used book store sells it, in America, at least,
11733 there is no need to pay the copyright owner anything. Thus, the
11734 ordinary use of a book after its commercial life ended was a use that
11735 was independent of copyright law.
11738 The same was effectively true of film. Because the costs of restoring
11739 a film
—the real economic costs, not the lawyer costs
—were
11740 so high, it was never at all feasible to preserve or restore
11741 film. Like the remains of a great dinner, when it's over, it's
11742 over. Once a film passed out of its commercial life, it may have been
11743 archived for a bit, but that was the end of its life so long as the
11744 market didn't have more to offer.
11747 In other words, though copyright has been relatively short for most
11748 of our history, long copyrights wouldn't have mattered for the works
11749 that lost their commercial value. Long copyrights for these works
11750 would not have interfered with anything.
11753 But this situation has now changed.
11755 <indexterm id='idxarchivesdigital2' class='startofrange'
><primary>archives, digital
</primary></indexterm>
11757 One crucially important consequence of the emergence of digital
11758 technologies is to enable the archive that Brewster Kahle dreams of.
11759 Digital technologies now make it possible to preserve and give access
11760 to all sorts of knowledge. Once a book goes out of print, we can now
11761 imagine digitizing it and making it available to everyone,
11762 forever. Once a film goes out of distribution, we could digitize it
11763 and make it available to everyone, forever. Digital technologies give
11764 new life to copyrighted material after it passes out of its commercial
11765 life. It is now possible to preserve and assure universal access to
11766 this knowledge and culture, whereas before it was not.
11769 <!-- PAGE BREAK 234 -->
11770 And now copyright law does get in the way. Every step of producing
11771 this digital archive of our culture infringes on the exclusive right
11772 of copyright. To digitize a book is to copy it. To do that requires
11773 permission of the copyright owner. The same with music, film, or any
11774 other aspect of our culture protected by copyright. The effort to make
11775 these things available to history, or to researchers, or to those who
11776 just want to explore, is now inhibited by a set of rules that were
11777 written for a radically different context.
11780 Here is the core of the harm that comes from extending terms: Now that
11781 technology enables us to rebuild the library of Alexandria, the law
11782 gets in the way. And it doesn't get in the way for any useful
11783 <emphasis>copyright
</emphasis> purpose, for the purpose of copyright
11784 is to enable the commercial market that spreads culture. No, we are
11785 talking about culture after it has lived its commercial life. In this
11786 context, copyright is serving no purpose
<emphasis>at all
</emphasis>
11787 related to the spread of knowledge. In this context, copyright is not
11788 an engine of free expression. Copyright is a brake.
11791 You may well ask,
<quote>But if digital technologies lower the costs for
11792 Brewster Kahle, then they will lower the costs for Random House, too.
11793 So won't Random House do as well as Brewster Kahle in spreading
11794 culture widely?
</quote>
11797 Maybe. Someday. But there is absolutely no evidence to suggest that
11798 publishers would be as complete as libraries. If Barnes
& Noble
11799 offered to lend books from its stores for a low price, would that
11800 eliminate the need for libraries? Only if you think that the only role
11801 of a library is to serve what
<quote>the market
</quote> would demand. But if you
11802 think the role of a library is bigger than this
—if you think its
11803 role is to archive culture, whether there's a demand for any
11804 particular bit of that culture or not
—then we can't count on the
11805 commercial market to do our library work for us.
11807 <indexterm startref='idxarchivesdigital2' class='endofrange'
/>
11809 I would be the first to agree that it should do as much as it can: We
11810 should rely upon the market as much as possible to spread and enable
11811 culture. My message is absolutely not antimarket. But where we see the
11812 market is not doing the job, then we should allow nonmarket forces the
11814 <!-- PAGE BREAK 235 -->
11815 freedom to fill the gaps. As one researcher calculated for American
11816 culture,
94 percent of the films, books, and music produced between
11817 1923 and
1946 is not commercially available. However much you love the
11818 commercial market, if access is a value, then
6 percent is a failure
11819 to provide that value.
<footnote><para>
11821 Jason Schultz,
<quote>The Myth of the
1976 Copyright `Chaos' Theory,
</quote> 20
11822 December
2002, available at
11823 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
54</ulink>.
11828 <emphasis role='strong'
>In January
1999</emphasis>, we filed a lawsuit
11829 on Eric Eldred's behalf in federal district court in Washington, D.C.,
11830 asking the court to declare the Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension
11831 Act unconstitutional. The two central claims that we made were (
1)
11832 that extending existing terms violated the Constitution's
11833 <quote>limited Times
</quote> requirement, and (
2) that extending terms
11834 by another twenty years violated the First Amendment.
11837 The district court dismissed our claims without even hearing an
11838 argument. A panel of the Court of Appeals for the D.C. Circuit also
11839 dismissed our claims, though after hearing an extensive argument. But
11840 that decision at least had a dissent, by one of the most conservative
11841 judges on that court. That dissent gave our claims life.
11844 Judge David Sentelle said the CTEA violated the requirement that
11845 copyrights be for
<quote>limited Times
</quote> only. His argument was as elegant as
11846 it was simple: If Congress can extend existing terms, then there is no
11847 <quote>stopping point
</quote> to Congress's power under the Copyright Clause. The
11848 power to extend existing terms means Congress is not required to grant
11849 terms that are
<quote>limited.
</quote> Thus, Judge Sentelle argued, the court had
11850 to interpret the term
<quote>limited Times
</quote> to give it meaning. And the best
11851 interpretation, Judge Sentelle argued, would be to deny Congress the
11852 power to extend existing terms.
11855 We asked the Court of Appeals for the D.C. Circuit as a whole to
11856 hear the case. Cases are ordinarily heard in panels of three, except for
11857 important cases or cases that raise issues specific to the circuit as a
11858 whole, where the court will sit
<quote>en banc
</quote> to hear the case.
11860 <indexterm><primary>Tatel, David
</primary></indexterm>
11862 The Court of Appeals rejected our request to hear the case en banc.
11863 This time, Judge Sentelle was joined by the most liberal member of the
11865 <!-- PAGE BREAK 236 -->
11866 D.C. Circuit, Judge David Tatel. Both the most conservative and the
11867 most liberal judges in the D.C. Circuit believed Congress had
11868 overstepped its bounds.
11871 It was here that most expected Eldred v. Ashcroft would die, for the
11872 Supreme Court rarely reviews any decision by a court of appeals. (It
11873 hears about one hundred cases a year, out of more than five thousand
11874 appeals.) And it practically never reviews a decision that upholds a
11875 statute when no other court has yet reviewed the statute.
11878 But in February
2002, the Supreme Court surprised the world by
11879 granting our petition to review the D.C. Circuit opinion. Argument
11880 was set for October of
2002. The summer would be spent writing
11881 briefs and preparing for argument.
11884 <emphasis role='strong'
>It is over
</emphasis> a year later as I write
11885 these words. It is still astonishingly hard. If you know anything at
11886 all about this story, you know that we lost the appeal. And if you
11887 know something more than just the minimum, you probably think there
11888 was no way this case could have been won. After our defeat, I received
11889 literally thousands of missives by well-wishers and supporters,
11890 thanking me for my work on behalf of this noble but doomed cause. And
11891 none from this pile was more significant to me than the e-mail from my
11892 client, Eric Eldred.
11895 But my client and these friends were wrong. This case could have
11896 been won. It should have been won. And no matter how hard I try to
11897 retell this story to myself, I can never escape believing that my own
11900 <indexterm><primary>Steward, Geoffrey
</primary></indexterm>
11902 <emphasis role='strong'
>The mistake
</emphasis> was made early, though
11903 it became obvious only at the very end. Our case had been supported
11904 from the very beginning by an extraordinary lawyer, Geoffrey Stewart,
11905 and by the law firm he had moved to, Jones, Day, Reavis and
11906 Pogue. Jones Day took a great deal of heat
11907 <!-- PAGE BREAK 237 -->
11908 from its copyright-protectionist clients for supporting us. They
11909 ignored this pressure (something that few law firms today would ever
11910 do), and throughout the case, they gave it everything they could.
11912 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
11913 <indexterm><primary>Bromberg, Dan
</primary></indexterm>
11914 <indexterm><primary>Steward, Geoffrey
</primary></indexterm>
11916 There were three key lawyers on the case from Jones Day. Geoff
11917 Stewart was the first, but then Dan Bromberg and Don Ayer became
11918 quite involved. Bromberg and Ayer in particular had a common view
11919 about how this case would be won: We would only win, they repeatedly
11920 told me, if we could make the issue seem
<quote>important
</quote> to the Supreme
11921 Court. It had to seem as if dramatic harm were being done to free
11922 speech and free culture; otherwise, they would never vote against
<quote>the
11923 most powerful media companies in the world.
</quote>
11926 I hate this view of the law. Of course I thought the Sonny Bono Act
11927 was a dramatic harm to free speech and free culture. Of course I still
11928 think it is. But the idea that the Supreme Court decides the law based
11929 on how important they believe the issues are is just wrong. It might be
11930 <quote>right
</quote> as in
<quote>true,
</quote> I thought, but it is
<quote>wrong
</quote> as in
<quote>it just shouldn't be
11931 that way.
</quote> As I believed that any faithful interpretation of what the
11932 framers of our Constitution did would yield the conclusion that the
11933 CTEA was unconstitutional, and as I believed that any faithful
11935 of what the First Amendment means would yield the
11936 conclusion that the power to extend existing copyright terms is
11938 I was not persuaded that we had to sell our case like soap.
11939 Just as a law that bans the swastika is unconstitutional not because the
11940 Court likes Nazis but because such a law would violate the
11942 so too, in my view, would the Court decide whether Congress's
11943 law was constitutional based on the Constitution, not based on whether
11944 they liked the values that the framers put in the Constitution.
11947 In any case, I thought, the Court must already see the danger and
11948 the harm caused by this sort of law. Why else would they grant review?
11949 There was no reason to hear the case in the Supreme Court if they
11950 weren't convinced that this regulation was harmful. So in my view, we
11951 didn't need to persuade them that this law was bad, we needed to show
11952 why it was unconstitutional.
11955 There was one way, however, in which I felt politics would matter
11957 <!-- PAGE BREAK 238 -->
11958 and in which I thought a response was appropriate. I was convinced
11959 that the Court would not hear our arguments if it thought these were
11960 just the arguments of a group of lefty loons. This Supreme Court was
11961 not about to launch into a new field of judicial review if it seemed
11962 that this field of review was simply the preference of a small
11963 political minority. Although my focus in the case was not to
11964 demonstrate how bad the Sonny Bono Act was but to demonstrate that it
11965 was unconstitutional, my hope was to make this argument against a
11966 background of briefs that covered the full range of political
11967 views. To show that this claim against the CTEA was grounded in
11968 <emphasis>law
</emphasis> and not politics, then, we tried to gather
11969 the widest range of credible critics
—credible not because they
11970 were rich and famous, but because they, in the aggregate, demonstrated
11971 that this law was unconstitutional regardless of one's politics.
11973 <indexterm><primary>Eagle Forum
</primary></indexterm>
11974 <indexterm><primary>Schlafly, Phyllis
</primary></indexterm>
11976 The first step happened all by itself. Phyllis Schlafly's
11977 organization, Eagle Forum, had been an opponent of the CTEA from the
11978 very beginning. Mrs. Schlafly viewed the CTEA as a sellout by
11979 Congress. In November
1998, she wrote a stinging editorial attacking
11980 the Republican Congress for allowing the law to pass. As she wrote,
11981 <quote>Do you sometimes wonder why bills that create a financial windfall to
11982 narrow special interests slide easily through the intricate
11983 legislative process, while bills that benefit the general public seem
11984 to get bogged down?
</quote> The answer, as the editorial documented, was the
11985 power of money. Schlafly enumerated Disney's contributions to the key
11986 players on the committees. It was money, not justice, that gave Mickey
11987 Mouse twenty more years in Disney's control, Schlafly argued.
11990 In the Court of Appeals, Eagle Forum was eager to file a brief
11991 supporting our position. Their brief made the argument that became the
11992 core claim in the Supreme Court: If Congress can extend the term of
11993 existing copyrights, there is no limit to Congress's power to set
11994 terms. That strong conservative argument persuaded a strong
11995 conservative judge, Judge Sentelle.
11997 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
11998 <indexterm><primary>Intel
</primary></indexterm>
11999 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
12000 <indexterm><primary>Eagle Forum
</primary></indexterm>
12002 In the Supreme Court, the briefs on our side were about as diverse as
12003 it gets. They included an extraordinary historical brief by the Free
12005 <!-- PAGE BREAK 239 -->
12006 Software Foundation (home of the GNU project that made GNU/Linux
12007 possible). They included a powerful brief about the costs of
12008 uncertainty by Intel. There were two law professors' briefs, one by
12009 copyright scholars and one by First Amendment scholars. There was an
12010 exhaustive and uncontroverted brief by the world's experts in the
12011 history of the Progress Clause. And of course, there was a new brief
12012 by Eagle Forum, repeating and strengthening its arguments.
12014 <indexterm><primary>American Association of Law Libraries
</primary></indexterm>
12015 <indexterm><primary>National Writers Union
</primary></indexterm>
12017 Those briefs framed a legal argument. Then to support the legal
12018 argument, there were a number of powerful briefs by libraries and
12019 archives, including the Internet Archive, the American Association of
12020 Law Libraries, and the National Writers Union.
12022 <indexterm><primary>Hal Roach Studios
</primary></indexterm>
12024 But two briefs captured the policy argument best. One made the
12025 argument I've already described: A brief by Hal Roach Studios argued
12026 that unless the law was struck, a whole generation of American film
12027 would disappear. The other made the economic argument absolutely
12030 <indexterm><primary>Akerlof, George
</primary></indexterm>
12031 <indexterm><primary>Arrow, Kenneth
</primary></indexterm>
12032 <indexterm><primary>Buchanan, James
</primary></indexterm>
12033 <indexterm><primary>Coase, Ronald
</primary></indexterm>
12034 <indexterm><primary>Friedman, Milton
</primary></indexterm>
12036 This economists' brief was signed by seventeen economists, including
12037 five Nobel Prize winners, including Ronald Coase, James Buchanan,
12038 Milton Friedman, Kenneth Arrow, and George Akerlof. The economists, as
12039 the list of Nobel winners demonstrates, spanned the political
12040 spectrum. Their conclusions were powerful: There was no plausible
12041 claim that extending the terms of existing copyrights would do
12042 anything to increase incentives to create. Such extensions were
12043 nothing more than
<quote>rent-seeking
</quote>—the fancy term economists use
12044 to describe special-interest legislation gone wild.
12046 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles
</primary></indexterm>
12047 <indexterm><primary>Morrison, Alan
</primary></indexterm>
12048 <indexterm><primary>Public Citizen
</primary></indexterm>
12049 <indexterm><primary>Reagan, Ronald
</primary></indexterm>
12051 The same effort at balance was reflected in the legal team we gathered
12052 to write our briefs in the case. The Jones Day lawyers had been with
12053 us from the start. But when the case got to the Supreme Court, we
12054 added three lawyers to help us frame this argument to this Court: Alan
12055 Morrison, a lawyer from Public Citizen, a Washington group that had
12056 made constitutional history with a series of seminal victories in the
12057 Supreme Court defending individual rights; my colleague and dean,
12058 Kathleen Sullivan, who had argued many cases in the Court, and
12060 <!-- PAGE BREAK 240 -->
12061 who had advised us early on about a First Amendment strategy; and
12062 finally, former solicitor general Charles Fried.
12064 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles
</primary></indexterm>
12065 <indexterm><primary>Congress, U.S.
</primary><secondary>constitutional powers of
</secondary></indexterm>
12066 <indexterm><primary>Constitution, U.S.
</primary><secondary>Commerce Clause of
</secondary></indexterm>
12068 Fried was a special victory for our side. Every other former solicitor
12069 general was hired by the other side to defend Congress's power to give
12070 media companies the special favor of extended copyright terms. Fried
12071 was the only one who turned down that lucrative assignment to stand up
12072 for something he believed in. He had been Ronald Reagan's chief lawyer
12073 in the Supreme Court. He had helped craft the line of cases that
12074 limited Congress's power in the context of the Commerce Clause. And
12075 while he had argued many positions in the Supreme Court that I
12076 personally disagreed with, his joining the cause was a vote of
12077 confidence in our argument.
12080 The government, in defending the statute, had its collection of
12081 friends, as well. Significantly, however, none of these
<quote>friends
</quote> included
12082 historians or economists. The briefs on the other side of the case were
12083 written exclusively by major media companies, congressmen, and
12087 The media companies were not surprising. They had the most to gain
12088 from the law. The congressmen were not surprising either
—they
12089 were defending their power and, indirectly, the gravy train of
12090 contributions such power induced. And of course it was not surprising
12091 that the copyright holders would defend the idea that they should
12092 continue to have the right to control who did what with content they
12095 <indexterm><primary>Gershwin, George
</primary></indexterm>
12096 <indexterm><primary>Porgy and Bess
</primary></indexterm>
12097 <indexterm><primary>pornography
</primary></indexterm>
12099 Dr. Seuss's representatives, for example, argued that it was
12100 better for the Dr. Seuss estate to control what happened to
12101 Dr. Seuss's work
— better than allowing it to fall into the
12102 public domain
—because if this creativity were in the public
12103 domain, then people could use it to
<quote>glorify drugs or to create
12104 pornography.
</quote><footnote><para>
12106 Brief of Amici Dr. Seuss Enterprise et al.,
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>,
537
12107 U.S. (
2003) (No.
01-
618),
19.
12109 That was also the motive of the Gershwin estate, which defended its
12110 <quote>protection
</quote> of the work of George Gershwin. They refuse, for example,
12111 to license
<citetitle>Porgy and Bess
</citetitle> to anyone who refuses to use African
12112 Americans in the cast.
<footnote><para>
12114 Dinitia Smith,
<quote>Immortal Words, Immortal Royalties? Even Mickey
12115 Mouse Joins the Fray,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Times
</citetitle>,
28 March
1998, B7.
12118 <!-- PAGE BREAK 241 -->
12119 their view of how this part of American culture should be controlled,
12120 and they wanted this law to help them effect that control.
12123 This argument made clear a theme that is rarely noticed in this
12124 debate. When Congress decides to extend the term of existing
12125 copyrights, Congress is making a choice about which speakers it will
12126 favor. Famous and beloved copyright owners, such as the Gershwin
12127 estate and Dr. Seuss, come to Congress and say,
<quote>Give us twenty years
12128 to control the speech about these icons of American culture. We'll do
12129 better with them than anyone else.
</quote> Congress of course likes to reward
12130 the popular and famous by giving them what they want. But when
12131 Congress gives people an exclusive right to speak in a certain way,
12132 that's just what the First Amendment is traditionally meant to block.
12135 We argued as much in a final brief. Not only would upholding the CTEA
12136 mean that there was no limit to the power of Congress to extend
12137 copyrights
—extensions that would further concentrate the market;
12138 it would also mean that there was no limit to Congress's power to play
12139 favorites, through copyright, with who has the right to speak.
12142 <emphasis role='strong'
>Between February
</emphasis> and October, there
12143 was little I did beyond preparing for this case. Early on, as I said,
12144 I set the strategy.
12146 <indexterm><primary>Rehnquist, William H.
</primary></indexterm>
12147 <indexterm><primary>O'Connor, Sandra Day
</primary></indexterm>
12149 The Supreme Court was divided into two important camps. One camp we
12150 called
<quote>the Conservatives.
</quote> The other we called
<quote>the Rest.
</quote> The
12151 Conservatives included Chief Justice Rehnquist, Justice O'Connor,
12152 Justice Scalia, Justice Kennedy, and Justice Thomas. These five had
12153 been the most consistent in limiting Congress's power. They were the
12154 five who had supported the
<citetitle>Lopez/Morrison
</citetitle> line
12155 of cases that said that an enumerated power had to be interpreted to
12156 assure that Congress's powers had limits.
12158 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen
</primary></indexterm>
12159 <indexterm id='idxginsburg' class='startofrange'
><primary>Ginsburg, Ruth Bader
</primary></indexterm>
12161 The Rest were the four Justices who had strongly opposed limits on
12162 Congress's power. These four
—Justice Stevens, Justice Souter,
12163 Justice Ginsburg, and Justice Breyer
—had repeatedly argued that
12165 <!-- PAGE BREAK 242 -->
12166 gives Congress broad discretion to decide how best to implement its
12167 powers. In case after case, these justices had argued that the Court's
12168 role should be one of deference. Though the votes of these four
12169 justices were the votes that I personally had most consistently agreed
12170 with, they were also the votes that we were least likely to get.
12173 In particular, the least likely was Justice Ginsburg's. In addition to
12174 her general view about deference to Congress (except where issues of
12175 gender are involved), she had been particularly deferential in the
12176 context of intellectual property protections. She and her daughter (an
12177 excellent and well-known intellectual property scholar) were cut from
12178 the same intellectual property cloth. We expected she would agree with
12179 the writings of her daughter: that Congress had the power in this
12180 context to do as it wished, even if what Congress wished made little
12183 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen
</primary></indexterm>
12185 Close behind Justice Ginsburg were two justices whom we also viewed as
12186 unlikely allies, though possible surprises. Justice Souter strongly
12187 favored deference to Congress, as did Justice Breyer. But both were
12188 also very sensitive to free speech concerns. And as we strongly
12189 believed, there was a very important free speech argument against
12190 these retrospective extensions.
12192 <indexterm startref='idxginsburg' class='endofrange'
/>
12194 The only vote we could be confident about was that of Justice
12195 Stevens. History will record Justice Stevens as one of the greatest
12196 judges on this Court. His votes are consistently eclectic, which just
12197 means that no simple ideology explains where he will stand. But he
12198 had consistently argued for limits in the context of intellectual property
12199 generally. We were fairly confident he would recognize limits here.
12202 This analysis of
<quote>the Rest
</quote> showed most clearly where our focus had to
12203 be: on the Conservatives. To win this case, we had to crack open these
12204 five and get at least a majority to go our way. Thus, the single
12205 overriding argument that animated our claim rested on the
12206 Conservatives' most important jurisprudential innovation
—the
12207 argument that Judge Sentelle had relied upon in the Court of Appeals,
12208 that Congress's power must be interpreted so that its enumerated
12209 powers have limits.
12212 This then was the core of our strategy
—a strategy for which I am
12213 responsible. We would get the Court to see that just as with the
12214 <citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>
12215 <!-- PAGE BREAK 243 -->
12216 case, under the government's argument here, Congress would always have
12217 unlimited power to extend existing terms. If anything was plain about
12218 Congress's power under the Progress Clause, it was that this power was
12219 supposed to be
<quote>limited.
</quote> Our aim would be to get the Court to
12220 reconcile
<citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> with
12221 <citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>: If Congress's power to regulate commerce
12222 was limited, then so, too, must Congress's power to regulate copyright
12226 <emphasis role='strong'
>The argument
</emphasis> on the government's
12227 side came down to this: Congress has done it before. It should be
12228 allowed to do it again. The government claimed that from the very
12229 beginning, Congress has been extending the term of existing
12230 copyrights. So, the government argued, the Court should not now say
12231 that practice is unconstitutional.
12234 There was some truth to the government's claim, but not much. We
12235 certainly agreed that Congress had extended existing terms in
1831
12236 and in
1909. And of course, in
1962, Congress began extending
12238 terms regularly
—eleven times in forty years.
12241 But this
<quote>consistency
</quote> should be kept in perspective. Congress
12243 existing terms once in the first hundred years of the Republic.
12244 It then extended existing terms once again in the next fifty. Those rare
12245 extensions are in contrast to the now regular practice of extending
12247 terms. Whatever restraint Congress had had in the past, that
12249 was now gone. Congress was now in a cycle of extensions; there
12250 was no reason to expect that cycle would end. This Court had not
12252 to intervene where Congress was in a similar cycle of extension.
12253 There was no reason it couldn't intervene here.
12256 <emphasis role='strong'
>Oral argument
</emphasis> was scheduled for the
12257 first week in October. I arrived in D.C. two weeks before the
12258 argument. During those two weeks, I was repeatedly
12259 <quote>mooted
</quote> by lawyers who had volunteered to
12261 <!-- PAGE BREAK 244 -->
12262 help in the case. Such
<quote>moots
</quote> are basically practice rounds, where
12263 wannabe justices fire questions at wannabe winners.
12266 I was convinced that to win, I had to keep the Court focused on a
12267 single point: that if this extension is permitted, then there is no limit to
12268 the power to set terms. Going with the government would mean that
12269 terms would be effectively unlimited; going with us would give
12271 a clear line to follow: Don't extend existing terms. The moots
12272 were an effective practice; I found ways to take every question back to
12275 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12276 <indexterm><primary>Reagan, Ronald
</primary></indexterm>
12277 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles
</primary></indexterm>
12279 One moot was before the lawyers at Jones Day. Don Ayer was the
12280 skeptic. He had served in the Reagan Justice Department with Solicitor
12281 General Charles Fried. He had argued many cases before the Supreme
12282 Court. And in his review of the moot, he let his concern speak:
12285 <quote>I'm just afraid that unless they really see the harm, they won't be
12286 willing to upset this practice that the government says has been a
12287 consistent practice for two hundred years. You have to make them see
12288 the harm
—passionately get them to see the harm. For if they
12289 don't see that, then we haven't any chance of winning.
</quote>
12291 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12293 He may have argued many cases before this Court, I thought, but
12294 he didn't understand its soul. As a clerk, I had seen the Justices do the
12295 right thing
—not because of politics but because it was right. As a law
12296 professor, I had spent my life teaching my students that this Court
12297 does the right thing
—not because of politics but because it is right. As
12298 I listened to Ayer's plea for passion in pressing politics, I understood
12299 his point, and I rejected it. Our argument was right. That was enough.
12300 Let the politicians learn to see that it was also good.
12303 <emphasis role='strong'
>The night before
</emphasis> the argument, a
12304 line of people began to form in front of the Supreme Court. The case
12305 had become a focus of the press and of the movement to free
12306 culture. Hundreds stood in line
12308 <!-- PAGE BREAK 245 -->
12309 for the chance to see the proceedings. Scores spent the night on the
12310 Supreme Court steps so that they would be assured a seat.
12313 Not everyone has to wait in line. People who know the Justices can
12314 ask for seats they control. (I asked Justice Scalia's chambers for seats for
12315 my parents, for example.) Members of the Supreme Court bar can get
12316 a seat in a special section reserved for them. And senators and
12318 have a special place where they get to sit, too. And finally, of
12319 course, the press has a gallery, as do clerks working for the Justices on
12320 the Court. As we entered that morning, there was no place that was
12321 not taken. This was an argument about intellectual property law, yet
12322 the halls were filled. As I walked in to take my seat at the front of the
12323 Court, I saw my parents sitting on the left. As I sat down at the table,
12324 I saw Jack Valenti sitting in the special section ordinarily reserved for
12325 family of the Justices.
12328 When the Chief Justice called me to begin my argument, I began
12329 where I intended to stay: on the question of the limits on Congress's
12330 power. This was a case about enumerated powers, I said, and whether
12331 those enumerated powers had any limit.
12333 <indexterm><primary>O'Connor, Sandra Day
</primary></indexterm>
12335 Justice O'Connor stopped me within one minute of my opening.
12336 The history was bothering her.
12340 justice o'connor: Congress has extended the term so often
12341 through the years, and if you are right, don't we run the risk of
12342 upsetting previous extensions of time? I mean, this seems to be a
12343 practice that began with the very first act.
12347 She was quite willing to concede
<quote>that this flies directly in the face
12348 of what the framers had in mind.
</quote> But my response again and again
12349 was to emphasize limits on Congress's power.
12353 mr. lessig: Well, if it flies in the face of what the framers had in
12354 mind, then the question is, is there a way of interpreting their
12355 <!-- PAGE BREAK 246 -->
12356 words that gives effect to what they had in mind, and the answer
12361 There were two points in this argument when I should have seen
12362 where the Court was going. The first was a question by Justice
12363 Kennedy, who observed,
12367 justice kennedy: Well, I suppose implicit in the argument that
12368 the '
76 act, too, should have been declared void, and that we
12369 might leave it alone because of the disruption, is that for all these
12370 years the act has impeded progress in science and the useful arts.
12371 I just don't see any empirical evidence for that.
12375 Here follows my clear mistake. Like a professor correcting a
12381 mr. lessig: Justice, we are not making an empirical claim at all.
12382 Nothing in our Copyright Clause claim hangs upon the empirical
12383 assertion about impeding progress. Our only argument is this is a
12384 structural limit necessary to assure that what would be an effectively
12385 perpetual term not be permitted under the copyright laws.
12388 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12390 That was a correct answer, but it wasn't the right answer. The right
12391 answer was instead that there was an obvious and profound harm. Any
12392 number of briefs had been written about it. He wanted to hear it. And
12393 here was the place Don Ayer's advice should have mattered. This was a
12394 softball; my answer was a swing and a miss.
12397 The second came from the Chief, for whom the whole case had been
12398 crafted. For the Chief Justice had crafted the
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> ruling,
12399 and we hoped that he would see this case as its second cousin.
12402 It was clear a second into his question that he wasn't at all
12403 sympathetic. To him, we were a bunch of anarchists. As he asked:
12405 <!-- PAGE BREAK 247 -->
12409 chief justice: Well, but you want more than that. You want the
12410 right to copy verbatim other people's books, don't you?
12413 mr. lessig: We want the right to copy verbatim works that
12414 should be in the public domain and would be in the public
12416 but for a statute that cannot be justified under ordinary First
12417 Amendment analysis or under a proper reading of the limits built
12418 into the Copyright Clause.
12421 <indexterm><primary>Olson, Theodore B.
</primary></indexterm>
12423 Things went better for us when the government gave its argument;
12424 for now the Court picked up on the core of our claim. As Justice Scalia
12425 asked Solicitor General Olson,
12429 justice scalia: You say that the functional equivalent of an unlimited
12430 time would be a violation [of the Constitution], but that's precisely
12431 the argument that's being made by petitioners here, that a limited
12432 time which is extendable is the functional equivalent of an unlimited
12437 When Olson was finished, it was my turn to give a closing rebuttal.
12438 Olson's flailing had revived my anger. But my anger still was directed
12439 to the academic, not the practical. The government was arguing as if
12440 this were the first case ever to consider limits on Congress's
12441 Copyright and Patent Clause power. Ever the professor and not the
12442 advocate, I closed by pointing out the long history of the Court
12443 imposing limits on Congress's power in the name of the Copyright and
12444 Patent Clause
— indeed, the very first case striking a law of
12445 Congress as exceeding a specific enumerated power was based upon the
12446 Copyright and Patent Clause. All true. But it wasn't going to move the
12450 <emphasis role='strong'
>As I left
</emphasis> the court that day, I
12451 knew there were a hundred points I wished I could remake. There were a
12452 hundred questions I wished I had
12454 <!-- PAGE BREAK 248 -->
12455 answered differently. But one way of thinking about this case left me
12459 The government had been asked over and over again, what is the limit?
12460 Over and over again, it had answered there is no limit. This was
12461 precisely the answer I wanted the Court to hear. For I could not
12462 imagine how the Court could understand that the government believed
12463 Congress's power was unlimited under the terms of the Copyright
12464 Clause, and sustain the government's argument. The solicitor general
12465 had made my argument for me. No matter how often I tried, I could not
12466 understand how the Court could find that Congress's power under the
12467 Commerce Clause was limited, but under the Copyright Clause,
12468 unlimited. In those rare moments when I let myself believe that we may
12469 have prevailed, it was because I felt this Court
—in particular,
12470 the Conservatives
—would feel itself constrained by the rule of
12471 law that it had established elsewhere.
12474 <emphasis role='strong'
>The morning
</emphasis> of January
15,
2003, I
12475 was five minutes late to the office and missed the
7:
00 A.M. call from
12476 the Supreme Court clerk. Listening to the message, I could tell in an
12477 instant that she had bad news to report.The Supreme Court had affirmed
12478 the decision of the Court of Appeals. Seven justices had voted in the
12479 majority. There were two dissents.
12482 A few seconds later, the opinions arrived by e-mail. I took the
12483 phone off the hook, posted an announcement to our blog, and sat
12484 down to see where I had been wrong in my reasoning.
12487 My
<emphasis>reasoning
</emphasis>. Here was a case that pitted all the
12488 money in the world against
<emphasis>reasoning
</emphasis>. And here
12489 was the last naïve law professor, scouring the pages, looking for
12493 I first scoured the opinion, looking for how the Court would
12494 distinguish the principle in this case from the principle in
12495 <citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>. The argument was nowhere to be found. The case was not even
12496 cited. The argument that was the core argument of our case did not
12497 even appear in the Court's opinion.
12499 <indexterm><primary>Ginsburg, Ruth Bader
</primary></indexterm>
12502 <!-- PAGE BREAK 249 -->
12503 Justice Ginsburg simply ignored the enumerated powers argument.
12504 Consistent with her view that Congress's power was not limited
12505 generally, she had found Congress's power not limited here.
12508 Her opinion was perfectly reasonable
—for her, and for Justice
12509 Souter. Neither believes in
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle>. It would be too much to expect them
12510 to write an opinion that recognized, much less explained, the doctrine
12511 they had worked so hard to defeat.
12514 But as I realized what had happened, I couldn't quite believe what I
12515 was reading. I had said there was no way this Court could reconcile
12516 limited powers with the Commerce Clause and unlimited powers with the
12517 Progress Clause. It had never even occurred to me that they could
12518 reconcile the two simply
<emphasis>by not addressing the
12519 argument
</emphasis>. There was no inconsistency because they would not
12520 talk about the two together. There was therefore no principle that
12521 followed from the
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> case: In that context, Congress's power would
12522 be limited, but in this context it would not.
12525 Yet by what right did they get to choose which of the framers' values
12526 they would respect? By what right did they
—the silent
12527 five
—get to select the part of the Constitution they would
12528 enforce based on the values they thought important? We were right back
12529 to the argument that I said I hated at the start: I had failed to
12530 convince them that the issue here was important, and I had failed to
12531 recognize that however much I might hate a system in which the Court
12532 gets to pick the constitutional values that it will respect, that is
12533 the system we have.
12535 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen
</primary></indexterm>
12537 Justices Breyer and Stevens wrote very strong dissents. Stevens's
12538 opinion was crafted internal to the law: He argued that the tradition
12539 of intellectual property law should not support this unjustified
12540 extension of terms. He based his argument on a parallel analysis that
12541 had governed in the context of patents (so had we). But the rest of
12542 the Court discounted the parallel
—without explaining how the
12543 very same words in the Progress Clause could come to mean totally
12544 different things depending upon whether the words were about patents
12545 or copyrights. The Court let Justice Stevens's charge go unanswered.
12547 <indexterm><primary>Breyer, Stephen
</primary></indexterm>
12549 <!-- PAGE BREAK 250 -->
12550 Justice Breyer's opinion, perhaps the best opinion he has ever
12551 written, was external to the Constitution. He argued that the term of
12552 copyrights has become so long as to be effectively unlimited. We had
12553 said that under the current term, a copyright gave an author
99.8
12554 percent of the value of a perpetual term. Breyer said we were wrong,
12555 that the actual number was
99.9997 percent of a perpetual term. Either
12556 way, the point was clear: If the Constitution said a term had to be
12557 <quote>limited,
</quote> and the existing term was so long as to be effectively
12558 unlimited, then it was unconstitutional.
12561 These two justices understood all the arguments we had made. But
12562 because neither believed in the
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> case, neither was willing to push
12563 it as a reason to reject this extension. The case was decided without
12564 anyone having addressed the argument that we had carried from Judge
12565 Sentelle. It was
<citetitle>Hamlet
</citetitle> without the Prince.
12568 <emphasis role='strong'
>Defeat brings depression
</emphasis>. They say
12569 it is a sign of health when depression gives way to anger. My anger
12570 came quickly, but it didn't cure the depression. This anger was of two
12573 <indexterm><primary>originalism
</primary></indexterm>
12575 It was first anger with the five
<quote>Conservatives.
</quote> It would have been
12576 one thing for them to have explained why the principle of
<citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> didn't
12577 apply in this case. That wouldn't have been a very convincing
12578 argument, I don't believe, having read it made by others, and having
12579 tried to make it myself. But it at least would have been an act of
12580 integrity. These justices in particular have repeatedly said that the
12581 proper mode of interpreting the Constitution is
<quote>originalism
</quote>—to
12582 first understand the framers' text, interpreted in their context, in
12583 light of the structure of the Constitution. That method had produced
12584 <citetitle>Lopez
</citetitle> and many other
<quote>originalist
</quote> rulings. Where was their
12585 <quote>originalism
</quote> now?
12588 Here, they had joined an opinion that never once tried to explain
12589 what the framers had meant by crafting the Progress Clause as they
12590 did; they joined an opinion that never once tried to explain how the
12591 structure of that clause would affect the interpretation of Congress's
12593 <!-- PAGE BREAK 251 -->
12594 power. And they joined an opinion that didn't even try to explain why
12595 this grant of power could be unlimited, whereas the Commerce Clause
12596 would be limited. In short, they had joined an opinion that did not
12597 apply to, and was inconsistent with, their own method for interpreting
12598 the Constitution. This opinion may well have yielded a result that
12599 they liked. It did not produce a reason that was consistent with their
12603 My anger with the Conservatives quickly yielded to anger with
12605 For I had let a view of the law that I liked interfere with a view of
12608 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12610 Most lawyers, and most law professors, have little patience for
12611 idealism about courts in general and this Supreme Court in particular.
12612 Most have a much more pragmatic view. When Don Ayer said that this
12613 case would be won based on whether I could convince the Justices that
12614 the framers' values were important, I fought the idea, because I
12615 didn't want to believe that that is how this Court decides. I insisted
12616 on arguing this case as if it were a simple application of a set of
12617 principles. I had an argument that followed in logic. I didn't need
12618 to waste my time showing it should also follow in popularity.
12621 As I read back over the transcript from that argument in October, I
12622 can see a hundred places where the answers could have taken the
12623 conversation in different directions, where the truth about the harm
12624 that this unchecked power will cause could have been made clear to
12625 this Court. Justice Kennedy in good faith wanted to be shown. I,
12626 idiotically, corrected his question. Justice Souter in good faith
12627 wanted to be shown the First Amendment harms. I, like a math teacher,
12628 reframed the question to make the logical point. I had shown them how
12629 they could strike this law of Congress if they wanted to. There were a
12630 hundred places where I could have helped them want to, yet my
12631 stubbornness, my refusal to give in, stopped me. I have stood before
12632 hundreds of audiences trying to persuade; I have used passion in that
12633 effort to persuade; but I
12634 <!-- PAGE BREAK 252 -->
12635 refused to stand before this audience and try to persuade with the
12636 passion I had used elsewhere. It was not the basis on which a court
12637 should decide the issue.
12639 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12640 <indexterm><primary>Fried, Charles
</primary></indexterm>
12642 Would it have been different if I had argued it differently? Would it
12643 have been different if Don Ayer had argued it? Or Charles Fried? Or
12647 My friends huddled around me to insist it would not. The Court
12648 was not ready, my friends insisted. This was a loss that was destined. It
12649 would take a great deal more to show our society why our framers were
12650 right. And when we do that, we will be able to show that Court.
12653 Maybe, but I doubt it. These Justices have no financial interest in
12654 doing anything except the right thing. They are not lobbied. They have
12655 little reason to resist doing right. I can't help but think that if I had
12656 stepped down from this pretty picture of dispassionate justice, I could
12659 <indexterm><primary>Jaszi, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
12661 And even if I couldn't, then that doesn't excuse what happened in
12662 January. For at the start of this case, one of America's leading
12663 intellectual property professors stated publicly that my bringing this
12664 case was a mistake.
<quote>The Court is not ready,
</quote> Peter Jaszi said; this
12665 issue should not be raised until it is.
12668 After the argument and after the decision, Peter said to me, and
12669 publicly, that he was wrong. But if indeed that Court could not have
12670 been persuaded, then that is all the evidence that's needed to know that
12671 here again Peter was right. Either I was not ready to argue this case in
12672 a way that would do some good or they were not ready to hear this case
12673 in a way that would do some good. Either way, the decision to bring
12674 this case
—a decision I had made four years before
—was wrong.
12677 <emphasis role='strong'
>While the reaction
</emphasis> to the Sonny
12678 Bono Act itself was almost unanimously negative, the reaction to the
12679 Court's decision was mixed. No one, at least in the press, tried to
12680 say that extending the term of copyright was a good idea. We had won
12681 that battle over ideas. Where
12683 <!-- PAGE BREAK 253 -->
12684 the decision was praised, it was praised by papers that had been
12685 skeptical of the Court's activism in other cases. Deference was a good
12686 thing, even if it left standing a silly law. But where the decision
12687 was attacked, it was attacked because it left standing a silly and
12688 harmful law.
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle> wrote in its editorial,
12692 In effect, the Supreme Court's decision makes it likely that we are
12693 seeing the beginning of the end of public domain and the birth of
12694 copyright perpetuity. The public domain has been a grand experiment,
12695 one that should not be allowed to die. The ability to draw freely on
12696 the entire creative output of humanity is one of the reasons we live
12697 in a time of such fruitful creative ferment.
12701 The best responses were in the cartoons. There was a gaggle of
12702 hilarious images
—of Mickey in jail and the like. The best, from
12703 my view of the case, was Ruben Bolling's, reproduced on the next page
12704 (
<xref linkend=
"fig-18"/>). The
<quote>powerful and wealthy
</quote> line is a bit
12705 unfair. But the punch in the face felt exactly like that.
12706 <indexterm><primary>Bolling, Ruben
</primary></indexterm>
12708 <figure id=
"fig-18">
12709 <title>Tom the Dancing Bug cartoon
</title>
12710 <graphic fileref=
"images/18.png" align=
"center" width=
"95%"></graphic>
12711 <indexterm><primary>Bolling, Ruben
</primary></indexterm>
12714 The image that will always stick in my head is that evoked by the
12715 quote from
<citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>. That
<quote>grand experiment
</quote> we call the
12716 <quote>public domain
</quote> is over? When I can make light of it, I think,
<quote>Honey,
12717 I shrunk the Constitution.
</quote> But I can rarely make light of it. We had
12718 in our Constitution a commitment to free culture. In the case that I
12719 fathered, the Supreme Court effectively renounced that commitment. A
12720 better lawyer would have made them see differently.
12722 <!-- PAGE BREAK 254 -->
12724 <chapter label=
"14" id=
"eldred-ii">
12725 <title>CHAPTER FOURTEEN: Eldred II
</title>
12727 <emphasis role='strong'
>The day
</emphasis>
12728 <citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> was decided, fate would have it that I
12729 was to travel to Washington, D.C. (The day the rehearing petition in
12730 <citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> was denied
—meaning the case was
12731 really finally over
—fate would have it that I was giving a
12732 speech to technologists at Disney World.) This was a particularly
12733 long flight to my least favorite city. The drive into the city from
12734 Dulles was delayed because of traffic, so I opened up my computer and
12735 wrote an op-ed piece.
12737 <indexterm><primary>Ayer, Don
</primary></indexterm>
12739 It was an act of contrition. During the whole of the flight from San
12740 Francisco to Washington, I had heard over and over again in my head
12741 the same advice from Don Ayer: You need to make them see why it is
12742 important. And alternating with that command was the question of
12743 Justice Kennedy:
<quote>For all these years the act has impeded progress in
12744 science and the useful arts. I just don't see any empirical evidence for
12745 that.
</quote> And so, having failed in the argument of constitutional principle,
12746 finally, I turned to an argument of politics.
12749 <citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle> published the piece. In it, I proposed a simple
12750 fix: Fifty years after a work has been published, the copyright owner
12751 <!-- PAGE BREAK 256 -->
12752 would be required to register the work and pay a small fee. If he paid
12753 the fee, he got the benefit of the full term of copyright. If he did not,
12754 the work passed into the public domain.
12757 We called this the Eldred Act, but that was just to give it a name.
12758 Eric Eldred was kind enough to let his name be used once again, but as
12759 he said early on, it won't get passed unless it has another name.
12762 Or another two names. For depending upon your perspective, this
12763 is either the
<quote>Public Domain Enhancement Act
</quote> or the
<quote>Copyright
12764 Term Deregulation Act.
</quote> Either way, the essence of the idea is clear
12765 and obvious: Remove copyright where it is doing nothing except
12766 blocking access and the spread of knowledge. Leave it for as long as
12767 Congress allows for those works where its worth is at least $
1. But for
12768 everything else, let the content go.
12770 <indexterm><primary>Forbes, Steve
</primary></indexterm>
12772 The reaction to this idea was amazingly strong. Steve Forbes endorsed
12773 it in an editorial. I received an avalanche of e-mail and letters
12774 expressing support. When you focus the issue on lost creativity,
12775 people can see the copyright system makes no sense. As a good
12776 Republican might say, here government regulation is simply getting in
12777 the way of innovation and creativity. And as a good Democrat might
12778 say, here the government is blocking access and the spread of
12779 knowledge for no good reason. Indeed, there is no real difference
12780 between Democrats and Republicans on this issue. Anyone can recognize
12781 the stupid harm of the present system.
12784 Indeed, many recognized the obvious benefit of the registration
12785 requirement. For one of the hardest things about the current system
12786 for people who want to license content is that there is no obvious
12787 place to look for the current copyright owners. Since registration is
12788 not required, since marking content is not required, since no
12789 formality at all is required, it is often impossibly hard to locate
12790 copyright owners to ask permission to use or license their work. This
12791 system would lower these costs, by establishing at least one registry
12792 where copyright owners could be identified.
12794 <indexterm><primary>Berlin Act (
1908)
</primary></indexterm>
12795 <indexterm><primary>Berne Convention (
1908)
</primary></indexterm>
12797 <!-- PAGE BREAK 257 -->
12798 As I described in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
12799 linkend=
"property-i"/>, formalities in copyright law were
12800 removed in
1976, when Congress followed the Europeans by abandoning
12801 any formal requirement before a copyright is granted.
<footnote><para>
12803 <indexterm><primary>German copyright law
</primary></indexterm>
12804 Until the
1908 Berlin Act of the Berne Convention, national copyright
12805 legislation sometimes made protection depend upon compliance with
12806 formalities such as registration, deposit, and affixation of notice of
12807 the author's claim of copyright. However, starting with the
1908 act,
12808 every text of the Convention has provided that
<quote>the enjoyment and the
12809 exercise
</quote> of rights guaranteed by the Convention
<quote>shall not be subject
12810 to any formality.
</quote> The prohibition against formalities is presently
12811 embodied in Article
5(
2) of the Paris Text of the Berne
12812 Convention. Many countries continue to impose some form of deposit or
12813 registration requirement, albeit not as a condition of
12814 copyright. French law, for example, requires the deposit of copies of
12815 works in national repositories, principally the National Museum.
12816 Copies of books published in the United Kingdom must be deposited in
12817 the British Library. The German Copyright Act provides for a Registrar
12818 of Authors where the author's true name can be filed in the case of
12819 anonymous or pseudonymous works. Paul Goldstein,
<citetitle>International
12820 Intellectual Property Law, Cases and Materials
</citetitle> (New York: Foundation
12821 Press,
2001),
153–54.
</para></footnote>
12822 The Europeans are said to view copyright as a
<quote>natural right.
</quote> Natural
12823 rights don't need forms to exist. Traditions, like the Anglo-American
12824 tradition that required copyright owners to follow form if their
12825 rights were to be protected, did not, the Europeans thought, properly
12826 respect the dignity of the author. My right as a creator turns on my
12827 creativity, not upon the special favor of the government.
12830 That's great rhetoric. It sounds wonderfully romantic. But it is
12831 absurd copyright policy. It is absurd especially for authors, because
12832 a world without formalities harms the creator. The ability to spread
12833 <quote>Walt Disney creativity
</quote> is destroyed when there is no simple way to
12834 know what's protected and what's not.
12836 <indexterm><primary>Berne Convention (
1908)
</primary></indexterm>
12838 The fight against formalities achieved its first real victory in
12839 Berlin in
1908. International copyright lawyers amended the Berne
12840 Convention in
1908, to require copyright terms of life plus fifty
12841 years, as well as the abolition of copyright formalities. The
12842 formalities were hated because the stories of inadvertent loss were
12843 increasingly common. It was as if a Charles Dickens character ran all
12844 copyright offices, and the failure to dot an
<citetitle>i
</citetitle> or cross a
12845 <citetitle>t
</citetitle> resulted in the loss of widows' only income.
12848 These complaints were real and sensible. And the strictness of the
12849 formalities, especially in the United States, was absurd. The law
12850 should always have ways of forgiving innocent mistakes. There is no
12851 reason copyright law couldn't, as well. Rather than abandoning
12852 formalities totally, the response in Berlin should have been to
12853 embrace a more equitable system of registration.
12856 Even that would have been resisted, however, because registration
12857 in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries was still expensive. It was
12858 also a hassle. The abolishment of formalities promised not only to save
12859 the starving widows, but also to lighten an unnecessary regulatory
12861 imposed upon creators.
12864 In addition to the practical complaint of authors in
1908, there was
12865 a moral claim as well. There was no reason that creative property
12867 <!-- PAGE BREAK 258 -->
12868 should be a second-class form of property. If a carpenter builds a
12869 table, his rights over the table don't depend upon filing a form with
12870 the government. He has a property right over the table
<quote>naturally,
</quote>
12871 and he can assert that right against anyone who would steal the table,
12872 whether or not he has informed the government of his ownership of the
12876 This argument is correct, but its implications are misleading. For the
12877 argument in favor of formalities does not depend upon creative
12878 property being second-class property. The argument in favor of
12879 formalities turns upon the special problems that creative property
12880 presents. The law of formalities responds to the special physics of
12881 creative property, to assure that it can be efficiently and fairly
12885 No one thinks, for example, that land is second-class property just
12886 because you have to register a deed with a court if your sale of land
12887 is to be effective. And few would think a car is second-class property
12888 just because you must register the car with the state and tag it with
12889 a license. In both of those cases, everyone sees that there is an
12890 important reason to secure registration
—both because it makes
12891 the markets more efficient and because it better secures the rights of
12892 the owner. Without a registration system for land, landowners would
12893 perpetually have to guard their property. With registration, they can
12894 simply point the police to a deed. Without a registration system for
12895 cars, auto theft would be much easier. With a registration system, the
12896 thief has a high burden to sell a stolen car. A slight burden is
12897 placed on the property owner, but those burdens produce a much better
12898 system of protection for property generally.
12901 It is similarly special physics that makes formalities important in
12902 copyright law. Unlike a carpenter's table, there's nothing in nature that
12903 makes it relatively obvious who might own a particular bit of creative
12904 property. A recording of Lyle Lovett's latest album can exist in a billion
12905 places without anything necessarily linking it back to a particular
12906 owner. And like a car, there's no way to buy and sell creative property
12907 with confidence unless there is some simple way to authenticate who is
12908 the author and what rights he has. Simple transactions are destroyed in
12910 <!-- PAGE BREAK 259 -->
12911 a world without formalities. Complex, expensive,
12912 <emphasis>lawyer
</emphasis> transactions take their place.
12913 <indexterm><primary>Lovett, Lyle
</primary></indexterm>
12916 This was the understanding of the problem with the Sonny Bono
12917 Act that we tried to demonstrate to the Court. This was the part it
12918 didn't
<quote>get.
</quote> Because we live in a system without formalities, there is no
12919 way easily to build upon or use culture from our past. If copyright
12920 terms were, as Justice Story said they would be,
<quote>short,
</quote> then this
12921 wouldn't matter much. For fourteen years, under the framers' system, a
12922 work would be presumptively controlled. After fourteen years, it would
12923 be presumptively uncontrolled.
12926 But now that copyrights can be just about a century long, the
12927 inability to know what is protected and what is not protected becomes
12928 a huge and obvious burden on the creative process. If the only way a
12929 library can offer an Internet exhibit about the New Deal is to hire a
12930 lawyer to clear the rights to every image and sound, then the
12931 copyright system is burdening creativity in a way that has never been
12932 seen before
<emphasis>because there are no formalities
</emphasis>.
12935 The Eldred Act was designed to respond to exactly this problem. If
12936 it is worth $
1 to you, then register your work and you can get the
12937 longer term. Others will know how to contact you and, therefore, how
12938 to get your permission if they want to use your work. And you will get
12939 the benefit of an extended copyright term.
12942 If it isn't worth it to you to register to get the benefit of an extended
12943 term, then it shouldn't be worth it for the government to defend your
12944 monopoly over that work either. The work should pass into the public
12945 domain where anyone can copy it, or build archives with it, or create a
12946 movie based on it. It should become free if it is not worth $
1 to you.
12949 Some worry about the burden on authors. Won't the burden of
12950 registering the work mean that the $
1 is really misleading? Isn't the
12951 hassle worth more than $
1? Isn't that the real problem with
12955 It is. The hassle is terrible. The system that exists now is awful. I
12956 completely agree that the Copyright Office has done a terrible job (no
12957 doubt because they are terribly funded) in enabling simple and cheap
12959 <!-- PAGE BREAK 260 -->
12960 registrations. Any real solution to the problem of formalities must
12961 address the real problem of
<emphasis>governments
</emphasis> standing
12962 at the core of any system of formalities. In this book, I offer such a
12963 solution. That solution essentially remakes the Copyright Office. For
12964 now, assume it was Amazon that ran the registration system. Assume it
12965 was one-click registration. The Eldred Act would propose a simple,
12966 one-click registration fifty years after a work was published. Based
12967 upon historical data, that system would move up to
98 percent of
12968 commercial work, commercial work that no longer had a commercial life,
12969 into the public domain within fifty years. What do you think?
12971 <indexterm><primary>Forbes, Steve
</primary></indexterm>
12973 <emphasis role='strong'
>When Steve Forbes
</emphasis> endorsed the
12974 idea, some in Washington began to pay attention. Many people contacted
12975 me pointing to representatives who might be willing to introduce the
12976 Eldred Act. And I had a few who directly suggested that they might be
12977 willing to take the first step.
12979 <indexterm><primary>Lofgren, Zoe
</primary></indexterm>
12981 One representative, Zoe Lofgren of California, went so far as to get
12982 the bill drafted. The draft solved any problem with international
12983 law. It imposed the simplest requirement upon copyright owners
12984 possible. In May
2003, it looked as if the bill would be
12985 introduced. On May
16, I posted on the Eldred Act blog,
<quote>we are
12986 close.
</quote> There was a general reaction in the blog community that
12987 something good might happen here.
12990 But at this stage, the lobbyists began to intervene. Jack Valenti and
12991 the MPAA general counsel came to the congresswoman's office to give
12992 the view of the MPAA. Aided by his lawyer, as Valenti told me, Valenti
12993 informed the congresswoman that the MPAA would oppose the Eldred
12994 Act. The reasons are embarrassingly thin. More importantly, their
12995 thinness shows something clear about what this debate is really about.
12998 The MPAA argued first that Congress had
<quote>firmly rejected the central
12999 concept in the proposed bill
</quote>—that copyrights be renewed. That
13000 was true, but irrelevant, as Congress's
<quote>firm rejection
</quote> had occurred
13001 <!-- PAGE BREAK 261 -->
13002 long before the Internet made subsequent uses much more likely.
13003 Second, they argued that the proposal would harm poor copyright
13004 owners
—apparently those who could not afford the $
1 fee. Third,
13005 they argued that Congress had determined that extending a copyright
13006 term would encourage restoration work. Maybe in the case of the small
13007 percentage of work covered by copyright law that is still commercially
13008 valuable, but again this was irrelevant, as the proposal would not cut
13009 off the extended term unless the $
1 fee was not paid. Fourth, the MPAA
13010 argued that the bill would impose
<quote>enormous
</quote> costs, since a
13011 registration system is not free. True enough, but those costs are
13012 certainly less than the costs of clearing the rights for a copyright
13013 whose owner is not known. Fifth, they worried about the risks if the
13014 copyright to a story underlying a film were to pass into the public
13015 domain. But what risk is that? If it is in the public domain, then the
13016 film is a valid derivative use.
13019 Finally, the MPAA argued that existing law enabled copyright owners to
13020 do this if they wanted. But the whole point is that there are
13021 thousands of copyright owners who don't even know they have a
13022 copyright to give. Whether they are free to give away their copyright
13023 or not
—a controversial claim in any case
—unless they know
13024 about a copyright, they're not likely to.
13027 <emphasis role='strong'
>At the beginning
</emphasis> of this book, I
13028 told two stories about the law reacting to changes in technology. In
13029 the one, common sense prevailed. In the other, common sense was
13030 delayed. The difference between the two stories was the power of the
13031 opposition
—the power of the side that fought to defend the
13032 status quo. In both cases, a new technology threatened old
13033 interests. But in only one case did those interest's have the power to
13034 protect themselves against this new competitive threat.
13037 I used these two cases as a way to frame the war that this book has
13038 been about. For here, too, a new technology is forcing the law to react.
13039 And here, too, we should ask, is the law following or resisting common
13040 sense? If common sense supports the law, what explains this common
13045 <!-- PAGE BREAK 262 -->
13046 When the issue is piracy, it is right for the law to back the
13047 copyright owners. The commercial piracy that I described is wrong and
13048 harmful, and the law should work to eliminate it. When the issue is
13049 p2p sharing, it is easy to understand why the law backs the owners
13050 still: Much of this sharing is wrong, even if much is harmless. When
13051 the issue is copyright terms for the Mickey Mouses of the world, it is
13052 possible still to understand why the law favors Hollywood: Most people
13053 don't recognize the reasons for limiting copyright terms; it is thus
13054 still possible to see good faith within the resistance.
13056 <indexterm><primary>Kelly, Kevin
</primary></indexterm>
13058 But when the copyright owners oppose a proposal such as the Eldred
13059 Act, then, finally, there is an example that lays bare the naked
13060 selfinterest driving this war. This act would free an extraordinary
13061 range of content that is otherwise unused. It wouldn't interfere with
13062 any copyright owner's desire to exercise continued control over his
13063 content. It would simply liberate what Kevin Kelly calls the
<quote>Dark
13064 Content
</quote> that fills archives around the world. So when the warriors
13065 oppose a change like this, we should ask one simple question:
13068 What does this industry really want?
13071 With very little effort, the warriors could protect their content. So
13072 the effort to block something like the Eldred Act is not really about
13073 protecting
<emphasis>their
</emphasis> content. The effort to block the
13074 Eldred Act is an effort to assure that nothing more passes into the
13075 public domain. It is another step to assure that the public domain
13076 will never compete, that there will be no use of content that is not
13077 commercially controlled, and that there will be no commercial use of
13078 content that doesn't require
<emphasis>their
</emphasis> permission
13082 The opposition to the Eldred Act reveals how extreme the other side
13083 is. The most powerful and sexy and well loved of lobbies really has as
13084 its aim not the protection of
<quote>property
</quote> but the rejection of a
13085 tradition. Their aim is not simply to protect what is
13086 theirs.
<emphasis>Their aim is to assure that all there is is what is
13090 It is not hard to understand why the warriors take this view. It is not
13091 hard to see why it would benefit them if the competition of the public
13093 <!-- PAGE BREAK 263 -->
13094 domain tied to the Internet could somehow be quashed. Just as RCA
13095 feared the competition of FM, they fear the competition of a public
13096 domain connected to a public that now has the means to create with it
13097 and to share its own creation.
13099 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
13100 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
13102 What is hard to understand is why the public takes this view. It is
13103 as if the law made airplanes trespassers. The MPAA stands with the
13104 Causbys and demands that their remote and useless property rights be
13105 respected, so that these remote and forgotten copyright holders might
13106 block the progress of others.
13109 All this seems to follow easily from this untroubled acceptance of the
13110 <quote>property
</quote> in intellectual property. Common sense supports it, and so
13111 long as it does, the assaults will rain down upon the technologies of
13112 the Internet. The consequence will be an increasing
<quote>permission
13113 society.
</quote> The past can be cultivated only if you can identify the
13114 owner and gain permission to build upon his work. The future will be
13115 controlled by this dead (and often unfindable) hand of the past.
13117 <!-- PAGE BREAK 264 -->
13120 <chapter label=
"15" id=
"c-conclusion">
13121 <title>CONCLUSION
</title>
13122 <indexterm id='idxafricamedicationsforhivpatientsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>Africa, medications for HIV patients in
</primary></indexterm>
13123 <indexterm id='idxaidsmedications' class='startofrange'
><primary>AIDS medications
</primary></indexterm>
13124 <indexterm id='idxantiretroviraldrugs' class='startofrange'
><primary>antiretroviral drugs
</primary></indexterm>
13125 <indexterm id='idxdevelopingcountriesforeignpatentcostsin2' class='startofrange'
><primary>developing countries, foreign patent costs in
</primary></indexterm>
13126 <indexterm id='idxdrugspharmaceutical' class='startofrange'
><primary>drugs
</primary><secondary>pharmaceutical
</secondary></indexterm>
13127 <indexterm id='idxhivaidstherapies' class='startofrange'
><primary>HIV/AIDS therapies
</primary></indexterm>
13129 <emphasis role='strong'
>There are more
</emphasis> than
35 million
13130 people with the AIDS virus worldwide. Twenty-five million of them live
13131 in sub-Saharan Africa. Seventeen million have already died. Seventeen
13132 million Africans is proportional percentage-wise to seven million
13133 Americans. More importantly, it is seventeen million Africans.
13136 There is no cure for AIDS, but there are drugs to slow its
13137 progression. These antiretroviral therapies are still experimental,
13138 but they have already had a dramatic effect. In the United States,
13139 AIDS patients who regularly take a cocktail of these drugs increase
13140 their life expectancy by ten to twenty years. For some, the drugs make
13141 the disease almost invisible.
13144 These drugs are expensive. When they were first introduced in the
13145 United States, they cost between $
10,
000 and $
15,
000 per person per
13146 year. Today, some cost $
25,
000 per year. At these prices, of course, no
13147 African nation can afford the drugs for the vast majority of its
13149 $
15,
000 is thirty times the per capita gross national product of
13150 Zimbabwe. At these prices, the drugs are totally unavailable.
<footnote><para>
13151 <!-- f1. --> Commission on Intellectual Property Rights,
<quote>Final Report: Integrating
13152 Intellectual Property Rights and Development Policy
</quote> (London,
2002),
13154 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
55</ulink>. According to a World Health Organization press
13156 issued
9 July
2002, only
230,
000 of the
6 million who need drugs in
13157 the developing world receive them
—and half of them are in Brazil.
13160 <indexterm id='idxpatentsonpharmaceuticals' class='startofrange'
><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>on pharmaceuticals
</secondary></indexterm>
13161 <indexterm id='idxpharmaceuticalpatents' class='startofrange'
><primary>pharmaceutical patents
</primary></indexterm>
13163 <!-- PAGE BREAK 265 -->
13164 These prices are not high because the ingredients of the drugs are
13165 expensive. These prices are high because the drugs are protected by
13166 patents. The drug companies that produced these life-saving mixes
13167 enjoy at least a twenty-year monopoly for their inventions. They use
13168 that monopoly power to extract the most they can from the market. That
13169 power is in turn used to keep the prices high.
13172 There are many who are skeptical of patents, especially drug
13173 patents. I am not. Indeed, of all the areas of research that might be
13174 supported by patents, drug research is, in my view, the clearest case
13175 where patents are needed. The patent gives the drug company some
13176 assurance that if it is successful in inventing a new drug to treat a
13177 disease, it will be able to earn back its investment and more. This is
13178 socially an extremely valuable incentive. I am the last person who
13179 would argue that the law should abolish it, at least without other
13183 But it is one thing to support patents, even drug patents. It is
13184 another thing to determine how best to deal with a crisis. And as
13185 African leaders began to recognize the devastation that AIDS was
13186 bringing, they started looking for ways to import HIV treatments at
13187 costs significantly below the market price.
13189 <indexterm id='idxinternationallaw2' class='startofrange'
><primary>international law
</primary></indexterm>
13190 <indexterm id='idxparallelimportation' class='startofrange'
><primary>parallel importation
</primary></indexterm>
13191 <indexterm id='idxsouthafricarepublicofpharmaceuticalimportsby' class='startofrange'
><primary>South Africa, Republic of, pharmaceutical imports by
</primary></indexterm>
13193 In
1997, South Africa tried one tack. It passed a law to allow the
13194 importation of patented medicines that had been produced or sold in
13195 another nation's market with the consent of the patent owner. For
13196 example, if the drug was sold in India, it could be imported into
13197 Africa from India. This is called
<quote>parallel importation,
</quote> and it is
13198 generally permitted under international trade law and is specifically
13199 permitted within the European Union.
<footnote>
13202 See Peter Drahos with John Braithwaite,
<citetitle>Information Feudalism: Who
13203 Owns the Knowledge Economy?
</citetitle> (New York: The New Press,
2003),
37.
13204 <indexterm><primary>Braithwaite, John
</primary></indexterm>
13205 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
13208 <indexterm><primary>United States Trade Representative (USTR)
</primary></indexterm>
13210 However, the United States government opposed the bill. Indeed, more
13211 than opposed. As the International Intellectual Property Association
13212 characterized it,
<quote>The U.S. government pressured South Africa
…
13213 not to permit compulsory licensing or parallel
13214 imports.
</quote><footnote><para>
13216 International Intellectual Property Institute (IIPI),
<citetitle>Patent
13217 Protection and Access to HIV/AIDS Pharmaceuticals in Sub-Saharan
13218 Africa, a Report Prepared for the World Intellectual Property
13219 Organization
</citetitle> (Washington, D.C.,
2000),
14, available at
13220 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
56</ulink>. For a
13221 firsthand account of the struggle over South Africa, see Hearing
13222 Before the Subcommittee on Criminal Justice, Drug Policy, and Human
13223 Resources, House Committee on Government Reform, H. Rep.,
1st sess.,
13224 Ser. No.
106-
126 (
22 July
1999),
150–57 (statement of James
13227 Through the Office of the United States Trade Representative, the
13228 government asked South Africa to change the law
—and to add
13229 pressure to that request, in
1998, the USTR listed South Africa for
13230 possible trade sanctions.
13231 <!-- PAGE BREAK 266 -->
13232 That same year, more than forty pharmaceutical companies began
13233 proceedings in the South African courts to challenge the government's
13234 actions. The United States was then joined by other governments from
13235 the EU. Their claim, and the claim of the pharmaceutical companies,
13236 was that South Africa was violating its obligations under
13237 international law by discriminating against a particular kind of
13238 patent
— pharmaceutical patents. The demand of these governments,
13239 with the United States in the lead, was that South Africa respect
13240 these patents as it respects any other patent, regardless of any
13241 effect on the treatment of AIDS within South Africa.
<footnote><para>
13243 International Intellectual Property Institute (IIPI),
<citetitle>Patent
13244 Protection and Access to HIV/AIDS Pharmaceuticals in Sub-Saharan
13245 Africa, a Report Prepared for the World Intellectual Property
13246 Organization
</citetitle> (Washington, D.C.,
2000),
15.
</para></footnote>
13248 <indexterm startref='idxparallelimportation' class='endofrange'
/>
13250 We should place the intervention by the United States in context. No
13251 doubt patents are not the most important reason that Africans don't
13252 have access to drugs. Poverty and the total absence of an effective
13253 health care infrastructure matter more. But whether patents are the
13254 most important reason or not, the price of drugs has an effect on
13255 their demand, and patents affect price. And so, whether massive or
13256 marginal, there was an effect from our government's intervention to
13257 stop the flow of medications into Africa.
13260 By stopping the flow of HIV treatment into Africa, the United
13261 States government was not saving drugs for United States citizens.
13262 This is not like wheat (if they eat it, we can't); instead, the flow that the
13263 United States intervened to stop was, in effect, a flow of knowledge:
13264 information about how to take chemicals that exist within Africa, and
13265 turn those chemicals into drugs that would save
15 to
30 million lives.
13268 Nor was the intervention by the United States going to protect the
13269 profits of United States drug companies
—at least, not substantially. It
13270 was not as if these countries were in the position to buy the drugs for
13271 the prices the drug companies were charging. Again, the Africans are
13272 wildly too poor to afford these drugs at the offered prices. Stopping the
13273 parallel import of these drugs would not substantially increase the sales
13277 Instead, the argument in favor of restricting this flow of
13278 information, which was needed to save the lives of millions, was an
13280 <!-- PAGE BREAK 267 -->
13281 about the sanctity of property.
<footnote><para>
13283 See Sabin Russell,
<quote>New Crusade to Lower AIDS Drug Costs: Africa's
13284 Needs at Odds with Firms' Profit Motive,
</quote> <citetitle>San Francisco Chronicle
</citetitle>,
24
13285 May
1999, A1, available at
13286 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
57</ulink>
13287 (
<quote>compulsory licenses and gray markets pose a threat to the entire
13288 system of intellectual property protection
</quote>); Robert Weissman,
<quote>AIDS
13289 and Developing Countries: Democratizing Access to Essential
13290 Medicines,
</quote> <citetitle>Foreign Policy in Focus
</citetitle> 4:
23 (August
1999), available at
13291 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
58</ulink>
13292 (describing U.S. policy); John A. Harrelson,
<quote>TRIPS, Pharmaceutical
13293 Patents, and the HIV/AIDS Crisis: Finding the Proper Balance Between
13294 Intellectual Property Rights and Compassion, a Synopsis,
</quote> <citetitle>Widener Law
13295 Symposium Journal
</citetitle> (Spring
2001):
175.
13296 <!-- PAGE BREAK 333 -->
13298 It was because
<quote>intellectual property
</quote> would be violated that these
13299 drugs should not flow into Africa. It was a principle about the
13300 importance of
<quote>intellectual property
</quote> that led these government actors
13301 to intervene against the South African response to AIDS.
13303 <indexterm startref='idxsouthafricarepublicofpharmaceuticalimportsby' class='endofrange'
/>
13305 Now just step back for a moment. There will be a time thirty years
13306 from now when our children look back at us and ask, how could we have
13307 let this happen? How could we allow a policy to be pursued whose
13308 direct cost would be to speed the death of
15 to
30 million Africans,
13309 and whose only real benefit would be to uphold the
<quote>sanctity
</quote> of an
13310 idea? What possible justification could there ever be for a policy
13311 that results in so many deaths? What exactly is the insanity that
13312 would allow so many to die for such an abstraction?
13314 <indexterm id='idxcorporationsinpharmaceuticalindustry' class='startofrange'
><primary>corporations
</primary><secondary>in pharmaceutical industry
</secondary></indexterm>
13316 Some blame the drug companies. I don't. They are corporations.
13317 Their managers are ordered by law to make money for the corporation.
13318 They push a certain patent policy not because of ideals, but because it is
13319 the policy that makes them the most money. And it only makes them the
13320 most money because of a certain corruption within our political system
—
13321 a corruption the drug companies are certainly not responsible for.
13324 The corruption is our own politicians' failure of integrity. For the
13325 drug companies would love
—they say, and I believe them
—to
13326 sell their drugs as cheaply as they can to countries in Africa and
13327 elsewhere. There are issues they'd have to resolve to make sure the
13328 drugs didn't get back into the United States, but those are mere
13329 problems of technology. They could be overcome.
13331 <indexterm id='idxintellectualpropertyrightsofdrugpatents' class='startofrange'
><primary>intellectual property rights
</primary><secondary>of drug patents
</secondary></indexterm>
13333 A different problem, however, could not be overcome. This is the
13334 fear of the grandstanding politician who would call the presidents of
13335 the drug companies before a Senate or House hearing, and ask,
<quote>How
13336 is it you can sell this HIV drug in Africa for only $
1 a pill, but the same
13337 drug would cost an American $
1,
500?
</quote> Because there is no
<quote>sound
13338 bite
</quote> answer to that question, its effect would be to induce regulation
13339 of prices in America. The drug companies thus avoid this spiral by
13340 avoiding the first step. They reinforce the idea that property should be
13341 <!-- PAGE BREAK 268 -->
13342 sacred. They adopt a rational strategy in an irrational context, with the
13343 unintended consequence that perhaps millions die. And that rational
13344 strategy thus becomes framed in terms of this ideal
—the sanctity of an
13345 idea called
<quote>intellectual property.
</quote>
13347 <indexterm startref='idxafricamedicationsforhivpatientsin' class='endofrange'
/>
13348 <indexterm startref='idxaidsmedications' class='endofrange'
/>
13349 <indexterm startref='idxantiretroviraldrugs' class='endofrange'
/>
13350 <indexterm startref='idxdevelopingcountriesforeignpatentcostsin2' class='endofrange'
/>
13351 <indexterm startref='idxdrugspharmaceutical' class='endofrange'
/>
13352 <indexterm startref='idxhivaidstherapies' class='endofrange'
/>
13353 <indexterm startref='idxcorporationsinpharmaceuticalindustry' class='endofrange'
/>
13355 So when the common sense of your child confronts you, what will
13356 you say? When the common sense of a generation finally revolts
13357 against what we have done, how will we justify what we have done?
13358 What is the argument?
13361 A sensible patent policy could endorse and strongly support the patent
13362 system without having to reach everyone everywhere in exactly the same
13363 way. Just as a sensible copyright policy could endorse and strongly
13364 support a copyright system without having to regulate the spread of
13365 culture perfectly and forever, a sensible patent policy could endorse
13366 and strongly support a patent system without having to block the
13367 spread of drugs to a country not rich enough to afford market prices
13368 in any case. A sensible policy, in other words, could be a balanced
13369 policy. For most of our history, both copyright and patent policies
13370 were balanced in just this sense.
13372 <indexterm startref='idxpatentsonpharmaceuticals' class='endofrange'
/>
13373 <indexterm startref='idxpharmaceuticalpatents' class='endofrange'
/>
13374 <indexterm startref='idxinternationallaw2' class='endofrange'
/>
13376 But we as a culture have lost this sense of balance. We have lost the
13377 critical eye that helps us see the difference between truth and
13378 extremism. A certain property fundamentalism, having no connection to
13379 our tradition, now reigns in this culture
—bizarrely, and with
13380 consequences more grave to the spread of ideas and culture than almost
13381 any other single policy decision that we as a democracy will make.
13383 <indexterm startref='idxintellectualpropertyrightsofdrugpatents' class='endofrange'
/>
13385 <emphasis role='strong'
>A simple idea
</emphasis> blinds us, and under
13386 the cover of darkness, much happens that most of us would reject if
13387 any of us looked. So uncritically do we accept the idea of property in
13388 ideas that we don't even notice how monstrous it is to deny ideas to a
13389 people who are dying without them. So uncritically do we accept the
13390 idea of property in culture that we don't even question when the
13391 control of that property removes our
13392 <!-- PAGE BREAK 269 -->
13393 ability, as a people, to develop our culture democratically. Blindness
13394 becomes our common sense. And the challenge for anyone who would
13395 reclaim the right to cultivate our culture is to find a way to make
13396 this common sense open its eyes.
13399 So far, common sense sleeps. There is no revolt. Common sense
13400 does not yet see what there could be to revolt about. The extremism
13401 that now dominates this debate fits with ideas that seem natural, and
13402 that fit is reinforced by the RCAs of our day. They wage a frantic war
13403 to fight
<quote>piracy,
</quote> and devastate a culture for creativity. They defend
13404 the idea of
<quote>creative property,
</quote> while transforming real creators into
13405 modern-day sharecroppers. They are insulted by the idea that rights
13406 should be balanced, even though each of the major players in this
13407 content war was itself a beneficiary of a more balanced ideal. The
13408 hypocrisy reeks. Yet in a city like Washington, hypocrisy is not even
13409 noticed. Powerful lobbies, complex issues, and MTV attention spans
13410 produce the
<quote>perfect storm
</quote> for free culture.
13412 <indexterm><primary>academic journals
</primary></indexterm>
13413 <indexterm><primary>biomedical research
</primary></indexterm>
13414 <indexterm id='idxintellectualpropertyrightsinternationalorganizationonissuesof' class='startofrange'
><primary>intellectual property rights
</primary><secondary>international organization on issues of
</secondary></indexterm>
13415 <indexterm><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>development of
</secondary></indexterm>
13416 <indexterm><primary>IBM
</primary></indexterm>
13417 <indexterm><primary>PLoS (Public Library of Science)
</primary></indexterm>
13418 <indexterm><primary>Public Library of Science (PLoS)
</primary></indexterm>
13419 <indexterm><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>public projects in
</secondary></indexterm>
13420 <indexterm><primary>single nucleotied polymorphisms (SNPs)
</primary></indexterm>
13421 <indexterm><primary>Wellcome Trust
</primary></indexterm>
13422 <indexterm id='idxworldintellectualpropertyorganizationwipo' class='startofrange'
><primary>World Intellectual Property Organization (WIPO)
</primary></indexterm>
13423 <indexterm><primary>World Wide Web
</primary></indexterm>
13424 <indexterm><primary>Global Positioning System
</primary></indexterm>
13425 <indexterm><primary>Reagan, Ronald
</primary></indexterm>
13426 <indexterm id='idxbiomedicalresearch' class='startofrange'
><primary>biomedical research
</primary></indexterm>
13428 <emphasis role='strong'
>In August
2003</emphasis>, a fight broke out
13429 in the United States about a decision by the World Intellectual
13430 Property Organization to cancel a meeting.
<footnote><para>
13431 <!-- f6. --> Jonathan Krim,
<quote>The Quiet War over Open-Source,
</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
13432 August
2003, E1, available at
13433 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
59</ulink>; William New,
<quote>Global Group's
13434 Shift on `Open Source' Meeting Spurs Stir,
</quote> <citetitle>National Journal's Technology
13435 Daily
</citetitle>,
19 August
2003, available at
13436 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
60</ulink>; William New,
<quote>U.S. Official
13437 Opposes `Open Source' Talks at WIPO,
</quote> <citetitle>National Journal's Technology
13438 Daily
</citetitle>,
19 August
2003, available at
13439 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
61</ulink>.
13441 At the request of a wide range of interests, WIPO had decided to hold
13442 a meeting to discuss
<quote>open and collaborative projects to create public
13443 goods.
</quote> These are projects that have been successful in producing
13444 public goods without relying exclusively upon a proprietary use of
13445 intellectual property. Examples include the Internet and the World
13446 Wide Web, both of which were developed on the basis of protocols in
13447 the public domain. It included an emerging trend to support open
13448 academic journals, including the Public Library of Science project
13449 that I describe in chapter
13450 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"c-afterword"/>. It
13451 included a project to develop single nucleotide polymorphisms (SNPs),
13452 which are thought to have great significance in biomedical
13453 research. (That nonprofit project comprised a consortium of the
13454 Wellcome Trust and pharmaceutical and technological companies,
13455 including Amersham Biosciences, AstraZeneca,
13456 <!-- PAGE BREAK 270 -->
13457 Aventis, Bayer, Bristol-Myers Squibb, Hoffmann-La Roche,
13458 Glaxo-SmithKline, IBM, Motorola, Novartis, Pfizer, and Searle.) It
13459 included the Global Positioning System, which Ronald Reagan set free
13460 in the early
1980s. And it included
<quote>open source and free software.
</quote>
13462 <indexterm startref='idxbiomedicalresearch' class='endofrange'
/>
13464 The aim of the meeting was to consider this wide range of projects
13465 from one common perspective: that none of these projects relied upon
13466 intellectual property extremism. Instead, in all of them, intellectual
13467 property was balanced by agreements to keep access open or to impose
13468 limitations on the way in which proprietary claims might be used.
13470 <indexterm id='idxlessiglawrenceininternationaldebateonintellectualproperty' class='startofrange'
><primary>Lessig, Lawrence
</primary><secondary>in international debate on intellectual property
</secondary></indexterm>
13472 From the perspective of this book, then, the conference was ideal.
<footnote><para>
13473 <!-- f7. --> I should disclose that I was one of the people who asked WIPO for the
13476 The projects within its scope included both commercial and
13477 noncommercial work. They primarily involved science, but from many
13478 perspectives. And WIPO was an ideal venue for this discussion, since
13479 WIPO is the preeminent international body dealing with intellectual
13482 <indexterm id='idxworldsummitontheinformationsocietywsis' class='startofrange'
><primary>World Summit on the Information Society (WSIS)
</primary></indexterm>
13484 Indeed, I was once publicly scolded for not recognizing this fact
13485 about WIPO. In February
2003, I delivered a keynote address to a
13486 preparatory conference for the World Summit on the Information Society
13487 (WSIS). At a press conference before the address, I was asked what I
13488 would say. I responded that I would be talking a little about the
13489 importance of balance in intellectual property for the development of
13490 an information society. The moderator for the event then promptly
13491 interrupted to inform me and the assembled reporters that no question
13492 about intellectual property would be discussed by WSIS, since those
13493 questions were the exclusive domain of WIPO. In the talk that I had
13494 prepared, I had actually made the issue of intellectual property
13495 relatively minor. But after this astonishing statement, I made
13496 intellectual property the sole focus of my talk. There was no way to
13497 talk about an
<quote>Information Society
</quote> unless one also talked about the
13498 range of information and culture that would be free. My talk did not
13499 make my immoderate moderator very happy. And she was no doubt correct
13500 that the scope of intellectual property protections was ordinarily the
13502 <!-- PAGE BREAK 271 -->
13503 WIPO. But in my view, there couldn't be too much of a conversation
13504 about how much intellectual property is needed, since in my view, the
13505 very idea of balance in intellectual property had been lost.
13508 So whether or not WSIS can discuss balance in intellectual property, I
13509 had thought it was taken for granted that WIPO could and should. And
13510 thus the meeting about
<quote>open and collaborative projects to create
13511 public goods
</quote> seemed perfectly appropriate within the WIPO agenda.
13513 <indexterm startref='idxintellectualpropertyrightsinternationalorganizationonissuesof' class='endofrange'
/>
13514 <indexterm startref='idxworldintellectualpropertyorganizationwipo' class='endofrange'
/>
13515 <indexterm startref='idxworldsummitontheinformationsocietywsis' class='endofrange'
/>
13516 <indexterm id='idxfreesoftwareopensourcesoftwarefsoss' class='startofrange'
><primary>free software/open-source software (FS/OSS)
</primary></indexterm>
13517 <indexterm><primary>Apple Corporation
</primary></indexterm>
13518 <indexterm id='idxmicrosoftonfreesoftware' class='startofrange'
><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>on free software
</secondary></indexterm>
13520 But there is one project within that list that is highly
13521 controversial, at least among lobbyists. That project is
<quote>open source
13522 and free software.
</quote> Microsoft in particular is wary of discussion of
13523 the subject. From its perspective, a conference to discuss open source
13524 and free software would be like a conference to discuss Apple's
13525 operating system. Both open source and free software compete with
13526 Microsoft's software. And internationally, many governments have begun
13527 to explore requirements that they use open source or free software,
13528 rather than
<quote>proprietary software,
</quote> for their own internal uses.
13530 <indexterm><primary><quote>copyleft
</quote> licenses
</primary></indexterm>
13531 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
13532 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
13533 <indexterm><primary>IBM
</primary></indexterm>
13535 I don't mean to enter that debate here. It is important only to
13536 make clear that the distinction is not between commercial and
13537 noncommercial software. There are many important companies that depend
13538 fundamentally upon open source and free software, IBM being the most
13539 prominent. IBM is increasingly shifting its focus to the GNU/Linux
13540 operating system, the most famous bit of
<quote>free software
</quote>—and IBM
13541 is emphatically a commercial entity. Thus, to support
<quote>open source and
13542 free software
</quote> is not to oppose commercial entities. It is, instead,
13543 to support a mode of software development that is different from
13544 Microsoft's.
<footnote><para>
13546 Microsoft's position about free and open source software is more
13547 sophisticated. As it has repeatedly asserted, it has no problem with
13548 <quote>open source
</quote> software or software in the public domain. Microsoft's
13549 principal opposition is to
<quote>free software
</quote> licensed under a
<quote>copyleft
</quote>
13550 license, meaning a license that requires the licensee to adopt the
13551 same terms on any derivative work. See Bradford L. Smith,
<quote>The Future
13552 of Software: Enabling the Marketplace to Decide,
</quote> <citetitle>Government Policy
13553 Toward Open Source Software
</citetitle> (Washington, D.C.: AEI-Brookings Joint
13554 Center for Regulatory Studies, American Enterprise Institute for
13555 Public Policy Research,
2002),
69, available at
13556 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
62</ulink>. See also
13557 Craig Mundie, Microsoft senior vice president,
<citetitle>The Commercial Software
13558 Model
</citetitle>, discussion at New York University Stern School of Business (
3
13559 May
2001), available at
13560 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
63</ulink>.
13563 <indexterm startref='idxlessiglawrenceininternationaldebateonintellectualproperty' class='endofrange'
/>
13564 <indexterm><primary>General Public License (GPL)
</primary></indexterm>
13565 <indexterm><primary>GPL (General Public License)
</primary></indexterm>
13567 More important for our purposes, to support
<quote>open source and free
13568 software
</quote> is not to oppose copyright.
<quote>Open source and free software
</quote>
13569 is not software in the public domain. Instead, like Microsoft's
13570 software, the copyright owners of free and open source software insist
13571 quite strongly that the terms of their software license be respected
13573 <!-- PAGE BREAK 272 -->
13574 adopters of free and open source software. The terms of that license
13575 are no doubt different from the terms of a proprietary software
13576 license. Free software licensed under the General Public License
13577 (GPL), for example, requires that the source code for the software be
13578 made available by anyone who modifies and redistributes the
13579 software. But that requirement is effective only if copyright governs
13580 software. If copyright did not govern software, then free software
13581 could not impose the same kind of requirements on its adopters. It
13582 thus depends upon copyright law just as Microsoft does.
13584 <indexterm id='idxintellectualpropertyrightsinternationalorganizationonissuesof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>intellectual property rights
</primary><secondary>international organization on issues of
</secondary></indexterm>
13585 <indexterm id='idxworldintellectualpropertyorganizationwipo2' class='startofrange'
><primary>World Intellectual Property Organization (WIPO)
</primary></indexterm>
13586 <indexterm id='idxkrimjonathan' class='startofrange'
><primary>Krim, Jonathan
</primary></indexterm>
13587 <indexterm><primary>Microsoft
</primary><secondary>WIPO meeting opposed by
</secondary></indexterm>
13589 It is therefore understandable that as a proprietary software
13590 developer, Microsoft would oppose this WIPO meeting, and
13591 understandable that it would use its lobbyists to get the United
13592 States government to oppose it, as well. And indeed, that is just what
13593 was reported to have happened. According to Jonathan Krim of the
13594 <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>, Microsoft's lobbyists succeeded in getting the United
13595 States government to veto the meeting.
<footnote><para>
13597 Krim,
<quote>The Quiet War over Open-Source,
</quote> available at
<ulink
13598 url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
64</ulink>.
13600 And without U.S. backing, the meeting was canceled.
13603 I don't blame Microsoft for doing what it can to advance its own
13604 interests, consistent with the law. And lobbying governments is
13605 plainly consistent with the law. There was nothing surprising about
13606 its lobbying here, and nothing terribly surprising about the most
13607 powerful software producer in the United States having succeeded in
13608 its lobbying efforts.
13610 <indexterm startref='idxmicrosoftonfreesoftware' class='endofrange'
/>
13611 <indexterm><primary>Boland, Lois
</primary></indexterm>
13613 What was surprising was the United States government's reason for
13614 opposing the meeting. Again, as reported by Krim, Lois Boland, acting
13615 director of international relations for the U.S. Patent and Trademark
13616 Office, explained that
<quote>open-source software runs counter to the
13617 mission of WIPO, which is to promote intellectual-property rights.
</quote>
13618 She is quoted as saying,
<quote>To hold a meeting which has as its purpose
13619 to disclaim or waive such rights seems to us to be contrary to the
13620 goals of WIPO.
</quote>
13622 <indexterm startref='idxkrimjonathan' class='endofrange'
/>
13624 These statements are astonishing on a number of levels.
13626 <indexterm startref='idxfreesoftwareopensourcesoftwarefsoss' class='endofrange'
/>
13627 <!-- PAGE BREAK 273 -->
13629 First, they are just flat wrong. As I described, most open source and
13630 free software relies fundamentally upon the intellectual property
13631 right called
<quote>copyright
</quote>. Without it, restrictions imposed by those
13632 licenses wouldn't work. Thus, to say it
<quote>runs counter
</quote> to the mission
13633 of promoting intellectual property rights reveals an extraordinary gap
13634 in understanding
—the sort of mistake that is excusable in a
13635 first-year law student, but an embarrassment from a high government
13636 official dealing with intellectual property issues.
13638 <indexterm><primary>World Summit on the Information Society (WSIS)
</primary></indexterm>
13639 <indexterm><primary>drugs
</primary><secondary>pharmaceutical
</secondary></indexterm>
13640 <indexterm><primary>generic drugs
</primary></indexterm>
13641 <indexterm><primary>patents
</primary><secondary>on pharmaceuticals
</secondary></indexterm>
13643 Second, who ever said that WIPO's exclusive aim was to
<quote>promote
</quote>
13644 intellectual property maximally? As I had been scolded at the
13645 preparatory conference of WSIS, WIPO is to consider not only how best
13646 to protect intellectual property, but also what the best balance of
13647 intellectual property is. As every economist and lawyer knows, the
13648 hard question in intellectual property law is to find that
13649 balance. But that there should be limits is, I had thought,
13650 uncontested. One wants to ask Ms. Boland, are generic drugs (drugs
13651 based on drugs whose patent has expired) contrary to the WIPO mission?
13652 Does the public domain weaken intellectual property? Would it have
13653 been better if the protocols of the Internet had been patented?
13655 <indexterm><primary>Gates, Bill
</primary></indexterm>
13657 Third, even if one believed that the purpose of WIPO was to maximize
13658 intellectual property rights, in our tradition, intellectual property
13659 rights are held by individuals and corporations. They get to decide
13660 what to do with those rights because, again, they are
13661 <emphasis>their
</emphasis> rights. If they want to
<quote>waive
</quote> or
13662 <quote>disclaim
</quote> their rights, that is, within our tradition, totally
13663 appropriate. When Bill Gates gives away more than $
20 billion to do
13664 good in the world, that is not inconsistent with the objectives of the
13665 property system. That is, on the contrary, just what a property system
13666 is supposed to be about: giving individuals the right to decide what
13667 to do with
<emphasis>their
</emphasis> property.
13669 <indexterm id='idxboland' class='startofrange'
><primary>Boland, Lois
</primary></indexterm>
13671 When Ms. Boland says that there is something wrong with a meeting
13672 <quote>which has as its purpose to disclaim or waive such rights,
</quote> she's
13673 saying that WIPO has an interest in interfering with the choices of
13674 <!-- PAGE BREAK 274 -->
13675 the individuals who own intellectual property rights. That somehow,
13676 WIPO's objective should be to stop an individual from
<quote>waiving
</quote> or
13677 <quote>disclaiming
</quote> an intellectual property right. That the interest of
13678 WIPO is not just that intellectual property rights be maximized, but
13679 that they also should be exercised in the most extreme and restrictive
13682 <indexterm id='idxfeudalsystem' class='startofrange'
><primary>feudal system
</primary></indexterm>
13683 <indexterm id='idxpropertyrightsfeudalsystemof' class='startofrange'
><primary>property rights
</primary><secondary>feudal system of
</secondary></indexterm>
13685 There is a history of just such a property system that is well known
13686 in the Anglo-American tradition. It is called
<quote>feudalism.
</quote> Under
13687 feudalism, not only was property held by a relatively small number of
13688 individuals and entities. And not only were the rights that ran with
13689 that property powerful and extensive. But the feudal system had a
13690 strong interest in assuring that property holders within that system
13691 not weaken feudalism by liberating people or property within their
13692 control to the free market. Feudalism depended upon maximum control
13693 and concentration. It fought any freedom that might interfere with
13696 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
13697 <indexterm><primary>Braithwaite, John
</primary></indexterm>
13699 As Peter Drahos and John Braithwaite relate, this is precisely the
13700 choice we are now making about intellectual property.
<footnote><para>
13702 See Drahos with Braithwaite,
<citetitle>Information Feudalism
</citetitle>,
210–20.
13703 <indexterm><primary>Drahos, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
13705 We will have an information society. That much is certain. Our only
13706 choice now is whether that information society will be
13707 <emphasis>free
</emphasis> or
<emphasis>feudal
</emphasis>. The trend is
13710 <indexterm startref='idxfeudalsystem' class='endofrange'
/>
13711 <indexterm startref='idxpropertyrightsfeudalsystemof' class='endofrange'
/>
13713 When this battle broke, I blogged it. A spirited debate within the
13714 comment section ensued. Ms. Boland had a number of supporters who
13715 tried to show why her comments made sense. But there was one comment
13716 that was particularly depressing for me. An anonymous poster wrote,
13719 <indexterm startref='idxintellectualpropertyrightsinternationalorganizationonissuesof2' class='endofrange'
/>
13720 <indexterm startref='idxworldintellectualpropertyorganizationwipo2' class='endofrange'
/>
13722 George, you misunderstand Lessig: He's only talking about the world as
13723 it should be (
<quote>the goal of WIPO, and the goal of any government,
13724 should be to promote the right balance of intellectual property rights,
13725 not simply to promote intellectual property rights
</quote>), not as it is. If
13726 we were talking about the world as it is, then of course Boland didn't
13727 say anything wrong. But in the world
13728 <!-- PAGE BREAK 275 -->
13729 as Lessig would have it, then of course she did. Always pay attention
13730 to the distinction between Lessig's world and ours.
13734 I missed the irony the first time I read it. I read it quickly and
13735 thought the poster was supporting the idea that seeking balance was
13736 what our government should be doing. (Of course, my criticism of Ms.
13737 Boland was not about whether she was seeking balance or not; my
13738 criticism was that her comments betrayed a first-year law student's
13739 mistake. I have no illusion about the extremism of our government,
13740 whether Republican or Democrat. My only illusion apparently is about
13741 whether our government should speak the truth or not.)
13743 <indexterm startref='idxboland' class='endofrange'
/>
13745 Obviously, however, the poster was not supporting that idea. Instead,
13746 the poster was ridiculing the very idea that in the real world, the
13747 <quote>goal
</quote> of a government should be
<quote>to promote the right balance
</quote> of
13748 intellectual property. That was obviously silly to him. And it
13749 obviously betrayed, he believed, my own silly utopianism.
<quote>Typical for
13750 an academic,
</quote> the poster might well have continued.
13753 I understand criticism of academic utopianism. I think utopianism is
13754 silly, too, and I'd be the first to poke fun at the absurdly
13755 unrealistic ideals of academics throughout history (and not just in
13756 our own country's history).
13759 But when it has become silly to suppose that the role of our
13760 government should be to
<quote>seek balance,
</quote> then count me with the silly,
13761 for that means that this has become quite serious indeed. If it should
13762 be obvious to everyone that the government does not seek balance, that
13763 the government is simply the tool of the most powerful lobbyists, that
13764 the idea of holding the government to a different standard is absurd,
13765 that the idea of demanding of the government that it speak truth and
13766 not lies is just na
ïve, then who have we, the most powerful
13767 democracy in the world, become?
13770 It might be crazy to expect a high government official to speak
13771 the truth. It might be crazy to believe that government policy will be
13772 something more than the handmaiden of the most powerful interests.
13773 <!-- PAGE BREAK 276 -->
13774 It might be crazy to argue that we should preserve a tradition that has
13775 been part of our tradition for most of our history
—free culture.
13778 If this is crazy, then let there be more crazies. Soon.
13780 <indexterm><primary>CodePink Women in Peace
</primary></indexterm>
13781 <indexterm><primary>Safire, William
</primary></indexterm>
13782 <indexterm><primary>Turner, Ted
</primary></indexterm>
13784 <emphasis role='strong'
>There are moments
</emphasis> of hope in this
13785 struggle. And moments that surprise. When the FCC was considering
13786 relaxing ownership rules, which would thereby further increase the
13787 concentration in media ownership, an extraordinary bipartisan
13788 coalition formed to fight this change. For perhaps the first time in
13789 history, interests as diverse as the NRA, the ACLU, Moveon.org,
13790 William Safire, Ted Turner, and CodePink Women for Peace organized to
13791 oppose this change in FCC policy. An astonishing
700,
000 letters were
13792 sent to the FCC, demanding more hearings and a different result.
13795 This activism did not stop the FCC, but soon after, a broad coalition
13796 in the Senate voted to reverse the FCC decision. The hostile hearings
13797 leading up to that vote revealed just how powerful this movement had
13798 become. There was no substantial support for the FCC's decision, and
13799 there was broad and sustained support for fighting further
13800 concentration in the media.
13803 But even this movement misses an important piece of the puzzle.
13804 Largeness as such is not bad. Freedom is not threatened just because
13805 some become very rich, or because there are only a handful of big
13806 players. The poor quality of Big Macs or Quarter Pounders does not
13807 mean that you can't get a good hamburger from somewhere else.
13810 The danger in media concentration comes not from the concentration,
13811 but instead from the feudalism that this concentration, tied to the
13812 change in copyright, produces. It is not just that there are a few
13813 powerful companies that control an ever expanding slice of the
13814 media. It is that this concentration can call upon an equally bloated
13815 range of rights
—property rights of a historically extreme
13816 form
—that makes their bigness bad.
13818 <!-- PAGE BREAK 277 -->
13820 It is therefore significant that so many would rally to demand
13821 competition and increased diversity. Still, if the rally is understood
13822 as being about bigness alone, it is not terribly surprising. We
13823 Americans have a long history of fighting
<quote>big,
</quote> wisely or not. That
13824 we could be motivated to fight
<quote>big
</quote> again is not something new.
13827 It would be something new, and something very important, if an equal
13828 number could be rallied to fight the increasing extremism built within
13829 the idea of
<quote>intellectual property.
</quote> Not because balance is alien to
13830 our tradition; indeed, as I've argued, balance is our tradition. But
13831 because the muscle to think critically about the scope of anything
13832 called
<quote>property
</quote> is not well exercised within this tradition anymore.
13835 If we were Achilles, this would be our heel. This would be the place
13838 <indexterm><primary>Dylan, Bob
</primary></indexterm>
13840 <emphasis role='strong'
>As I write
</emphasis> these final words, the
13841 news is filled with stories about the RIAA lawsuits against almost
13842 three hundred individuals.
<footnote><para>
13844 John Borland,
<quote>RIAA Sues
261 File Swappers,
</quote> CNET News.com, September
13846 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
65</ulink>; Paul
13847 R. La Monica,
<quote>Music Industry Sues Swappers,
</quote> CNN/Money,
8 September
13849 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
66</ulink>; Soni
13850 Sangha and Phyllis Furman with Robert Gearty,
<quote>Sued for a Song,
13851 N.Y.C.
12-Yr-Old Among
261 Cited as Sharers,
</quote> <citetitle>New York Daily News
</citetitle>,
9
13852 September
2003,
3; Frank Ahrens,
<quote>RIAA's Lawsuits Meet Surprised
13853 Targets; Single Mother in Calif.,
12-Year-Old Girl in N.Y. Among
13854 Defendants,
</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003, E1; Katie Dean,
13855 <quote>Schoolgirl Settles with RIAA,
</quote> <citetitle>Wired News
</citetitle>,
10 September
2003,
13857 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
67</ulink>.
13859 Eminem has just been sued for
<quote>sampling
</quote> someone else's
13860 music.
<footnote><para>
13862 Jon Wiederhorn,
<quote>Eminem Gets Sued
… by a Little Old Lady,
</quote>
13863 mtv.com,
17 September
2003, available at
13864 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
68</ulink>.
13866 The story about Bob Dylan
<quote>stealing
</quote> from a Japanese author has just
13867 finished making the rounds.
<footnote><para>
13869 Kenji Hall, Associated Press,
<quote>Japanese Book May Be Inspiration for
13870 Dylan Songs,
</quote> Kansascity.com,
9 July
2003, available at
13871 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
69</ulink>.
13872 <!-- PAGE BREAK 334 -->
13874 An insider from Hollywood
—who insists he must remain
13875 anonymous
—reports
<quote>an amazing conversation with these studio
13876 guys. They've got extraordinary [old] content that they'd love to use
13877 but can't because they can't begin to clear the rights. They've got
13878 scores of kids who could do amazing things with the content, but it
13879 would take scores of lawyers to clean it first.
</quote> Congressmen are
13880 talking about deputizing computer viruses to bring down computers
13881 thought to violate the law. Universities are threatening expulsion for
13882 kids who use a computer to share content.
13884 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Thomas Lee
</primary></indexterm>
13885 <indexterm><primary>Causby, Tinie
</primary></indexterm>
13886 <indexterm><primary>BBC
</primary></indexterm>
13887 <indexterm><primary>Brazil, free culture in
</primary></indexterm>
13888 <indexterm><primary>Creative Commons
</primary></indexterm>
13889 <indexterm><primary>Gil, Gilberto
</primary></indexterm>
13890 <indexterm><primary>United Kingdom
</primary><secondary>public creative archive in
</secondary></indexterm>
13892 Yet on the other side of the Atlantic, the BBC has just announced
13893 that it will build a
<quote>Creative Archive,
</quote> from which British citizens can
13894 download BBC content, and rip, mix, and burn it.
<footnote><para>
13895 <!-- f14. --> <quote>BBC Plans to Open Up Its Archive to the Public,
</quote> BBC press release,
13896 24 August
2003, available at
13897 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
70</ulink>.
13899 And in Brazil, the culture minister, Gilberto Gil, himself a folk hero
13900 of Brazilian music, has joined with Creative Commons to release
13901 content and free licenses in that Latin American
13902 country.
<footnote><para>
13904 <quote>Creative Commons and Brazil,
</quote> Creative Commons Weblog,
6 August
2003,
13906 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
71</ulink>.
13908 <!-- PAGE BREAK 278 -->
13909 I've told a dark story. The truth is more mixed. A technology has
13910 given us a new freedom. Slowly, some begin to understand that this
13911 freedom need not mean anarchy. We can carry a free culture into the
13912 twenty-first century, without artists losing and without the potential of
13913 digital technology being destroyed. It will take some thought, and
13914 more importantly, it will take some will to transform the RCAs of our
13915 day into the Causbys.
13918 Common sense must revolt. It must act to free culture. Soon, if this
13919 potential is ever to be realized.
13921 <!-- PAGE BREAK 279 -->
13925 <chapter label=
"16" id=
"c-afterword">
13926 <title>AFTERWORD
</title>
13929 <!-- PAGE BREAK 280 -->
13930 <emphasis role='strong'
>At least some
</emphasis> who have read this
13931 far will agree with me that something must be done to change where we
13932 are heading. The balance of this book maps what might be done.
13935 I divide this map into two parts: that which anyone can do now,
13936 and that which requires the help of lawmakers. If there is one lesson
13937 that we can draw from the history of remaking common sense, it is that
13938 it requires remaking how many people think about the very same issue.
13941 That means this movement must begin in the streets. It must recruit a
13942 significant number of parents, teachers, librarians, creators,
13943 authors, musicians, filmmakers, scientists
—all to tell this
13944 story in their own words, and to tell their neighbors why this battle
13948 Once this movement has its effect in the streets, it has some hope of
13949 having an effect in Washington. We are still a democracy. What people
13950 think matters. Not as much as it should, at least when an RCA stands
13951 opposed, but still, it matters. And thus, in the second part below, I
13952 sketch changes that Congress could make to better secure a free culture.
13954 <!-- PAGE BREAK 281 -->
13956 <section id=
"usnow">
13957 <title>US, NOW
</title>
13959 <emphasis role='strong'
>Common sense
</emphasis> is with the copyright
13960 warriors because the debate so far has been framed at the
13961 extremes
—as a grand either/or: either property or anarchy,
13962 either total control or artists won't be paid. If that really is the
13963 choice, then the warriors should win.
13966 The mistake here is the error of the excluded middle. There are
13967 extremes in this debate, but the extremes are not all that there
13968 is. There are those who believe in maximal copyright
—<quote>All Rights
13969 Reserved
</quote>— and those who reject copyright
—<quote>No Rights
13970 Reserved.
</quote> The
<quote>All Rights Reserved
</quote> sorts believe that you should ask
13971 permission before you
<quote>use
</quote> a copyrighted work in any way. The
<quote>No
13972 Rights Reserved
</quote> sorts believe you should be able to do with content
13973 as you wish, regardless of whether you have permission or not.
13975 <indexterm id='idxinternetdevelopmentof2' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>development of
</secondary></indexterm>
13976 <indexterm id='idxinternetinitialfreecharacterof' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>initial free character of
</secondary></indexterm>
13978 When the Internet was first born, its initial architecture effectively
13979 tilted in the
<quote>no rights reserved
</quote> direction. Content could be copied
13980 perfectly and cheaply; rights could not easily be controlled. Thus,
13981 regardless of anyone's desire, the effective regime of copyright under
13984 <!-- PAGE BREAK 282 -->
13985 original design of the Internet was
<quote>no rights reserved.
</quote> Content was
13986 <quote>taken
</quote> regardless of the rights. Any rights were effectively
13990 This initial character produced a reaction (opposite, but not quite
13991 equal) by copyright owners. That reaction has been the topic of this
13992 book. Through legislation, litigation, and changes to the network's
13993 design, copyright holders have been able to change the essential
13994 character of the environment of the original Internet. If the original
13995 architecture made the effective default
<quote>no rights reserved,
</quote> the
13996 future architecture will make the effective default
<quote>all rights
13997 reserved.
</quote> The architecture and law that surround the Internet's
13998 design will increasingly produce an environment where all use of
13999 content requires permission. The
<quote>cut and paste
</quote> world that defines
14000 the Internet today will become a
<quote>get permission to cut and paste
</quote>
14001 world that is a creator's nightmare.
14003 <indexterm startref='idxinternetdevelopmentof2' class='endofrange'
/>
14004 <indexterm startref='idxinternetinitialfreecharacterof' class='endofrange'
/>
14006 What's needed is a way to say something in the middle
—neither
14007 <quote>all rights reserved
</quote> nor
<quote>no rights reserved
</quote> but
<quote>some rights
14008 reserved
</quote>— and thus a way to respect copyrights but enable
14009 creators to free content as they see fit. In other words, we need a
14010 way to restore a set of freedoms that we could just take for granted
14013 <section id=
"examples">
14014 <title>Rebuilding Freedoms Previously Presumed: Examples
</title>
14015 <indexterm id='idxfreeculturerestorationeffortsonpreviousaspectsof' class='startofrange'
><primary>free culture
</primary><secondary>restoration efforts on previous aspects of
</secondary></indexterm>
14016 <indexterm id='idxbrowsing' class='startofrange'
><primary>browsing
</primary></indexterm>
14017 <indexterm id='idxprivacyrights2' class='startofrange'
><primary>privacy rights
</primary></indexterm>
14019 If you step back from the battle I've been describing here, you will
14020 recognize this problem from other contexts. Think about
14021 privacy. Before the Internet, most of us didn't have to worry much
14022 about data about our lives that we broadcast to the world. If you
14023 walked into a bookstore and browsed through some of the works of Karl
14024 Marx, you didn't need to worry about explaining your browsing habits
14025 to your neighbors or boss. The
<quote>privacy
</quote> of your browsing habits was
14029 What made it assured?
14031 <!-- PAGE BREAK 283 -->
14033 Well, if we think in terms of the modalities I described in chapter
14034 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"property-i"/>, your
14035 privacy was assured because of an inefficient architecture for
14036 gathering data and hence a market constraint (cost) on anyone who
14037 wanted to gather that data. If you were a suspected spy for North
14038 Korea, working for the CIA, no doubt your privacy would not be
14039 assured. But that's because the CIA would (we hope) find it valuable
14040 enough to spend the thousands required to track you. But for most of
14041 us (again, we can hope), spying doesn't pay. The highly inefficient
14042 architecture of real space means we all enjoy a fairly robust amount
14043 of privacy. That privacy is guaranteed to us by friction. Not by law
14044 (there is no law protecting
<quote>privacy
</quote> in public places), and in many
14045 places, not by norms (snooping and gossip are just fun), but instead,
14046 by the costs that friction imposes on anyone who would want to spy.
14048 <indexterm id='idxamazon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Amazon
</primary></indexterm>
14049 <indexterm><primary>cookies, Internet
</primary></indexterm>
14050 <indexterm id='idxinternetprivacyprotectionon' class='startofrange'
><primary>Internet
</primary><secondary>privacy protection on
</secondary></indexterm>
14052 Enter the Internet, where the cost of tracking browsing in particular
14053 has become quite tiny. If you're a customer at Amazon, then as you
14054 browse the pages, Amazon collects the data about what you've looked
14055 at. You know this because at the side of the page, there's a list of
14056 <quote>recently viewed
</quote> pages. Now, because of the architecture of the Net
14057 and the function of cookies on the Net, it is easier to collect the
14058 data than not. The friction has disappeared, and hence any
<quote>privacy
</quote>
14059 protected by the friction disappears, too.
14061 <indexterm><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>privacy rights in use of
</secondary></indexterm>
14063 Amazon, of course, is not the problem. But we might begin to worry
14064 about libraries. If you're one of those crazy lefties who thinks that
14065 people should have the
<quote>right
</quote> to browse in a library without the
14066 government knowing which books you look at (I'm one of those lefties,
14067 too), then this change in the technology of monitoring might concern
14068 you. If it becomes simple to gather and sort who does what in
14069 electronic spaces, then the friction-induced privacy of yesterday
14072 <indexterm startref='idxbrowsing' class='endofrange'
/>
14073 <indexterm startref='idxamazon' class='endofrange'
/>
14075 It is this reality that explains the push of many to define
<quote>privacy
</quote>
14076 on the Internet. It is the recognition that technology can remove what
14077 friction before gave us that leads many to push for laws to do what
14078 friction did.
<footnote><para>
14081 See, for example, Marc Rotenberg,
<quote>Fair Information Practices and the
14082 Architecture of Privacy (What Larry Doesn't Get),
</quote> <citetitle>Stanford Technology
14083 Law Review
</citetitle> 1 (
2001): par.
6–18, available at
14085 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
72</ulink>
14086 (describing examples in which technology defines privacy policy). See
14087 also Jeffrey Rosen,
<citetitle>The Naked Crowd: Reclaiming Security and Freedom
14088 in an Anxious Age
</citetitle> (New York: Random House,
2004) (mapping tradeoffs
14089 between technology and privacy).
</para></footnote>
14090 And whether you're in favor of those laws or not, it is the pattern
14091 that is important here. We must take affirmative steps to secure a
14093 <!-- PAGE BREAK 284 -->
14094 kind of freedom that was passively provided before. A change in
14095 technology now forces those who believe in privacy to affirmatively
14096 act where, before, privacy was given by default.
14098 <indexterm startref='idxprivacyrights2' class='endofrange'
/>
14099 <indexterm startref='idxinternetprivacyprotectionon' class='endofrange'
/>
14100 <indexterm><primary>Data General
</primary></indexterm>
14101 <indexterm><primary>IBM
</primary></indexterm>
14102 <indexterm id='idxfreesoftwareopensourcesoftwarefsoss2' class='startofrange'
><primary>free software/open-source software (FS/OSS)
</primary></indexterm>
14104 A similar story could be told about the birth of the free software
14105 movement. When computers with software were first made available
14106 commercially, the software
—both the source code and the
14107 binaries
— was free. You couldn't run a program written for a
14108 Data General machine on an IBM machine, so Data General and IBM didn't
14109 care much about controlling their software.
14111 <indexterm id='idxstallmanrichard' class='startofrange'
><primary>Stallman, Richard
</primary></indexterm>
14113 That was the world Richard Stallman was born into, and while he was a
14114 researcher at MIT, he grew to love the community that developed when
14115 one was free to explore and tinker with the software that ran on
14116 machines. Being a smart sort himself, and a talented programmer,
14117 Stallman grew to depend upon the freedom to add to or modify other
14121 In an academic setting, at least, that's not a terribly radical
14122 idea. In a math department, anyone would be free to tinker with a
14123 proof that someone offered. If you thought you had a better way to
14124 prove a theorem, you could take what someone else did and change
14125 it. In a classics department, if you believed a colleague's
14126 translation of a recently discovered text was flawed, you were free to
14127 improve it. Thus, to Stallman, it seemed obvious that you should be
14128 free to tinker with and improve the code that ran a machine. This,
14129 too, was knowledge. Why shouldn't it be open for criticism like
14132 <indexterm id='idxproprietarycode' class='startofrange'
><primary>proprietary code
</primary></indexterm>
14134 No one answered that question. Instead, the architecture of revenue
14135 for computing changed. As it became possible to import programs from
14136 one system to another, it became economically attractive (at least in
14137 the view of some) to hide the code of your program. So, too, as
14138 companies started selling peripherals for mainframe systems. If I
14139 could just take your printer driver and copy it, then that would make
14140 it easier for me to sell a printer to the market than it was for you.
14143 Thus, the practice of proprietary code began to spread, and by the
14144 early
1980s, Stallman found himself surrounded by proprietary code.
14145 <!-- PAGE BREAK 285 -->
14146 The world of free software had been erased by a change in the
14147 economics of computing. And as he believed, if he did nothing about
14148 it, then the freedom to change and share software would be
14149 fundamentally weakened.
14151 <indexterm startref='idxproprietarycode' class='endofrange'
/>
14152 <indexterm><primary>Torvalds, Linus
</primary></indexterm>
14154 Therefore, in
1984, Stallman began a project to build a free operating
14155 system, so that at least a strain of free software would survive. That
14156 was the birth of the GNU project, into which Linus Torvalds's
<quote>Linux
</quote>
14157 kernel was added to produce the GNU/Linux operating system.
14158 <indexterm><primary>GNU/Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
14159 <indexterm><primary>Linux operating system
</primary></indexterm>
14162 Stallman's technique was to use copyright law to build a world of
14163 software that must be kept free. Software licensed under the Free
14164 Software Foundation's GPL cannot be modified and distributed unless
14165 the source code for that software is made available as well. Thus,
14166 anyone building upon GPL'd software would have to make their buildings
14167 free as well. This would assure, Stallman believed, that an ecology of
14168 code would develop that remained free for others to build upon. His
14169 fundamental goal was freedom; innovative creative code was a
14173 Stallman was thus doing for software what privacy advocates now
14174 do for privacy. He was seeking a way to rebuild a kind of freedom that
14175 was taken for granted before. Through the affirmative use of licenses
14176 that bind copyrighted code, Stallman was affirmatively reclaiming a
14177 space where free software would survive. He was actively protecting
14178 what before had been passively guaranteed.
14180 <indexterm startref='idxfreesoftwareopensourcesoftwarefsoss2' class='endofrange'
/>
14181 <indexterm startref='idxstallmanrichard' class='endofrange'
/>
14182 <indexterm id='idxacademicjournals' class='startofrange'
><primary>academic journals
</primary></indexterm>
14183 <indexterm id='idxscientificjournals' class='startofrange'
><primary>scientific journals
</primary></indexterm>
14185 Finally, consider a very recent example that more directly resonates
14186 with the story of this book. This is the shift in the way academic and
14187 scientific journals are produced.
14189 <indexterm id='idxlexisandwestlaw' class='startofrange'
><primary>Lexis and Westlaw
</primary></indexterm>
14190 <indexterm id='idxlawdatabasesofcasereportsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>law
</primary><secondary>databases of case reports in
</secondary></indexterm>
14191 <indexterm><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>journals in
</secondary></indexterm>
14192 <indexterm><primary>Supreme Court, U.S.
</primary><secondary>access to opinions of
</secondary></indexterm>
14194 As digital technologies develop, it is becoming obvious to many that
14195 printing thousands of copies of journals every month and sending them
14196 to libraries is perhaps not the most efficient way to distribute
14197 knowledge. Instead, journals are increasingly becoming electronic, and
14198 libraries and their users are given access to these electronic
14199 journals through password-protected sites. Something similar to this
14200 has been happening in law for almost thirty years: Lexis and Westlaw
14201 have had electronic versions of case reports available to subscribers
14202 to their service. Although a Supreme Court opinion is not
14203 copyrighted, and anyone is free to go to a library and read it, Lexis
14204 and Westlaw are also free
14205 <!-- PAGE BREAK 286 -->
14206 to charge users for the privilege of gaining access to that Supreme
14207 Court opinion through their respective services.
14209 <indexterm><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>access fees for material in
</secondary></indexterm>
14210 <indexterm id='idxpublicdomainlicensesystemforrebuildingof' class='startofrange'
><primary>public domain
</primary><secondary>license system for rebuilding of
</secondary></indexterm>
14212 There's nothing wrong in general with this, and indeed, the ability to
14213 charge for access to even public domain materials is a good incentive
14214 for people to develop new and innovative ways to spread knowledge.
14215 The law has agreed, which is why Lexis and Westlaw have been allowed
14216 to flourish. And if there's nothing wrong with selling the public
14217 domain, then there could be nothing wrong, in principle, with selling
14218 access to material that is not in the public domain.
14220 <indexterm startref='idxlexisandwestlaw' class='endofrange'
/>
14221 <indexterm startref='idxlawdatabasesofcasereportsin' class='endofrange'
/>
14223 But what if the only way to get access to social and scientific data
14224 was through proprietary services? What if no one had the ability to
14225 browse this data except by paying for a subscription?
14227 <indexterm id='idxlibrariesjournalsin' class='startofrange'
><primary>libraries
</primary><secondary>journals in
</secondary></indexterm>
14229 As many are beginning to notice, this is increasingly the reality with
14230 scientific journals. When these journals were distributed in paper
14231 form, libraries could make the journals available to anyone who had
14232 access to the library. Thus, patients with cancer could become cancer
14233 experts because the library gave them access. Or patients trying to
14234 understand the risks of a certain treatment could research those risks
14235 by reading all available articles about that treatment. This freedom
14236 was therefore a function of the institution of libraries (norms) and
14237 the technology of paper journals (architecture)
—namely, that it
14238 was very hard to control access to a paper journal.
14241 As journals become electronic, however, the publishers are demanding
14242 that libraries not give the general public access to the
14243 journals. This means that the freedoms provided by print journals in
14244 public libraries begin to disappear. Thus, as with privacy and with
14245 software, a changing technology and market shrink a freedom taken for
14248 <indexterm><primary>PLoS (Public Library of Science)
</primary></indexterm>
14249 <indexterm><primary>Public Library of Science (PLoS)
</primary></indexterm>
14251 This shrinking freedom has led many to take affirmative steps to
14252 restore the freedom that has been lost. The Public Library of Science
14253 (PLoS), for example, is a nonprofit corporation dedicated to making
14254 scientific research available to anyone with a Web connection. Authors
14255 <!-- PAGE BREAK 287 -->
14256 of scientific work submit that work to the Public Library of Science.
14257 That work is then subject to peer review. If accepted, the work is
14258 then deposited in a public, electronic archive and made permanently
14259 available for free. PLoS also sells a print version of its work, but
14260 the copyright for the print journal does not inhibit the right of
14261 anyone to redistribute the work for free.
14263 <indexterm startref='idxlibrariesjournalsin' class='endofrange'
/>
14265 This is one of many such efforts to restore a freedom taken for
14266 granted before, but now threatened by changing technology and markets.
14267 There's no doubt that this alternative competes with the traditional
14268 publishers and their efforts to make money from the exclusive
14269 distribution of content. But competition in our tradition is
14270 presumptively a good
—especially when it helps spread knowledge
14273 <indexterm startref='idxfreeculturerestorationeffortsonpreviousaspectsof' class='endofrange'
/>
14274 <indexterm startref='idxacademicjournals' class='endofrange'
/>
14275 <indexterm startref='idxscientificjournals' class='endofrange'
/>
14277 <section id=
"oneidea">
14278 <title>Rebuilding Free Culture: One Idea
</title>
14279 <indexterm id='idxcreativecommons' class='startofrange'
><primary>Creative Commons
</primary></indexterm>
14281 The same strategy could be applied to culture, as a response to the
14282 increasing control effected through law and technology.
14284 <indexterm><primary>Stanford University
</primary></indexterm>
14286 Enter the Creative Commons. The Creative Commons is a nonprofit
14287 corporation established in Massachusetts, but with its home at
14288 Stanford University. Its aim is to build a layer of
14289 <emphasis>reasonable
</emphasis> copyright on top of the extremes that
14290 now reign. It does this by making it easy for people to build upon
14291 other people's work, by making it simple for creators to express the
14292 freedom for others to take and build upon their work. Simple tags,
14293 tied to human-readable descriptions, tied to bulletproof licenses,
14294 make this possible.
14297 <emphasis>Simple
</emphasis>—which means without a middleman, or
14298 without a lawyer. By developing a free set of licenses that people
14299 can attach to their content, Creative Commons aims to mark a range of
14300 content that can easily, and reliably, be built upon. These tags are
14301 then linked to machine-readable versions of the license that enable
14302 computers automatically to identify content that can easily be
14303 shared. These three expressions together
—a legal license, a
14304 human-readable description, and
14305 <!-- PAGE BREAK 288 -->
14306 machine-readable tags
—constitute a Creative Commons license. A
14307 Creative Commons license constitutes a grant of freedom to anyone who
14308 accesses the license, and more importantly, an expression of the ideal
14309 that the person associated with the license believes in something
14310 different than the
<quote>All
</quote> or
<quote>No
</quote> extremes. Content is marked with the
14311 CC mark, which does not mean that copyright is waived, but that
14312 certain freedoms are given.
14315 These freedoms are beyond the freedoms promised by fair use. Their
14316 precise contours depend upon the choices the creator makes. The
14317 creator can choose a license that permits any use, so long as
14318 attribution is given. She can choose a license that permits only
14319 noncommercial use. She can choose a license that permits any use so
14320 long as the same freedoms are given to other uses (
<quote>share and share
14321 alike
</quote>). Or any use so long as no derivative use is made. Or any use
14322 at all within developing nations. Or any sampling use, so long as full
14323 copies are not made. Or lastly, any educational use.
14326 These choices thus establish a range of freedoms beyond the default of
14327 copyright law. They also enable freedoms that go beyond traditional
14328 fair use. And most importantly, they express these freedoms in a way
14329 that subsequent users can use and rely upon without the need to hire a
14330 lawyer. Creative Commons thus aims to build a layer of content,
14331 governed by a layer of reasonable copyright law, that others can build
14332 upon. Voluntary choice of individuals and creators will make this
14333 content available. And that content will in turn enable us to rebuild
14336 <indexterm><primary>Garlick, Mia
</primary></indexterm>
14338 This is just one project among many within the Creative Commons. And
14339 of course, Creative Commons is not the only organization pursuing such
14340 freedoms. But the point that distinguishes the Creative Commons from
14341 many is that we are not interested only in talking about a public
14342 domain or in getting legislators to help build a public domain. Our
14343 aim is to build a movement of consumers and producers
14344 <!-- PAGE BREAK 289 -->
14345 of content (
<quote>content conducers,
</quote> as attorney Mia Garlick calls them)
14346 who help build the public domain and, by their work, demonstrate the
14347 importance of the public domain to other creativity.
14349 <indexterm><primary>Jefferson, Thomas
</primary></indexterm>
14351 The aim is not to fight the
<quote>All Rights Reserved
</quote> sorts. The aim is to
14352 complement them. The problems that the law creates for us as a culture
14353 are produced by insane and unintended consequences of laws written
14354 centuries ago, applied to a technology that only Jefferson could have
14355 imagined. The rules may well have made sense against a background of
14356 technologies from centuries ago, but they do not make sense against
14357 the background of digital technologies. New rules
—with different
14358 freedoms, expressed in ways so that humans without lawyers can use
14359 them
—are needed. Creative Commons gives people a way effectively
14360 to begin to build those rules.
14362 <indexterm id='idxbooksfreeonline2' class='startofrange'
><primary>books
</primary><secondary>free on-line releases of
</secondary></indexterm>
14364 Why would creators participate in giving up total control? Some
14365 participate to better spread their content. Cory Doctorow, for
14366 example, is a science fiction author. His first novel,
<citetitle>Down and Out in
14367 the Magic Kingdom
</citetitle>, was released on-line and for free, under a Creative
14368 Commons license, on the same day that it went on sale in bookstores.
14371 Why would a publisher ever agree to this? I suspect his publisher
14372 reasoned like this: There are two groups of people out there: (
1)
14373 those who will buy Cory's book whether or not it's on the Internet,
14374 and (
2) those who may never hear of Cory's book, if it isn't made
14375 available for free on the Internet. Some part of (
1) will download
14376 Cory's book instead of buying it. Call them bad-(
1)s. Some part of (
2)
14377 will download Cory's book, like it, and then decide to buy it. Call
14378 them (
2)-goods. If there are more (
2)-goods than bad-(
1)s, the
14379 strategy of releasing Cory's book free on-line will probably
14380 <emphasis>increase
</emphasis> sales of Cory's book.
14383 Indeed, the experience of his publisher clearly supports that
14384 conclusion. The book's first printing was exhausted months before the
14385 publisher had expected. This first novel of a science fiction author
14386 was a total success.
14388 <indexterm><primary>Free for All (Wayner)
</primary></indexterm>
14389 <indexterm><primary>Wayner, Peter
</primary></indexterm>
14391 The idea that free content might increase the value of nonfree content
14392 was confirmed by the experience of another author. Peter Wayner,
14393 <!-- PAGE BREAK 290 -->
14394 who wrote a book about the free software movement titled
<citetitle>Free for All
</citetitle>,
14395 made an electronic version of his book free on-line under a Creative
14396 Commons license after the book went out of print. He then monitored
14397 used book store prices for the book. As predicted, as the number of
14398 downloads increased, the used book price for his book increased, as
14401 <indexterm startref='idxbooksfreeonline2' class='endofrange'
/>
14402 <indexterm><primary>Public Enemy
</primary></indexterm>
14403 <indexterm><primary>rap music
</primary></indexterm>
14404 <indexterm><primary>Leaphart, Walter
</primary></indexterm>
14406 These are examples of using the Commons to better spread proprietary
14407 content. I believe that is a wonderful and common use of the
14408 Commons. There are others who use Creative Commons licenses for other
14409 reasons. Many who use the
<quote>sampling license
</quote> do so because anything
14410 else would be hypocritical. The sampling license says that others are
14411 free, for commercial or noncommercial purposes, to sample content from
14412 the licensed work; they are just not free to make full copies of the
14413 licensed work available to others. This is consistent with their own
14414 art
—they, too, sample from others. Because the
14415 <emphasis>legal
</emphasis> costs of sampling are so high (Walter
14416 Leaphart, manager of the rap group Public Enemy, which was born
14417 sampling the music of others, has stated that he does not
<quote>allow
</quote>
14418 Public Enemy to sample anymore, because the legal costs are so
14419 high
<footnote><para>
14421 <citetitle>Willful Infringement: A Report from the Front Lines of the Real
14422 Culture Wars
</citetitle> (
2003), produced by Jed Horovitz, directed by Greg
14423 Hittelman, a Fiat Lucre production, available at
14424 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
72</ulink>.
14425 </para></footnote>),
14426 these artists release into the creative environment content
14427 that others can build upon, so that their form of creativity might grow.
14430 Finally, there are many who mark their content with a Creative Commons
14431 license just because they want to express to others the importance of
14432 balance in this debate. If you just go along with the system as it is,
14433 you are effectively saying you believe in the
<quote>All Rights Reserved
</quote>
14434 model. Good for you, but many do not. Many believe that however
14435 appropriate that rule is for Hollywood and freaks, it is not an
14436 appropriate description of how most creators view the rights
14437 associated with their content. The Creative Commons license expresses
14438 this notion of
<quote>Some Rights Reserved,
</quote> and gives many the chance to
14442 In the first six months of the Creative Commons experiment, over
14443 1 million objects were licensed with these free-culture licenses. The next
14444 step is partnerships with middleware content providers to help them
14445 build into their technologies simple ways for users to mark their content
14447 <!-- PAGE BREAK 291 -->
14448 with Creative Commons freedoms. Then the next step is to watch and
14449 celebrate creators who build content based upon content set free.
14452 These are first steps to rebuilding a public domain. They are not
14453 mere arguments; they are action. Building a public domain is the first
14454 step to showing people how important that domain is to creativity and
14455 innovation. Creative Commons relies upon voluntary steps to achieve
14456 this rebuilding. They will lead to a world in which more than voluntary
14457 steps are possible.
14460 Creative Commons is just one example of voluntary efforts by
14461 individuals and creators to change the mix of rights that now govern
14462 the creative field. The project does not compete with copyright; it
14463 complements it. Its aim is not to defeat the rights of authors, but to
14464 make it easier for authors and creators to exercise their rights more
14465 flexibly and cheaply. That difference, we believe, will enable
14466 creativity to spread more easily.
14468 <indexterm startref='idxpublicdomainlicensesystemforrebuildingof' class='endofrange'
/>
14469 <indexterm startref='idxcreativecommons' class='endofrange'
/>
14470 <!-- PAGE BREAK 292 -->
14473 <section id=
"themsoon">
14474 <title>THEM, SOON
</title>
14476 <emphasis role='strong'
>We will
</emphasis> not reclaim a free culture
14477 by individual action alone. It will also take important reforms of
14478 laws. We have a long way to go before the politicians will listen to
14479 these ideas and implement these reforms. But that also means that we
14480 have time to build awareness around the changes that we need.
14483 In this chapter, I outline five kinds of changes: four that are general,
14484 and one that's specific to the most heated battle of the day, music. Each
14485 is a step, not an end. But any of these steps would carry us a long way
14489 <section id=
"formalities">
14490 <title>1. More Formalities
</title>
14492 If you buy a house, you have to record the sale in a deed. If you buy land
14493 upon which to build a house, you have to record the purchase in a deed.
14494 If you buy a car, you get a bill of sale and register the car. If you buy an
14495 airplane ticket, it has your name on it.
14498 <!-- PAGE BREAK 293 -->
14499 These are all formalities associated with property. They are
14500 requirements that we all must bear if we want our property to be
14504 In contrast, under current copyright law, you automatically get a
14505 copyright, regardless of whether you comply with any formality. You
14506 don't have to register. You don't even have to mark your content. The
14507 default is control, and
<quote>formalities
</quote> are banished.
14513 As I suggested in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
14514 linkend=
"property-i"/>, the motivation to abolish formalities was a
14515 good one. In the world before digital technologies, formalities
14516 imposed a burden on copyright holders without much benefit. Thus, it
14517 was progress when the law relaxed the formal requirements that a
14518 copyright owner must bear to protect and secure his work. Those
14519 formalities were getting in the way.
14522 But the Internet changes all this. Formalities today need not be a
14523 burden. Rather, the world without formalities is the world that
14524 burdens creativity. Today, there is no simple way to know who owns
14525 what, or with whom one must deal in order to use or build upon the
14526 creative work of others. There are no records, there is no system to
14527 trace
— there is no simple way to know how to get permission. Yet
14528 given the massive increase in the scope of copyright's rule, getting
14529 permission is a necessary step for any work that builds upon our
14530 past. And thus, the
<emphasis>lack
</emphasis> of formalities forces
14531 many into silence where they otherwise could speak.
14534 The law should therefore change this requirement
<footnote><para>
14536 The proposal I am advancing here would apply to American works only.
14537 Obviously, I believe it would be beneficial for the same idea to be
14538 adopted by other countries as well.
</para></footnote>—but it
14539 should not change it by going back to the old, broken system. We
14540 should require formalities, but we should establish a system that will
14541 create the incentives to minimize the burden of these formalities.
14544 The important formalities are three: marking copyrighted work,
14545 registering copyrights, and renewing the claim to
14546 copyright. Traditionally, the first of these three was something the
14547 copyright owner did; the second two were something the government
14548 did. But a revised system of formalities would banish the government
14549 from the process, except for the sole purpose of approving standards
14550 developed by others.
14553 <!-- PAGE BREAK 294 -->
14555 <section id=
"registration">
14556 <title>REGISTRATION AND RENEWAL
</title>
14558 Under the old system, a copyright owner had to file a registration
14559 with the Copyright Office to register or renew a copyright. When
14560 filing that registration, the copyright owner paid a fee. As with most
14561 government agencies, the Copyright Office had little incentive to
14562 minimize the burden of registration; it also had little incentive to
14563 minimize the fee. And as the Copyright Office is not a main target of
14564 government policymaking, the office has historically been terribly
14565 underfunded. Thus, when people who know something about the process
14566 hear this idea about formalities, their first reaction is
14567 panic
—nothing could be worse than forcing people to deal with
14568 the mess that is the Copyright Office.
14571 Yet it is always astonishing to me that we, who come from a tradition
14572 of extraordinary innovation in governmental design, can no longer
14573 think innovatively about how governmental functions can be designed.
14574 Just because there is a public purpose to a government role, it
14575 doesn't follow that the government must actually administer the
14576 role. Instead, we should be creating incentives for private parties to
14577 serve the public, subject to standards that the government sets.
14580 In the context of registration, one obvious model is the Internet.
14581 There are at least
32 million Web sites registered around the world.
14582 Domain name owners for these Web sites have to pay a fee to keep their
14583 registration alive. In the main top-level domains (.com, .org, .net),
14584 there is a central registry. The actual registrations are, however,
14585 performed by many competing registrars. That competition drives the
14586 cost of registering down, and more importantly, it drives the ease
14587 with which registration occurs up.
14590 We should adopt a similar model for the registration and renewal of
14591 copyrights. The Copyright Office may well serve as the central
14592 registry, but it should not be in the registrar business. Instead, it
14593 should establish a database, and a set of standards for registrars. It
14594 should approve registrars that meet its standards. Those registrars
14595 would then compete with one another to deliver the cheapest and
14596 simplest systems for registering and renewing copyrights. That
14597 competition would substantially lower the burden of this
14598 formality
—while producing a database
14599 <!-- PAGE BREAK 295 -->
14600 of registrations that would facilitate the licensing of content.
14604 <section id=
"marking">
14605 <title>MARKING
</title>
14607 It used to be that the failure to include a copyright notice on a
14608 creative work meant that the copyright was forfeited. That was a harsh
14609 punishment for failing to comply with a regulatory rule
—akin to
14610 imposing the death penalty for a parking ticket in the world of
14611 creative rights. Here again, there is no reason that a marking
14612 requirement needs to be enforced in this way. And more importantly,
14613 there is no reason a marking requirement needs to be enforced
14614 uniformly across all media.
14617 The aim of marking is to signal to the public that this work is
14618 copyrighted and that the author wants to enforce his rights. The mark
14619 also makes it easy to locate a copyright owner to secure permission to
14623 One of the problems the copyright system confronted early on was
14624 that different copyrighted works had to be differently marked. It wasn't
14625 clear how or where a statue was to be marked, or a record, or a film. A
14626 new marking requirement could solve these problems by recognizing
14627 the differences in media, and by allowing the system of marking to
14628 evolve as technologies enable it to. The system could enable a special
14629 signal from the failure to mark
—not the loss of the copyright, but the
14630 loss of the right to punish someone for failing to get permission first.
14633 Let's start with the last point. If a copyright owner allows his work
14634 to be published without a copyright notice, the consequence of that
14635 failure need not be that the copyright is lost. The consequence could
14636 instead be that anyone has the right to use this work, until the
14637 copyright owner complains and demonstrates that it is his work and he
14638 doesn't give permission.
<footnote><para>
14640 There would be a complication with derivative works that I have not
14641 solved here. In my view, the law of derivatives creates a more complicated
14642 system than is justified by the marginal incentive it creates.
14644 The meaning of an unmarked work would therefore be
<quote>use unless someone
14645 complains.
</quote> If someone does complain, then the obligation would be to
14646 stop using the work in any new
14647 <!-- PAGE BREAK 296 -->
14648 work from then on though no penalty would attach for existing uses.
14649 This would create a strong incentive for copyright owners to mark
14653 That in turn raises the question about how work should best be
14654 marked. Here again, the system needs to adjust as the technologies
14655 evolve. The best way to ensure that the system evolves is to limit the
14656 Copyright Office's role to that of approving standards for marking
14657 content that have been crafted elsewhere.
14659 <indexterm><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>copyright marking of
</secondary></indexterm>
14661 For example, if a recording industry association devises a method for
14662 marking CDs, it would propose that to the Copyright Office. The
14663 Copyright Office would hold a hearing, at which other proposals could
14664 be made. The Copyright Office would then select the proposal that it
14665 judged preferable, and it would base that choice
14666 <emphasis>solely
</emphasis> upon the consideration of which method
14667 could best be integrated into the registration and renewal system. We
14668 would not count on the government to innovate; but we would count on
14669 the government to keep the product of innovation in line with its
14670 other important functions.
14673 Finally, marking content clearly would simplify registration
14674 requirements. If photographs were marked by author and year, there
14675 would be little reason not to allow a photographer to reregister, for
14676 example, all photographs taken in a particular year in one quick
14677 step. The aim of the formality is not to burden the creator; the
14678 system itself should be kept as simple as possible.
14681 The objective of formalities is to make things clear. The existing
14682 system does nothing to make things clear. Indeed, it seems designed to
14683 make things unclear.
14686 If formalities such as registration were reinstated, one of the most
14687 difficult aspects of relying upon the public domain would be removed.
14688 It would be simple to identify what content is presumptively free; it
14689 would be simple to identify who controls the rights for a particular
14690 kind of content; it would be simple to assert those rights, and to renew
14691 that assertion at the appropriate time.
14694 <!-- PAGE BREAK 297 -->
14697 <section id=
"shortterms">
14698 <title>2. Shorter Terms
</title>
14700 The term of copyright has gone from fourteen years to ninety-five
14701 years for corporate authors, and life of the author plus seventy years for
14705 In
<citetitle>The Future of Ideas
</citetitle>, I proposed a seventy-five-year term,
14706 granted in five-year increments with a requirement of renewal every
14707 five years. That seemed radical enough at the time. But after we lost
14708 <citetitle>Eldred
</citetitle> v.
<citetitle>Ashcroft
</citetitle>, the proposals became even more
14709 radical.
<citetitle>The Economist
</citetitle> endorsed a proposal for a fourteen-year
14710 copyright term.
<footnote><para>
14713 <quote>A Radical Rethink,
</quote> <citetitle>Economist
</citetitle>,
366:
8308 (
25 January
2003):
15,
14715 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
74</ulink>.
14717 Others have proposed tying the term to the term for patents.
14720 I agree with those who believe that we need a radical change in
14721 copyright's term. But whether fourteen years or seventy-five, there
14722 are four principles that are important to keep in mind about copyright
14725 <orderedlist numeration=
"arabic">
14728 <emphasis>Keep it short:
</emphasis> The term should be as long as
14729 necessary to give incentives to create, but no longer. If it were tied
14730 to very strong protections for authors (so authors were able to
14731 reclaim rights from publishers), rights to the same work (not
14732 derivative works) might be extended further. The key is not to tie the
14733 work up with legal regulations when it no longer benefits an author.
14737 <emphasis>Keep it simple:
</emphasis> The line between the public
14738 domain and protected content must be kept clear. Lawyers like the
14739 fuzziness of
<quote>fair use,
</quote> and the distinction between
<quote>ideas
</quote> and
14740 <quote>expression.
</quote> That kind of law gives them lots of work. But our
14741 framers had a simpler idea in mind: protected versus unprotected. The
14742 value of short terms is that there is little need to build exceptions
14743 into copyright when the term itself is kept short. A clear and active
14744 <quote>lawyer-free zone
</quote> makes the complexities of
<quote>fair use
</quote> and
14745 <quote>idea/expression
</quote> less necessary to navigate.
14746 <!-- PAGE BREAK 298 -->
14749 <indexterm><primary>veterans' pensions
</primary></indexterm>
14752 <emphasis>Keep it alive:
</emphasis> Copyright should have to be
14753 renewed. Especially if the maximum term is long, the copyright owner
14754 should be required to signal periodically that he wants the protection
14755 continued. This need not be an onerous burden, but there is no reason
14756 this monopoly protection has to be granted for free. On average, it
14757 takes ninety minutes for a veteran to apply for a
14758 pension.
<footnote><para>
14760 Department of Veterans Affairs, Veteran's Application for Compensation
14761 and/or Pension, VA Form
21-
526 (OMB Approved No.
2900-
0001),
14763 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
75</ulink>.
14765 If we make veterans suffer that burden, I don't see why we couldn't
14766 require authors to spend ten minutes every fifty years to file a
14771 <emphasis>Keep it prospective:
</emphasis> Whatever the term of
14772 copyright should be, the clearest lesson that economists teach is that
14773 a term once given should not be extended. It might have been a mistake
14774 in
1923 for the law to offer authors only a fifty-six-year term. I
14775 don't think so, but it's possible. If it was a mistake, then the
14776 consequence was that we got fewer authors to create in
1923 than we
14777 otherwise would have. But we can't correct that mistake today by
14778 increasing the term. No matter what we do today, we will not increase
14779 the number of authors who wrote in
1923. Of course, we can increase
14780 the reward that those who write now get (or alternatively, increase
14781 the copyright burden that smothers many works that are today
14782 invisible). But increasing their reward will not increase their
14783 creativity in
1923. What's not done is not done, and there's nothing
14784 we can do about that now.
</para></listitem>
14787 These changes together should produce an
<emphasis>average
</emphasis>
14788 copyright term that is much shorter than the current term. Until
1976,
14789 the average term was just
32.2 years. We should be aiming for the
14793 No doubt the extremists will call these ideas
<quote>radical.
</quote> (After all, I
14794 call them
<quote>extremists.
</quote>) But again, the term I recommended was longer
14795 than the term under Richard Nixon. How
<quote>radical
</quote> can it be to ask for
14796 a more generous copyright law than Richard Nixon presided over?
14799 <!-- PAGE BREAK 299 -->
14802 <section id=
"freefairuse">
14803 <title>3. Free Use Vs. Fair Use
</title>
14804 <indexterm><primary>land ownership, air traffic and
</primary></indexterm>
14805 <indexterm><primary>property rights
</primary><secondary>air traffic vs.
</secondary></indexterm>
14807 As I observed at the beginning of this book, property law originally
14808 granted property owners the right to control their property from the
14809 ground to the heavens. The airplane came along. The scope of property
14810 rights quickly changed. There was no fuss, no constitutional
14811 challenge. It made no sense anymore to grant that much control, given
14812 the emergence of that new technology.
14815 Our Constitution gives Congress the power to give authors
<quote>exclusive
14816 right
</quote> to
<quote>their writings.
</quote> Congress has given authors an exclusive
14817 right to
<quote>their writings
</quote> plus any derivative writings (made by
14818 others) that are sufficiently close to the author's original
14819 work. Thus, if I write a book, and you base a movie on that book, I
14820 have the power to deny you the right to release that movie, even
14821 though that movie is not
<quote>my writing.
</quote>
14823 <indexterm><primary>Kaplan, Benjamin
</primary></indexterm>
14825 Congress granted the beginnings of this right in
1870, when it
14826 expanded the exclusive right of copyright to include a right to
14827 control translations and dramatizations of a work.
<footnote><para>
14829 Benjamin Kaplan,
<citetitle>An Unhurried View of Copyright
</citetitle> (New York: Columbia
14830 University Press,
1967),
32.
14832 The courts have expanded it slowly through judicial interpretation
14833 ever since. This expansion has been commented upon by one of the law's
14834 greatest judges, Judge Benjamin Kaplan.
14838 So inured have we become to the extension of the monopoly to a
14839 large range of so-called derivative works, that we no longer sense
14840 the oddity of accepting such an enlargement of copyright while
14841 yet intoning the abracadabra of idea and expression.
<footnote><para>
14842 <!-- f6. --> Ibid.,
56.
14847 I think it's time to recognize that there are airplanes in this field and
14848 the expansiveness of these rights of derivative use no longer make
14849 sense. More precisely, they don't make sense for the period of time that
14850 a copyright runs. And they don't make sense as an amorphous grant.
14851 Consider each limitation in turn.
14854 <emphasis>Term:
</emphasis> If Congress wants to grant a derivative
14855 right, then that right should be for a much shorter term. It makes
14856 sense to protect John
14858 <!-- PAGE BREAK 300 -->
14859 Grisham's right to sell the movie rights to his latest novel (or at least
14860 I'm willing to assume it does); but it does not make sense for that right
14861 to run for the same term as the underlying copyright. The derivative
14862 right could be important in inducing creativity; it is not important long
14863 after the creative work is done.
14864 <indexterm><primary>Grisham, John
</primary></indexterm>
14867 <emphasis>Scope:
</emphasis> Likewise should the scope of derivative
14868 rights be narrowed. Again, there are some cases in which derivative
14869 rights are important. Those should be specified. But the law should
14870 draw clear lines around regulated and unregulated uses of copyrighted
14871 material. When all
<quote>reuse
</quote> of creative material was within the control
14872 of businesses, perhaps it made sense to require lawyers to negotiate
14873 the lines. It no longer makes sense for lawyers to negotiate the
14874 lines. Think about all the creative possibilities that digital
14875 technologies enable; now imagine pouring molasses into the
14876 machines. That's what this general requirement of permission does to
14877 the creative process. Smothers it.
14879 <indexterm><primary>Alben, Alex
</primary></indexterm>
14881 This was the point that Alben made when describing the making of the
14882 Clint Eastwood CD. While it makes sense to require negotiation for
14883 foreseeable derivative rights
—turning a book into a movie, or a
14884 poem into a musical score
—it doesn't make sense to require
14885 negotiation for the unforeseeable. Here, a statutory right would make
14889 In each of these cases, the law should mark the uses that are
14890 protected, and the presumption should be that other uses are not
14891 protected. This is the reverse of the recommendation of my colleague
14892 Paul Goldstein.
<footnote>
14895 Paul Goldstein,
<citetitle>Copyright's Highway: From Gutenberg to the Celestial
14896 Jukebox
</citetitle> (Stanford: Stanford University Press,
2003),
187–216.
14897 <indexterm><primary>Goldstein, Paul
</primary></indexterm>
14899 His view is that the law should be written so that
14900 expanded protections follow expanded uses.
14903 Goldstein's analysis would make perfect sense if the cost of the legal
14904 system were small. But as we are currently seeing in the context of
14905 the Internet, the uncertainty about the scope of protection, and the
14906 incentives to protect existing architectures of revenue, combined with
14907 a strong copyright, weaken the process of innovation.
14910 The law could remedy this problem either by removing protection
14911 <!-- PAGE BREAK 301 -->
14912 beyond the part explicitly drawn or by granting reuse rights upon
14913 certain statutory conditions. Either way, the effect would be to free
14914 a great deal of culture to others to cultivate. And under a statutory
14915 rights regime, that reuse would earn artists more income.
14919 <section id=
"liberatemusic">
14920 <title>4. Liberate the Music
—Again
</title>
14922 The battle that got this whole war going was about music, so it
14923 wouldn't be fair to end this book without addressing the issue that
14924 is, to most people, most pressing
—music. There is no other
14925 policy issue that better teaches the lessons of this book than the
14926 battles around the sharing of music.
14929 The appeal of file-sharing music was the crack cocaine of the
14930 Internet's growth. It drove demand for access to the Internet more
14931 powerfully than any other single application. It was the Internet's
14932 killer app
—possibly in two senses of that word. It no doubt was
14933 the application that drove demand for bandwidth. It may well be the
14934 application that drives demand for regulations that in the end kill
14935 innovation on the network.
14938 The aim of copyright, with respect to content in general and music in
14939 particular, is to create the incentives for music to be composed,
14940 performed, and, most importantly, spread. The law does this by giving
14941 an exclusive right to a composer to control public performances of his
14942 work, and to a performing artist to control copies of her performance.
14945 File-sharing networks complicate this model by enabling the spread of
14946 content for which the performer has not been paid. But of course,
14947 that's not all the file-sharing networks do. As I described in chapter
14948 <xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber" linkend=
"piracy"/>, they enable
14949 four different kinds of sharing:
14951 <orderedlist numeration=
"upperalpha">
14954 There are some who are using sharing networks as substitutes
14955 for purchasing CDs.
14959 There are also some who are using sharing networks to sample,
14960 on the way to purchasing CDs.
14963 <!-- PAGE BREAK 302 -->
14965 There are many who are using file-sharing networks to get access to
14966 content that is no longer sold but is still under copyright or that
14967 would have been too cumbersome to buy off the Net.
14971 There are many who are using file-sharing networks to get access to
14972 content that is not copyrighted or to get access that the copyright
14973 owner plainly endorses.
14976 <indexterm><primary>cassette recording
</primary><secondary>VCRs
</secondary></indexterm>
14977 <indexterm><primary>VCRs
</primary></indexterm>
14979 Any reform of the law needs to keep these different uses in focus. It
14980 must avoid burdening type D even if it aims to eliminate type A. The
14981 eagerness with which the law aims to eliminate type A, moreover,
14982 should depend upon the magnitude of type B. As with VCRs, if the net
14983 effect of sharing is actually not very harmful, the need for regulation is
14984 significantly weakened.
14987 As I said in chapter
<xref xrefstyle=
"select: labelnumber"
14988 linkend=
"piracy"/>, the actual harm caused by sharing is
14989 controversial. For the purposes of this chapter, however, I assume
14990 the harm is real. I assume, in other words, that type A sharing is
14991 significantly greater than type B, and is the dominant use of sharing
14995 Nonetheless, there is a crucial fact about the current technological
14996 context that we must keep in mind if we are to understand how the law
15000 Today, file sharing is addictive. In ten years, it won't be. It is
15001 addictive today because it is the easiest way to gain access to a
15002 broad range of content. It won't be the easiest way to get access to
15003 a broad range of content in ten years. Today, access to the Internet
15004 is cumbersome and slow
—we in the United States are lucky to have
15005 broadband service at
1.5 MBs, and very rarely do we get service at
15006 that speed both up and down. Although wireless access is growing, most
15007 of us still get access across wires. Most only gain access through a
15008 machine with a keyboard. The idea of the always on, always connected
15009 Internet is mainly just an idea.
15012 But it will become a reality, and that means the way we get access to
15013 the Internet today is a technology in transition. Policy makers should
15014 not make policy on the basis of technology in transition. They should
15015 <!-- PAGE BREAK 303 -->
15016 make policy on the basis of where the technology is going. The
15017 question should not be, how should the law regulate sharing in this
15018 world? The question should be, what law will we require when the
15019 network becomes the network it is clearly becoming? That network is
15020 one in which every machine with electricity is essentially on the Net;
15021 where everywhere you are
—except maybe the desert or the
15022 Rockies
—you can instantaneously be connected to the
15023 Internet. Imagine the Internet as ubiquitous as the best cell-phone
15024 service, where with the flip of a device, you are connected.
15026 <indexterm><primary>cell phones, music streamed over
</primary></indexterm>
15028 In that world, it will be extremely easy to connect to services that
15029 give you access to content on the fly
—such as Internet radio,
15030 content that is streamed to the user when the user demands. Here,
15031 then, is the critical point: When it is
<emphasis>extremely
</emphasis>
15032 easy to connect to services that give access to content, it will be
15033 <emphasis>easier
</emphasis> to connect to services that give you
15034 access to content than it will be to download and store content
15035 <emphasis>on the many devices you will have for playing
15036 content
</emphasis>. It will be easier, in other words, to subscribe
15037 than it will be to be a database manager, as everyone in the
15038 download-sharing world of Napster-like technologies essentially
15039 is. Content services will compete with content sharing, even if the
15040 services charge money for the content they give access to. Already
15041 cell-phone services in Japan offer music (for a fee) streamed over
15042 cell phones (enhanced with plugs for headphones). The Japanese are
15043 paying for this content even though
<quote>free
</quote> content is available in the
15044 form of MP3s across the Web.
<footnote><para>
15046 See, for example,
<quote>Music Media Watch,
</quote> The J@pan Inc. Newsletter,
3
15047 April
2002, available at
15048 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
76</ulink>.
15053 This point about the future is meant to suggest a perspective on the
15054 present: It is emphatically temporary. The
<quote>problem
</quote> with file
15055 sharing
—to the extent there is a real problem
—is a problem
15056 that will increasingly disappear as it becomes easier to connect to
15057 the Internet. And thus it is an extraordinary mistake for policy
15058 makers today to be
<quote>solving
</quote> this problem in light of a technology
15059 that will be gone tomorrow. The question should not be how to
15060 regulate the Internet to eliminate file sharing (the Net will evolve
15061 that problem away). The question instead should be how to assure that
15062 artists get paid, during
15064 <!-- PAGE BREAK 304 -->
15065 this transition between twentieth-century models for doing business
15066 and twenty-first-century technologies.
15069 The answer begins with recognizing that there are different
<quote>problems
</quote>
15070 here to solve. Let's start with type D content
—uncopyrighted
15071 content or copyrighted content that the artist wants shared. The
15072 <quote>problem
</quote> with this content is to make sure that the technology that
15073 would enable this kind of sharing is not rendered illegal. You can
15074 think of it this way: Pay phones are used to deliver ransom demands,
15075 no doubt. But there are many who need to use pay phones who have
15076 nothing to do with ransoms. It would be wrong to ban pay phones in
15077 order to eliminate kidnapping.
15080 Type C content raises a different
<quote>problem.
</quote> This is content that was,
15081 at one time, published and is no longer available. It may be
15082 unavailable because the artist is no longer valuable enough for the
15083 record label he signed with to carry his work. Or it may be
15084 unavailable because the work is forgotten. Either way, the aim of the
15085 law should be to facilitate the access to this content, ideally in a
15086 way that returns something to the artist.
15088 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>out of print
</secondary></indexterm>
15089 <indexterm><primary>books
</primary><secondary>resales of
</secondary></indexterm>
15091 Again, the model here is the used book store. Once a book goes out of
15092 print, it may still be available in libraries and used book
15093 stores. But libraries and used book stores don't pay the copyright
15094 owner when someone reads or buys an out-of-print book. That makes
15095 total sense, of course, since any other system would be so burdensome
15096 as to eliminate the possibility of used book stores' existing. But
15097 from the author's perspective, this
<quote>sharing
</quote> of his content without
15098 his being compensated is less than ideal.
15101 The model of used book stores suggests that the law could simply deem
15102 out-of-print music fair game. If the publisher does not make copies of
15103 the music available for sale, then commercial and noncommercial
15104 providers would be free, under this rule, to
<quote>share
</quote> that content,
15105 even though the sharing involved making a copy. The copy here would be
15106 incidental to the trade; in a context where commercial publishing has
15107 ended, trading music should be as free as trading books.
15111 <!-- PAGE BREAK 305 -->
15112 Alternatively, the law could create a statutory license that would
15113 ensure that artists get something from the trade of their work. For
15114 example, if the law set a low statutory rate for the commercial
15115 sharing of content that was not offered for sale by a commercial
15116 publisher, and if that rate were automatically transferred to a trust
15117 for the benefit of the artist, then businesses could develop around
15118 the idea of trading this content, and artists would benefit from this
15122 This system would also create an incentive for publishers to keep
15123 works available commercially. Works that are available commercially
15124 would not be subject to this license. Thus, publishers could protect
15125 the right to charge whatever they want for content if they kept the
15126 work commercially available. But if they don't keep it available, and
15127 instead, the computer hard disks of fans around the world keep it
15128 alive, then any royalty owed for such copying should be much less than
15129 the amount owed a commercial publisher.
15132 The hard case is content of types A and B, and again, this case is
15133 hard only because the extent of the problem will change over time, as
15134 the technologies for gaining access to content change. The law's
15135 solution should be as flexible as the problem is, understanding that
15136 we are in the middle of a radical transformation in the technology for
15137 delivering and accessing content.
15140 So here's a solution that will at first seem very strange to both sides
15141 in this war, but which upon reflection, I suggest, should make some sense.
15144 Stripped of the rhetoric about the sanctity of property, the basic
15145 claim of the content industry is this: A new technology (the Internet)
15146 has harmed a set of rights that secure copyright. If those rights are to
15147 be protected, then the content industry should be compensated for that
15148 harm. Just as the technology of tobacco harmed the health of millions
15149 of Americans, or the technology of asbestos caused grave illness to
15150 thousands of miners, so, too, has the technology of digital networks
15151 harmed the interests of the content industry.
15154 <!-- PAGE BREAK 306 -->
15155 I love the Internet, and so I don't like likening it to tobacco or
15156 asbestos. But the analogy is a fair one from the perspective of the
15157 law. And it suggests a fair response: Rather than seeking to destroy
15158 the Internet, or the p2p technologies that are currently harming
15159 content providers on the Internet, we should find a relatively simple
15160 way to compensate those who are harmed.
15162 <indexterm id='idxpromisestokeepfisher' class='startofrange'
><primary>Promises to Keep (Fisher)
</primary></indexterm>
15164 The idea would be a modification of a proposal that has been
15165 floated by Harvard law professor William Fisher.
<footnote>
15168 <indexterm id='idxartistspayments3' class='startofrange'
><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
15169 William Fisher,
<citetitle>Digital Music: Problems and Possibilities
</citetitle> (last
15170 revised:
10 October
2000), available at
15171 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
77</ulink>; William
15172 Fisher,
<citetitle>Promises to Keep: Technology, Law, and the Future of
15173 Entertainment
</citetitle> (forthcoming) (Stanford: Stanford University Press,
15174 2004), ch.
6, available at
15175 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
78</ulink>. Professor
15176 Netanel has proposed a related idea that would exempt noncommercial
15177 sharing from the reach of copyright and would establish compensation
15178 to artists to balance any loss. See Neil Weinstock Netanel,
<quote>Impose a
15179 Noncommercial Use Levy to Allow Free P2P File Sharing,
</quote> available at
15180 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
79</ulink>. For other proposals, see Lawrence Lessig,
<quote>Who's Holding Back
15181 Broadband?
</quote> <citetitle>Washington Post
</citetitle>,
8 January
2002, A17; Philip S. Corwin on
15182 behalf of Sharman Networks, A Letter to Senator Joseph R. Biden, Jr.,
15183 Chairman of the Senate Foreign Relations Committee,
26 February
2002,
15185 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
80</ulink>; Serguei Osokine,
<citetitle>A Quick Case for Intellectual Property
15186 Use Fee (IPUF)
</citetitle>,
3 March
2002, available at
15187 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
81</ulink>; Jefferson Graham,
15188 <quote>Kazaa, Verizon Propose to Pay Artists Directly,
</quote> <citetitle>USA Today
</citetitle>,
13 May
15190 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
82</ulink>; Steven M. Cherry,
<quote>Getting Copyright Right,
</quote>
15191 IEEE Spectrum Online,
1 July
2002, available at
15192 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
83</ulink>; Declan
15193 McCullagh,
<quote>Verizon's Copyright Campaign,
</quote> CNET News.com,
27 August
15195 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
84</ulink>.
15196 Fisher's proposal is very similar to Richard Stallman's proposal for
15197 DAT. Unlike Fisher's, Stallman's proposal would not pay artists directly
15198 proportionally, though more popular artists would get more than the less
15199 popular. As is typical with Stallman, his proposal predates the current
15200 debate by about a decade. See
15201 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
85</ulink>.
15202 <indexterm><primary>Fisher, William
</primary></indexterm>
15203 <indexterm><primary>Netanel, Neil Weinstock
</primary></indexterm>
15204 <indexterm><primary>Promises to Keep (Fisher)
</primary></indexterm>
15205 <indexterm startref='idxartistspayments3' class='endofrange'
/>
15207 Fisher suggests a very clever way around the current impasse of the
15208 Internet. Under his plan, all content capable of digital transmission
15209 would (
1) be marked with a digital watermark (don't worry about how
15210 easy it is to evade these marks; as you'll see, there's no incentive
15211 to evade them). Once the content is marked, then entrepreneurs would
15212 develop (
2) systems to monitor how many items of each content were
15213 distributed. On the basis of those numbers, then (
3) artists would be
15214 compensated. The compensation would be paid for by (
4) an appropriate
15218 Fisher's proposal is careful and comprehensive. It raises a million
15219 questions, most of which he answers well in his upcoming book,
15220 <citetitle>Promises to Keep
</citetitle>. The modification that I would make is relatively
15221 simple: Fisher imagines his proposal replacing the existing copyright
15222 system. I imagine it complementing the existing system. The aim of
15223 the proposal would be to facilitate compensation to the extent that
15224 harm could be shown. This compensation would be temporary, aimed at
15225 facilitating a transition between regimes. And it would require
15226 renewal after a period of years. If it continues to make sense to
15227 facilitate free exchange of content, supported through a taxation
15228 system, then it can be continued. If this form of protection is no
15229 longer necessary, then the system could lapse into the old system of
15230 controlling access.
15232 <indexterm startref='idxpromisestokeepfisher' class='endofrange'
/>
15233 <indexterm><primary>artists
</primary><secondary>recording industry payments to
</secondary></indexterm>
15235 Fisher would balk at the idea of allowing the system to lapse. His aim
15236 is not just to ensure that artists are paid, but also to ensure that
15237 the system supports the widest range of
<quote>semiotic democracy
</quote>
15238 possible. But the aims of semiotic democracy would be satisfied if the
15239 other changes I described were accomplished
—in particular, the
15240 limits on derivative
15242 <!-- PAGE BREAK 307 -->
15243 uses. A system that simply charges for access would not greatly burden
15244 semiotic democracy if there were few limitations on what one was
15245 allowed to do with the content itself.
15247 <indexterm><primary>Apple Corporation
</primary></indexterm>
15248 <indexterm><primary>MusicStore
</primary></indexterm>
15249 <indexterm><primary>Real Networks
</primary></indexterm>
15250 <indexterm><primary>CDs
</primary><secondary>prices of
</secondary></indexterm>
15252 No doubt it would be difficult to calculate the proper measure of
15253 <quote>harm
</quote> to an industry. But the difficulty of making that calculation
15254 would be outweighed by the benefit of facilitating innovation. This
15255 background system to compensate would also not need to interfere with
15256 innovative proposals such as Apple's MusicStore. As experts predicted
15257 when Apple launched the MusicStore, it could beat
<quote>free
</quote> by being
15258 easier than free is. This has proven correct: Apple has sold millions
15259 of songs at even the very high price of
99 cents a song. (At
99 cents,
15260 the cost is the equivalent of a per-song CD price, though the labels
15261 have none of the costs of a CD to pay.) Apple's move was countered by
15262 Real Networks, offering music at just
79 cents a song. And no doubt
15263 there will be a great deal of competition to offer and sell music
15266 <indexterm><primary>cable television
</primary></indexterm>
15267 <indexterm><primary>television
</primary><secondary>cable vs. broadcast
</secondary></indexterm>
15268 <indexterm><primary>Asia, commercial piracy in
</primary></indexterm>
15269 <indexterm><primary>piracy
</primary><secondary>in Asia
</secondary></indexterm>
15270 <indexterm><primary>film industry
</primary><secondary>luxury theatres vs. video piracy in
</secondary></indexterm>
15272 This competition has already occurred against the background of
<quote>free
</quote>
15273 music from p2p systems. As the sellers of cable television have known
15274 for thirty years, and the sellers of bottled water for much more than
15275 that, there is nothing impossible at all about
<quote>competing with free.
</quote>
15276 Indeed, if anything, the competition spurs the competitors to offer
15277 new and better products. This is precisely what the competitive market
15278 was to be about. Thus in Singapore, though piracy is rampant, movie
15279 theaters are often luxurious
—with
<quote>first class
</quote> seats, and meals
15280 served while you watch a movie
—as they struggle and succeed in
15281 finding ways to compete with
<quote>free.
</quote>
15284 This regime of competition, with a backstop to assure that artists
15285 don't lose, would facilitate a great deal of innovation in the
15286 delivery of content. That competition would continue to shrink type A
15287 sharing. It would inspire an extraordinary range of new
15288 innovators
—ones who would have a right to the content, and would
15289 no longer fear the uncertain and barbarically severe punishments of
15293 In summary, then, my proposal is this:
15297 <!-- PAGE BREAK 308 -->
15298 The Internet is in transition. We should not be regulating a
15299 technology in transition. We should instead be regulating to minimize
15300 the harm to interests affected by this technological change, while
15301 enabling, and encouraging, the most efficient technology we can
15305 We can minimize that harm while maximizing the benefit to innovation
15308 <orderedlist numeration=
"arabic">
15311 guaranteeing the right to engage in type D sharing;
15315 permitting noncommercial type C sharing without liability,
15316 and commercial type C sharing at a low and fixed rate set by
15321 while in this transition, taxing and compensating for type A
15322 sharing, to the extent actual harm is demonstrated.
15326 But what if
<quote>piracy
</quote> doesn't disappear? What if there is a competitive
15327 market providing content at a low cost, but a significant number of
15328 consumers continue to
<quote>take
</quote> content for nothing? Should the law do
15332 Yes, it should. But, again, what it should do depends upon how the
15333 facts develop. These changes may not eliminate type A sharing. But the
15334 real issue is not whether it eliminates sharing in the abstract. The
15335 real issue is its effect on the market. Is it better (a) to have a
15336 technology that is
95 percent secure and produces a market of size
<citetitle>x
</citetitle>,
15337 or (b) to have a technology that is
50 percent secure but produces a
15338 market of five times
<citetitle>x
</citetitle>? Less secure might produce more unauthorized
15339 sharing, but it is likely to also produce a much bigger market in
15340 authorized sharing. The most important thing is to assure artists'
15341 compensation without breaking the Internet. Once that's assured, then
15342 it may well be appropriate to find ways to track down the petty
15346 But we're a long way away from whittling the problem down to this
15347 subset of type A sharers. And our focus until we're there should not
15348 be on finding ways to break the Internet. Our focus until we're there
15350 <!-- PAGE BREAK 309 -->
15351 should be on how to make sure the artists are paid, while protecting
15352 the space for innovation and creativity that the Internet is.
15356 <section id=
"firelawyers">
15357 <title>5. Fire Lots of Lawyers
</title>
15359 I'm a lawyer. I make lawyers for a living. I believe in the law. I believe
15360 in the law of copyright. Indeed, I have devoted my life to working in
15361 law, not because there are big bucks at the end but because there are
15362 ideals at the end that I would love to live.
15365 Yet much of this book has been a criticism of lawyers, or the role
15366 lawyers have played in this debate. The law speaks to ideals, but it
15367 is my view that our profession has become too attuned to the
15368 client. And in a world where the rich clients have one strong view,
15369 the unwillingness of the profession to question or counter that one
15370 strong view queers the law.
15372 <indexterm><primary>Nimmer, Melville
</primary></indexterm>
15373 <indexterm><primary>Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act (CTEA) (
1998)
</primary><secondary>Supreme Court challenge of
</secondary></indexterm>
15375 The evidence of this bending is compelling. I'm attacked as a
15376 <quote>radical
</quote> by many within the profession, yet the positions that I am
15377 advocating are precisely the positions of some of the most moderate
15378 and significant figures in the history of this branch of the
15379 law. Many, for example, thought crazy the challenge that we brought to
15380 the Copyright Term Extension Act. Yet just thirty years ago, the
15381 dominant scholar and practitioner in the field of copyright, Melville
15382 Nimmer, thought it obvious.
<footnote><para>
15384 Lawrence Lessig,
<quote>Copyright's First Amendment
</quote> (Melville B. Nimmer
15385 Memorial Lecture),
<citetitle>UCLA Law Review
</citetitle> 48 (
2001):
1057,
1069–70.
15390 However, my criticism of the role that lawyers have played in this
15391 debate is not just about a professional bias. It is more importantly
15392 about our failure to actually reckon the costs of the law.
15395 Economists are supposed to be good at reckoning costs and benefits.
15396 But more often than not, economists, with no clue about how the legal
15397 system actually functions, simply assume that the transaction costs of
15398 the legal system are slight.
<footnote><para>
15400 A good example is the work of Professor Stan Liebowitz. Liebowitz is
15401 to be commended for his careful review of data about infringement,
15402 leading him to question his own publicly stated
15403 position
—twice. He initially predicted that downloading would
15404 substantially harm the industry. He then revised his view in light of
15405 the data, and he has since revised his view again. Compare Stan
15406 J. Liebowitz,
<citetitle>Rethinking the Network Economy: The True Forces That
15407 Drive the Digital Marketplace
</citetitle> (New York: Amacom,
2002), (reviewing his
15408 original view but expressing skepticism) with Stan J. Liebowitz,
15409 <quote>Will MP3s Annihilate the Record Industry?
</quote> working paper, June
2003,
15411 <ulink url=
"http://free-culture.cc/notes/">link #
86</ulink>.
15412 Liebowitz's careful analysis is extremely valuable in estimating the
15413 effect of file-sharing technology. In my view, however, he
15414 underestimates the costs of the legal system. See, for example,
15415 <citetitle>Rethinking
</citetitle>,
174–76.
15416 <indexterm><primary>Liebowitz, Stan
</primary></indexterm>
15418 They see a system that has been around for hundreds of years, and they
15419 assume it works the way their elementary school civics class taught
15423 <!-- PAGE BREAK 310 -->
15424 But the legal system doesn't work. Or more accurately, it doesn't work
15425 for anyone except those with the most resources. Not because the
15426 system is corrupt. I don't think our legal system (at the federal
15427 level, at least) is at all corrupt. I mean simply because the costs of
15428 our legal system are so astonishingly high that justice can
15429 practically never be done.
15432 These costs distort free culture in many ways. A lawyer's time is
15433 billed at the largest firms at more than $
400 per hour. How much time
15434 should such a lawyer spend reading cases carefully, or researching
15435 obscure strands of authority? The answer is the increasing reality:
15436 very little. The law depended upon the careful articulation and
15437 development of doctrine, but the careful articulation and development
15438 of legal doctrine depends upon careful work. Yet that careful work
15439 costs too much, except in the most high-profile and costly cases.
15442 The costliness and clumsiness and randomness of this system mock
15443 our tradition. And lawyers, as well as academics, should consider it
15444 their duty to change the way the law works
—or better, to change the
15445 law so that it works. It is wrong that the system works well only for the
15446 top
1 percent of the clients. It could be made radically more efficient,
15447 and inexpensive, and hence radically more just.
15450 But until that reform is complete, we as a society should keep the law
15451 away from areas that we know it will only harm. And that is precisely
15452 what the law will too often do if too much of our culture is left to
15455 <indexterm><primary>Brezhnev, Leonid
</primary></indexterm>
15457 Think about the amazing things your kid could do or make with digital
15458 technology
—the film, the music, the Web page, the blog. Or think
15459 about the amazing things your community could facilitate with digital
15460 technology
—a wiki, a barn raising, activism to change something.
15461 Think about all those creative things, and then imagine cold molasses
15462 poured onto the machines. This is what any regime that requires
15463 permission produces. Again, this is the reality of Brezhnev's Russia.
15466 The law should regulate in certain areas of culture
—but it should
15467 regulate culture only where that regulation does good. Yet lawyers
15469 <!-- PAGE BREAK 311-->
15470 rarely test their power, or the power they promote, against this
15471 simple pragmatic question:
<quote>Will it do good?
</quote> When challenged about
15472 the expanding reach of the law, the lawyer answers,
<quote>Why not?
</quote>
15475 We should ask,
<quote>Why?
</quote> Show me why your regulation of culture is
15476 needed. Show me how it does good. And until you can show me both,
15477 keep your lawyers away.
15479 <!-- PAGE BREAK 312 -->
15483 <chapter label=
"17" id=
"c-notes">
15484 <title>NOTES
</title>
15486 Throughout this text, there are references to links on the World Wide
15487 Web. As anyone who has tried to use the Web knows, these links can be
15488 highly unstable. I have tried to remedy the instability by redirecting
15489 readers to the original source through the Web site associated with
15490 this book. For each link below, you can go to
15491 http://free-culture.cc/notes and locate the original source by
15492 clicking on the number after the # sign. If the original link remains
15493 alive, you will be redirected to that link. If the original link has
15494 disappeared, you will be redirected to an appropriate reference for
15498 <!-- insert endnotes here -->
15499 <?latex \theendnotes
?>
15501 <!--PAGE BREAK 336-->
15504 <chapter label=
"18" id=
"c-acknowledgments">
15505 <title>ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
</title>
15507 This book is the product of a long and as yet unsuccessful struggle that
15508 began when I read of Eric Eldred's war to keep books free. Eldred's
15509 work helped launch a movement, the free culture movement, and it is
15510 to him that this book is dedicated.
15512 <indexterm><primary>Rose, Mark
</primary></indexterm>
15514 I received guidance in various places from friends and academics,
15515 including Glenn Brown, Peter DiCola, Jennifer Mnookin, Richard Posner,
15516 Mark Rose, and Kathleen Sullivan. And I received correction and
15517 guidance from many amazing students at Stanford Law School and
15518 Stanford University. They included Andrew B. Coan, John Eden, James
15519 P. Fellers, Christopher Guzelian, Erica Goldberg, Robert Hallman,
15520 Andrew Harris, Matthew Kahn, Brian Link, Ohad Mayblum, Alina Ng, and
15521 Erica Platt. I am particularly grateful to Catherine Crump and Harry
15522 Surden, who helped direct their research, and to Laura Lynch, who
15523 brilliantly managed the army that they assembled, and provided her own
15524 critical eye on much of this.
15527 Yuko Noguchi helped me to understand the laws of Japan as well as
15528 its culture. I am thankful to her, and to the many in Japan who helped
15529 me prepare this book: Joi Ito, Takayuki Matsutani, Naoto Misaki,
15530 Michihiro Sasaki, Hiromichi Tanaka, Hiroo Yamagata, and Yoshihiro
15531 <!--PAGE BREAK 337-->
15532 Yonezawa. I am thankful as well as to Professor Nobuhiro Nakayama,
15533 and the Tokyo University Business Law Center, for giving me the
15534 chance to spend time in Japan, and to Tadashi Shiraishi and Kiyokazu
15535 Yamagami for their generous help while I was there.
15538 These are the traditional sorts of help that academics regularly draw
15539 upon. But in addition to them, the Internet has made it possible to
15540 receive advice and correction from many whom I have never even
15541 met. Among those who have responded with extremely helpful advice to
15542 requests on my blog about the book are Dr. Mohammad Al-Ubaydli, David
15543 Gerstein, and Peter DiMauro, as well as a long list of those who had
15544 specific ideas about ways to develop my argument. They included
15545 Richard Bondi, Steven Cherry, David Coe, Nik Cubrilovic, Bob Devine,
15546 Charles Eicher, Thomas Guida, Elihu M. Gerson, Jeremy Hunsinger,
15547 Vaughn Iverson, John Karabaic, Jeff Keltner, James Lindenschmidt,
15548 K. L. Mann, Mark Manning, Nora McCauley, Jeffrey McHugh, Evan
15549 McMullen, Fred Norton, John Pormann, Pedro A. D. Rezende, Shabbir
15550 Safdar, Saul Schleimer, Clay Shirky, Adam Shostack, Kragen Sitaker,
15551 Chris Smith, Bruce Steinberg, Andrzej Jan Taramina, Sean Walsh, Matt
15552 Wasserman, Miljenko Williams,
<quote>Wink,
</quote> Roger Wood,
<quote>Ximmbo da Jazz,
</quote>
15553 and Richard Yanco. (I apologize if I have missed anyone; with
15554 computers come glitches, and a crash of my e-mail system meant I lost
15555 a bunch of great replies.)
15558 Richard Stallman and Michael Carroll each read the whole book in
15559 draft, and each provided extremely helpful correction and advice.
15560 Michael helped me to see more clearly the significance of the
15561 regulation of derivitive works. And Richard corrected an
15562 embarrassingly large number of errors. While my work is in part
15563 inspired by Stallman's, he does not agree with me in important places
15564 throughout this book.
15567 Finally, and forever, I am thankful to Bettina, who has always
15568 insisted that there would be unending happiness away from these
15569 battles, and who has always been right. This slow learner is, as ever,
15570 grateful for her perpetual patience and love.
15572 <!--PAGE BREAK 338-->
15578 The original hardcover paper book was published in
2004 by The Penguin
15579 Press, a member of Penguin Group (USA) Inc.
375 Hudson Street New
15583 This digital book was published by Petter Reinholdtsen in
2014.
15586 Copyright
© Lawrence Lessig. Some rights reserved.
15589 This version of
<citetitle>Free Culture
</citetitle> is licensed under
15590 a Creative Commons license. This license permits non-commercial use of
15591 this work, so long as attribution is given. For more information
15592 about the license, click the icon above, or visit
15593 <ulink url=
"http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc/1.0/">http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc/
1.0/
</ulink>
15596 Excerpt from an editorial titled
<quote>The Coming of Copyright
15597 Perpetuity,
</quote> <citetitle>The New York Times
</citetitle>, January
15598 16,
2003. Copyright
© 2003 by The New York Times Co. Reprinted
15602 Cartoon in
<xref linkend=
"fig-1711-vcr-handgun-cartoonfig"/> by Paul
15603 Conrad, copyright Tribune Media Services, Inc. All rights
15604 reserved. Reprinted with permission.
15607 Diagram in
<xref linkend=
"fig-1761-pattern-modern-media-ownership"/>
15608 courtesy of the office of FCC Commissioner, Michael J. Copps.
15611 Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
15615 Free culture : how big media uses technology and the law to lock down
15616 culture and control creativity / Lawrence Lessig.
15626 <informaltable id=
"isbn">
15627 <tgroup cols=
"2" align=
"left">
15630 <entry>ISBN
</entry>
15631 <entry>Format / MIME-type
</entry>
15636 <entry>978-
82-
92812-XX-Y
</entry>
15637 <entry>text/plain
</entry>
15641 <entry>978-
82-
92812-XX-Y
</entry>
15642 <entry>application/pdf
</entry>
15645 <entry>978-
82-
92812-XX-Y
</entry>
15646 <entry>text/html
</entry>
15649 <entry>978-
82-
92812-XX-Y
</entry>
15650 <entry>application/epub+zip
</entry>
15653 <entry>978-
82-
92812-XX-Y
</entry>
15654 <entry>application/docbook+xml
</entry>
15657 <entry>978-
82-
92812-XX-Y
</entry>
15658 <entry>application/x-mobipocket-ebook
</entry>
15666 1. Intellectual property
—United States.
15669 2. Mass media
—United States.
15672 3. Technological innovations
—United States.
15675 4. Art
—United States. I. Title.
15681 343.7309'
9—dc22
2003063276
15685 The source of this version of the text is written using DocBook
15686 notation and the other formats are derived from the DocBook source.
15687 The DocBook source is based on a
15688 <ulink url=
"http://www.sslug.dk/~chlor/lessig/">DocBook XML version
15689 created by Hans Schou
</ulink>, and extended with formatting and index
15690 references by Petter Reinholdtsen. The source files of this book is
15692 <ulink url=
"https://github.com/petterreinholdtsen/free-culture-lessig">a
15693 github project
</ulink>.